^^ IMAGE EVALUATION TEST TARGET (MT-3; 1.0 V^ 1^ mmwn 1.1 £ Ut 12.0 Photographic Sciences Corporation 3>" ♦ ««^. v\ 23 WIST MAIN STRUT WltSTiR,N.Y. USM (716) •72-4503 CIHM/ICMH Microfiche Series. CIHIVI/iCIVIH Collection de mi Canadian Institute for Historical Microreproductions / Institut canadien de microreproductions historiquas Tachnical and Bibliographic Notat/Notas tachniquaa at bibliogrcphiquaa Tha Inatituta haa attamptad to obtain tha baat original copy availabia for filming. Faaturaa of thia copy which may ba bibliographically unlqua. which may altar any of tha imagaa in tha raproduction, or which may signifieantly changa tha uaual mathod of filming, ara chackad balow. n n D D Colourad covara/ Couvartura da coulaur I I Covars damagad/ D Couvartura andommagia Covars rastorad and/or laminatad/ Couvartura raataurAa at/ou palliculAa □ Covar titia missing/ La titra da couvartura manqua lourad maps/ Cartas gtegraphiquas en coulaur I I Colourad maps/ □ Colourad inic (i.a. othar than blua or black)/ Encra da coulaur (i.a. autra qua blaua ou noira) I I Colourad platas and/or illuatrations/ Planchas at/ou illustrations an coulaur Bound with othar matarial/ RaliA avac d'autraa documanta r^ Tight binding may causa sh^^dows or distortion along intarior margin/ La r« liura sarria paut causar da I'ombra ou da la distortion la long da la marga intAriaura Blank laavas addad during raatoratlon may appaar within tha taxt. Whanavar poasibia, thasa hava baan omittad from filming/ II sa paut qua cartainas pagas blanchaa ajoutias lors d'una rastauration apparaissant dans la taxta. mais. lorsqua cala Atait poasibia, caa pagaa n'ont pas At* filmtes. Additional commanta:/ Commantairas supplAmantairas; L'Institut a microfilmi la maillaur axamplaira qu'il lui a itA poaaibia da sa procurer. Las details da cat axamplaira qui sont paut-Atra uniquas du point da vua bibliographiqua, qui pauvant modifier una imaga raproduita, ou qui pauvant axigar una modification dans la mAthoda normala da filmage sont indiquAs ci-dassous. T t( r~n Colourad pagas/ D Pagaa da coulaur Pagaa damaged/ Pagaa andommagAas Pagas restored and/oi Pagas reataurAas at/ou pelliculAes Pages discoloured, stained or foxe( Pagas dAcoiorAas, tachatAes ou piquAes Pagas detached/ Pagas dAtachAas Showthrough/ Transparence Quality of priri Quality inAgale de I'impression Includes supplementary matarii Comprend du materiel supplAmentaire Only edition available/ Seuie Mition disponible nn Pagaa damaged/ I I Pages restored and/or laminated/ Fy] Pages discoloured, stained or foxed/ I I Pagas detached/ r~^ Showthrough/ FT] Quality of print varies/ nn Includes supplementary material/ |~n Only edition available/ 1 f f Pages wholly or partially obscured by errata slips, tissues, etc.. have been refilmed to ensure the best possible image/ Les pages totalement ou partieilement obscurcies par un feuiilet d'errata, une pelure, etc., ont AtA filmAes A nouveau de fapon d obtenir la meilleure image possible. This item is filmed at tha reduction ratio checked below/ Ce document est fiimA au taux de reduction jndiqui ci-deaaous. 10X 14X 18X 22X 26X 30X J 12X 16X aox a4x 28X 32X Th« copy film«d h«r« hat b««n i'«produe«d thanka to tha ganaroaity of: University of Saikatelitwan Saskatoon L'axamplaira filmA fut raproduit grica i la ginAroaM da: University of Saskatchewan Saskatoon Tha Imagaa appaaring hara ara tha baat quality poaalbia conaidaring tha condition and lajilbillty of tha original copy and In kaaping with tha filming contract apacificationa. Original copiaa In printad papar covara ara filmad baglnning with tha front covar and anding on tha laat paga with a printad or iliuatratad impraa- alon, or tha back covar whan appropriata. All othar original copiaa ara filmad baglnning on tha f Irat paga with a printad or Iliuatratad impraa- alon, and anding on tha laat paga with a printad or iliuatratad Impraaalon. Laa imagaa auivvntaa ont 4ti raproduitaa avac la piua grand aoin, compta tanu da la condition at da la nattat* da Taxampiaira film*, at an conformit* avac laa conditiona du contrat da flimaga. Laa axampiairaa originaux dont la couvartura an papiar aat ImprimAa aont filmto an commanfant par la pramiar plat at an tarmlnant aoit par la darnlAra paga qui eomporta una ampralnta d'Impraaaion ou d'illuatration, aoit par la aacond plat, aaion la caa. Toua laa autraa axampiairaa originaux aont filmte wn commandant par la pramlAra paga qui eomporta una ampralnta d'Impraaaion ou d'illuatration at an tarmlnant par la darnlAra paga qui eomporta una talia ampralnta. Tha laat racordad frama on aach microficha ahall contain tha aymboi — ► (moaning "CON- TINUED"), or tha aymboi y (maaning "END"), whichavar appllaa. Un daa aymboiaa auivanta apparattra aur la darnlAra Imaga da chaqua microficha, aaion la caa: la aymbola — ^ aignif la "A SUIVRE", la aymbola ▼ aignlfia "FIN". IMapa, plataa, charta, ate, may ba filmad at diffarant raduction ratloa. Thoaa too larga to ba antiraly included in ona axpoaura ara filmad baglnning in tha uppar laft hand cornar, laft to right and top to bottom, aa many framaa aa required. The following diagrama iiluatrata the method: Lee cartae, planchea, tableaux, etc., peuvent Atre flimto A dee taux da rMuctlon diff^ranta. Loraque la document eat trop grand pour Atra raproduit an un eeui clichA, 11 nzt f llmi A pertir de I'angia aupArieur gauche, do gauche h drolte, et de haut en baa, en prenant la nombre d'imagee nAceeeaira. Lea diagrammea auivanta iiluatrant la mAthode. 1 2 3 1 2 3 4 5 6 REPORT OF DECISIONS /■ ■' or $(■: THE ^COMMISSION OF CLAIMS '"WS VNOER THE CONVENTION OF FEBRUARY 8, 1853, BETWEEN THE UNITED STATES AND GEEAT. BRITAIN, TRANSMITTED TO THE SENAJJEc,^' ^jV---^* BT THE PRESIDENT OF THE UNI TiiBWS^TE^ ' AUGUST 11, 18§6. WASHINGTON: A. 0. P. mOHOLSON, SENATE FBINTBB. 1856. SEP 1 1 1968 411160 ■ *. '"'*i''^'^r* *^ ''U •M mii MESSAGE OF THE PRESIDENT. OF THE UNITED STATES, COMMUNICATIWO THE PROCEEDINGS OF THE COMMISSIONERS ' FOR THE ADJUSTMENT OF CLAIMS UN'DER THE CONVENTION OF FEBRUARY S, im, BETWEEN THE UNITED STATES AND GREAT BRITAIN. • "-* WASHINGTON: A. 0. P. NICHOLSON, SENATE PRINTER. 1856 / % ^ • ^7 4 Jn Senate op the United States, March2, 1855. Rtsohtd, That the President ^ requested to furnish to the Senate tl>e report of tlie com- miBsionera for the adjustment of claims, under the convention of February 8, 1853, between the United States and Great Britain, with the decisions of the commissioners and umpire, and the arguments of the agents, as reported by them, and that the usual number of copies of the same be printed for the use of the Senate, under the direction of the Department of State ; said reports to be properly bound, edited, and indexed. Attest : ASBURY DICKINS, Secretary. In Senate of the United States, .itiguit 12, 185C. Resolvecf, That, in addition to the usual number of copies of t^ report of the commis- sioneis for the adjustment of claims, under the convention of February 8, 1853, between the United States and Great Britain, and the convention connected therewith, heretofore ordered to bo printed for the use of the Senate, there be printed five hundred copies for the use of the Department of State. Attest: ASBURY DICKINS, Secrelary. m 'f$m.: # *^ INTRODUCTION The convention under wliicli the commission, whoso proceedings are hereinafter detailed, derived its authority, was entered into between the United States and Great Britain, on the 8th day of February, 1853, the ratifications of which were exchanged on the 26th of July, 1853. It provided for the adjustment of claims made upon the government of the United States by corporations, companies, and private indi- viduals, subjects of her Britannic Majesty, and claims made upon the government of Great Britain by corporations, companies, and private individuals, citizens of the United States. The jurisdiction of the commissioners extended to all cases remain- ing unsettled, which had been presented to either government for its interposition with the other, since the signature of the treaty of peace, on the 24th of December, 1814; and such other claims, subsequent to that time, as might be presented to the commissioners within six months from the day of their first meeting. ^ These claims were to be impartially and carefully examined by the , commissioners, and decided "according to the best of their judgment, and according to justice and equity ;" and their decision was to be *'a full, final, and perfect .settlement of every claim arising out of any transaction of a date prior to the exchange of the ratifications of the convention." -s ? -^ The respective governments engaged to give full effect to these deci- ii INTRODUCTION. sions, without objection, delay, or evasion ; and further engaged that all claims within the jurisdiction of the commissioners, whether pre- sented or not for their consideration, should, from and after the con- clusion of the proceedings of the commission, "bo considered and treated as finally settled, barred, and thenceforth inadmissible." One commissioner was to bo appointed by each government, and the two were to name some third person to act as arbitrator or um- pire, in cases in which they might differ in opinion, and if they could not agree on such person, each commissioner was to name an umpire, and the umpire was to be selected by lot to act in such cases. The responsibility of selecting an umpire for the two governments was thus devolved on the commission, as well as the final settlement of all claims between the countries for a period of nearly forty years. The commission consisted of Nathaniel G. Uwiam, on the part of the United States, and Edmund Hornby, on the part of Great Britain. They met at London on the 15th of September, 1853, and, after various conferences, on the Slst of October, agreed on Joshua Bates, of London, as arbitrator or umpire, in cases in which the commis- sioners might disagree. John A. Thomas was appointed agent of the United States, and James Hannen agent of Great Britain, to present the claims made in behalf of their respective governments, and to answer all claims made upon them. .-'^ As all claims not presented were to be finally barred, the respective governments caused all applications for redress, coming within the period prescribed by the convention, to bo submitted for the action of the commission. Many of these claims required but little investiga- tion and were readily disposed off. Others, mainly of a private character, were rendered doubtful by conflicting and uncertain testi- mony, and were strenuously contested. There was another class of cases where the governments were directly )ngaged that whether pre- ifter the con- isidered and isiblo." rnraent, and rator or um- f they could 3 an umpire, 968. governments .1 settlement forty years. the part of 'eat Britain. , and, after 3HUA Bates, le commis- States, and ms made in all claims B respective Avithin the le action of investiga- a private rtain testi- jre directly I i INTRODUCTION. iH ' at issue on grave questions of international law, that had caused much irritation between the two countries. These cases had been the sub- ject of laborious investigation and frequent discussion in Congress, and had been argued with eminent ability by Messrs. Everett, Steven- son, Bancroft, and other American ministers to Great Britain, and by various members of the British ministry^ until all hope of a settlement of them in the ordinary mode had been abandoned. This convention was then entered into for the adjustment of these claims between the countries by a court of final jurisdiction, *' with the belief that their settlement would contribute much to the main- tainance of friendly feeling between the two countries." By the terms of the convention, these cases were to be decided within one year from the opening of the commission. As this was found to be impracticable, the time was extended by a supplementary convention to a further period of four months. "Within the period, thus extended, the commissioners acted upon, and finally disposed of, all claims before them, and united, on the 15th of January, 1855, in mutual reports to their respective governments of the result of their labors. Congress and Parliament early made appropriations for payment of the several awards made by the commissioners, and all claims between the citizens or subjects of either country against the other, to the date of the ratification of the convention, July 26, 1855, have since been fully and finally settled. Those gentlemen most conversant with the trouble and difiicnlties attending these claims have expressed, in strong terms, their views as to the importance of this result. Mr. Buchanan, minister to England, in his letter addressed to the Secretary of State, at the close of the commission, dated London, January 26, 1855, states that "the com- mission for the settlement of outstanding claims between the United States and Great Britain had just terminated," and that "the relations IV INTRODUCTION. which the instructions from the Secretary had estahlished between himself and the American commissioner and the agent, rendered it proper for him to express an opinion of the manner in which these gentlemen had respectively performed their duties." "This," he says, "is a pleasing office; l>i cause it would scarcely be possible for any individuals to have discharged these duties in a more satisfactory manner. " The business of the commission was conducted by Judge Upham and General Thomas, in their several spheres of action, with much ability, as well as indefatigable industry and perseverance ; and the result of their labors has proved to be quite as favorable to our country as could have beon reasonably anticipated. " The action of this commission will be a great relief to the two governments. All the claims of the citizens and subjects of each on the government of the other, which had been accumulating since the date of the treaty of Ghent, (24th December, 1814,) and had given rise to so much diplomatic correspondence^ have happily now been decided, and can no longer become subjects of discussion. "These claims in number exceeded one hundred, and in amount involved millions of dollars. The sum actually awarded was about |600,000, of which the American claimants will receive considerably more than one-half." Similar favorable views, as to the result of the commission, and its great relief to the diplomatic relations between the two countries, have been expressed by Mr. Everett, in letters congratulating the commission on the successful completion of their labors. The report submitted consists of several distinct parts, containing — 1. The journal of the proceedings of the commission. 2. The docket of the American claims, with the awards and disposal of cases thereof. 3. The docket of British claimants, and awards thereon. es in a more INTRODUCTION. V V 4. A report of those cases involving important principles, which were drawn up at length by the commission. 5. Appendix, containing correspondence as to the appointment of umpire, and other papers connected with the commission. 6. Index of casea. Washington, September 30, 1856. r . *«^.^..»^«_ A*. H'-'i'.h . ^*- if 4 ■ -' LIST OF CASES WHERE THE OPINIONS OF THE COMMISSIONERS AND UMPIRE ARE REPORTED AT LENOTH. Page. Albion. — Seizure for cutting timber — Trading with the Indians without licence, &c., in Oregon Territory • 376 Cook et alb. — Claim of heirship to estates, and funds of intestate, in hands of British goTemment — Held not to be within jurisdiction of commiesion > 166 The Creole. — Mutiny of slaves, and seizure of vessel — Arrival in foreign port — Claimed by consul — Liberated— Compensation for 241 The Enterfrize. — Right pf shelter in foreign ports in stress of weather— Protection over cargo and persons, in such case, same as on high seas 167 Florida Bonds. — Liability for same, solely a debt of the Territory— no ground of claim against United States 246 Great Western Steamship Company. — Claim for drawback on coals imported for return trip of steamer — Construction of statute as to allowance of same 328 The Hermosa. — Wrecked — Slaves taken on board, wreckers to be forwarded — Seized and liberated — Claim for 238 Holford's Case. — Texas bonds — Claim for payment of— not embraced in commission — Effect of international union on prior indebtedness 382 Houghton's Case— Property taken l)y pirates— Recaptured by government cruiser — Portion of proceeds received into public Treasury — Allowance for 161 Hodson's Bat Company — Claim for redeeming from the Indians American settlers, and shipwrecked mariners from captivity with Indians in Oregon, before organ- ization of Territory 1C4 The John— Capture after treaty of peace in 1814— Construction of provision in treaties as to the time for peace to take effect in different latitudes 427 The Jones. — Seizure on charge of being concerned in slave trade — Acquitted— Sold for costs — Claim for 83 Kenwortht's Case.— New York custom house seizures- Settlement of suits— Claim to revise tliem under commission , 334 Viii LIST OF GASES. KERroRD &. Jenkini. — Licensed to trade during war — Detention while necessary (or safety of the army — Claim for 351 Kino and Gracie, (Barrt, agent.) — For return of excess of duties on woolen {[oods, *, under clause of equality witli most favored nations — Statute of limitations no bar to treaty provisions 305 Laurent's Case. — Domicil in foreign country in time of war — Effect of— Claim for losses in such case not admissible under former rights of citizenship 120 Af cCalmont, Greaves and Company. — Assesments of duties under temporary tariiT in Mexico — Claim for return of, on account of alledged mistake in, and subse- quent change made in tariff 339 McLeod's Case. — Arrest for criminal offence during border troubles — Assumption of acts by British government — Effect of on claim of party to release — Settlement of international disputes — A settlement of personal claims — Dependent on them 314 Pattison andCompant. — Claim fbr remission of excess of duties on cotton goods more than charged other governments — Construction of tariff of August 3U, 1842. . . . 3U1 Uhdb's Case. — Domicil abroad in war— Effect of license to trade — Seieure of goods — Claim for relief under order of Secretary 436 The Washington. — Construction of treaty of 181d as to fisheries — Bay of Fundy held to be an open arm of the sea, not subject to such British control as to exclude American fisheries « .* 170 Wirohan's Case, (agent.) — For return of excess of duties on cottons more than charged other governments— Construction of tariff of May 33, 1834 311 t Mary for Page. 351 in foods, t tiona no 305 Haim for 120 iry tariff d Bubse- »••••••• 339 ption of ttlement on them 314 tds more 842. . . . 3U1 436 idy held exclude no re than 311 #^- MESSAGE f or THE PRESIDENT OF THE UNITED STATES, COMMUNICATING, In compliance loith a resolution of the Senate of March 3, 1855, infor- mation relative to the proceedings of the commissioners for the adjust- ment of claims under the convention with Great Britain of February 8, 1853. AuGfST 12, 1856. — Read, ordered to lie on the table and be printed, and that 500 addi- tional copies be printed for the use of the Department of State. ■^SiS"**- To the Senate of the United States: In compliance with the resolution of the Senate of the 3d March, 1855", requesting information relative to the proceedings of the com- missioners for the adjustment of claims under the convention with Great Britain of the 8th of February, 1853^ I transmit a report from the Secretary of State, to whom the resolution was referred. FRANKLIN PIERCE. Washington, August 11, 1856. Department of State, Washington, August 9, 1850. The Secretary of State, to whom was referred the resolution of the Senate of the 3d March, 1855, requesting " the President to furnish to the Senate the report of the commissioners for the adjustment of claims under the convention of February 8, 1853, between the United States and Great Britain, with the decisions of the commissioners and umpire, and the arguments of the agents as reported by them, and that the usual number of copies of the same be printed for the use of the Senate, under the direction of the Department of State, to be properly bound, edited, and indexed," has the honor to lay before the President a copy ol all the papers called for by the resolution, which are on file in this department. Respectfully submitted. W. L. MARCY. To the President of the United States. ■'*TC': COPY OF RESOLUTION FOR THE PUBLICATION OF THE REPORT OF THE COMMISSIONERS. United States Senate, 3farch 3, 1855. Resolved, That the President be requested to furnish to the Senate the report of the commissioners for the adjustment of claims under the convention of February 8, 1853, between the United States and Great Britain, with the decisions of the commissioners and umpire, and the arguments of the agents as reported by them, and that the usual number of copies of the same be printed for the use of the Senate, under the direction of the Department of State ; said report to be properly bound, edited, and indexed. ^^-1' ^ '^-%' ORT OF THE « OFFICE OF COMMISSION, London, January 15, 1855. n REPORT OF THE COMMISSIONERS UNDER THE CONVENTION OF FEBRU- ARY 8, 1853, FOR THE ADJUSTMENT OF CLAIMS OF CITIZENS OF THE UNITED STATES AGAINST THE BRITISH GOVERNMENT, AND OF SUB- JECTS OF GREAT BRITAIN AGAINST THE UNITED STATES, TO THEIR RESPECTIVE GOVERNMENTS The undersigned commissioners, herewith, respectfully report to their respective governments their proceedings and awards, under the convention of February 8, 1853, for the adjustment of claims of citizens of the United States and subjects of Great Britain against either government. The cases submitted for the consideration of the commissioners have greatly exceeded the number originally anticipated. This has arisen from the fact that the agents of the governments have deemed it their duty to submit all claims coming within the period proscribed by the convention, which had been presented to either government for its interposition with the other. Many of these cases might never have been made a matter of con- sideration, had they not been thus brought forward. The mere statement of some of them would justify their rejection, but in most instances they have required very considerable investiga- tion. 6 REPORT OF COMMISSIONERS. Tho duties of the commissioners have thus been greatly increased beyond what was originally contemplated. Many of the cases also had formed the subject of long and serious discussions between the two governments. In the adjustment of these claims the commis- sioners have naturally felt the responsibility cast upon them, and have, therefore, devoted no inconsiderable amount of time and labor to their settlement, and they^have found it difficult to conclude the business of the commission within the time to which it had been extended. They have, however, passed upon all tho cases before them, and beg to report their action, and that of the umpire thereon, as the best result they have been able to attain in discharging the important duties intrusted to them. The papers herewith presented consist of the journal of proceed- ings of the commissioners and umpire ; the list of claims of the citi- zens or subjects of either country against the other, with the awards and opinions thereon ; together with the correspondence relative to the appointment of an umpire, and other matters pertaining to the com- mission. All which is respectfully submitted. N. G. UPHAM, United States Commissioner. EDMUND HOKNBY, British Commissioner PROCEEDINGS AND AWARDS OF THE COMMISSIONERS AND UMPIRE, UNDER THE Convention of February 'i, 1853, /oj- the adjustment of dams of citi- zens of the United States against the British government and of sub- jects of Great Britain against the United States. %-^. JOURNAL OF THE COMMISSION. 9 Wellington Chambers, Lancaster Place, Waterloo Bridge, London, September 15, 1853. On the eighth clay of February, one thousand eight hundred and fifty-three, a convention was concluded between the United States of America and her Britannic Majesty, for the adjustment of certain claims of citizens of the United States on the British goverment and of British subjects on the government of the United States, by means of a mixed commission to be duly constituted for that purpose, which convention is as follows : Convention bctiveen the United States of America and her Britannic Majesty for the settlement of outstanding claims of the citizens of either country against the other. Whereas, claims have at various times, since the signature of the treaty of peace and friendship between the United States of America and Great Britain, concluded at Ghent on the 24th of December, 1814, been made upon the government of the United States on the part of corporations, companies, and private individuals, subjects of her Bri- tannic Majesty, and upon the government of her Britannic Majesty 8 ADJUSTMENT OF CLAIMS UNDER THE on the part of corporations, companies, and private individuals, citi- 2en8 of the United States ; and whereas some of such claims are still pending and remain unsettled, the President of the United States of America and her Majesty the Queen of the United Kingdom of Great Britain and Ireland, being of opinion that a speedy and equitable set- tlement of all such claims will contribute much to the maintenance of the friendly feelings which subsist between the two countries, have resolved to make arrangements for that purpose by means of a conven- tion, and have named as their plenipotentiaries to confer and agree thereupon, that is to say — The President of the United States of America, Joseph Reed Ingersoll, envoy extraordinary and minister plenipotentiary of the United States to her Britannic Majesty ; And her Majesty the Queen of the United Kingdom of Great Britain and Ireland, the Right Honorable John Russell, (commonly called Lord John Russell,) a member of her Britannic Majesty's most honorable privy council, a member of parliament, and her Britannic Majesty's principal secretary of state for foreign affairs ; Who, after having communicated to each other their respective full powers, found in good and due form, have agreed as follows: Article I. The high contracting parties agree that all claims on the part of corporations, companies, or private individuals, citizens of the United States, ui)on the government of her Britannic Majesty, and all claims on the i)art of corporations, companies, or private individuals, sub- jects of her Britannic Majesty, upon the government of the United States, which may have been presented to either government for its interposition with the other since the signature of the treaty of peace and friendship, concluded between the United States of America and Great Britain at Ghent, on the 24th of December, 1814, and which yet remain unsettled, as well as any other such claims, which may be presented within the time specified in article III, hereinafter, shall be referred to two conmiissionors, to be appointed in the following manner, that is to say: One commissioner shall be named by the President of the United States, and one by her Britannic Majesty. In case of the death, absence, or incapacity of either commissioner, or in the event of either commissioner omitting or ceasing to act as such, th tiJ thl coj shl del del CONVENTION WITH GREAT BRITAIN. lividuals, citi- taims are still ited States of dom of Great equitable set- aintenance of intries, have } of a conven- fer and agree roseph Reed itiary of the m of Great , (commonly jesty's most Jr Britannic 5pective full vs : the part of the United I all claims duals, sub- the United ent for its iy of peace nerica and and which oil may be fter, shall following 3d by the ! Majesty. Jsioner, or :t as such, \ the President of the United States, or her Britannic Majesty, respec- tively, shall forthwith name another person to act as commissioner in the place or stead of the commissioner originally named. The commissioners, so named, shall meet at London at the earliest convenient period after they shall have been respectively*iamed ; and shall, before proceedfng to any business, make and subscribe a solemn declaration that they will impartially and carefully examine and decide, to the best of their judgment, and according to justice and equity, without fear, favor, or affection to their own country, upon all such claims as shall be laid before thcni on the part of the govern- ments of the United States and of her Britannic Majesty, respectively; and such declaration shall be entered on the record of their proceed- ings. The commissioners shall then, and before proceeding to any other business, name some third person to act as an arbitrator or umpire in any case or cases on which they may themselves differ in opinion. If they should not be able to agree upon the name of such third person, they shall each name a i)crson ; and in each and every case in which the commissioners may differ in opinion as to the decision which they ought to give, it shall be determined by lot which of the two persons so named shall be the arbitrator or umpire in that particular case. The person or persons so to be chosen to be arbitrator or umpire shall, before proceeding to act as such in any case, make and subscribe a solemn declaration in a form similar to that which shall already have been made and subscribed by the commissioners, which shall be en- tered on the record of their proceedings. In the event of the death, absence, or incapacity of such person or persons, or of his or their omitting, or declining, or ceasing to act as such arbitrator or umpire, another and different person shall be named as aforesaid, to act as such arbitrator or umpire in the place and stead of the person so originally named as aforesaid, and shall make and subscribe such declaration as aforesaid. Article II. The commissioners shall then forthwith conjointly proceed to the investigation of the claims which shall be presented to iheir notice. They shall investigate and decide upon such claims, in*such order, and in such manner, as they may conjointly think proper, but upon such evidence or information onlv as shall be furnished bv or on behalf 10 ADJUSTMENT OF CLAIMS UNDER THE of their respective governments. Tliey shall be bound to receive and peruse all written docunientH or statements which may be presented to them by or on behalf of their respective governments, in support of, or in answer to, any claim ; and to hear, if reiinired, one person on each side, (« Itehalf of each government, as counsel or agent for such government, on each and every separate claim. Should they fail to agree in opinion upon any individual claim, they shall call to their assistance the arbitrator or umpire whom they may have agreed to name, or who may be determined by lot, as the case may be ; and such arbitrator or umpire, after having examined the evidence adduced for and against the claim, and after having heard, if required, one person on each side as aforesaid, and consulted with the commissioners, shall decide thereupon finally, and without appeal. The decision of the commissioners, and of the arbitrator or umpire, shall be given upon each claim in writing, and shall be signed by them respectively. It shall be competent for each government to name one jjcrson to attend the commissioners as agent on its behalf, to present and support claims on its behalf, and to answer claims made u])on it, and to represent it generally in all matters connected with the investigation and decision thereof. The President of the United States of America, and her Majesty the Queen of the United Kingdom of Great Britain and Ireland, hereby solemnly and sincerely engage to consider the decision of the commissioners conjointly, or of the arbitrator or umpire, as the case may be, as absolutely final and conclusive upon each claim decided upon by them or him respectively, and to give full effect to such de- cisions without any objection, evasion, or delay whatsoever. It is agreed that no claim arising out of any transaction of a date prior to December 24, 1814, shall be admissible iiuder this convention. .i»^- Article III. Every claim shall be presented to the commissioners within six months from the day of their first meeting, unless in any case where reasons for delay shall be established to the satisfaction of the com- missioners, or of the arbitrator or umpire, in the event of the com- missioners differing in opinion thereupon ; and then, and in any such case, the period for presenting the claim may be extended to any time not exceeding three months longer. to receive and )e presented to in support of, DUO person on iigent for such !ns shall be onths from signed the ^ear of our . [L.S.] [L. S.] Ion on the ent of the advice and liam, com- c Majesty, ited King- effect tho missionerij ight hun- igcd their ch are as 'i COPY OF THE COMMISSION OP THE AMERICAN COMMISSIONER. Franklin Pierce, President of the United States of America, to all who shall see these presents, greeting : Know ye, that reposing special trust and confidence in the integrity and abilities of Nathaniel G. Ui)ham, of New Hampshire^ I have nominated and, by and with the advice and consent of the Senate, do appoint him commissioner of the United States, under the convention with her Britannic Majesty on the subject of claims, and do authorize and empower him to execute and fulfil the duties of that office accord- ing to law, and to have and to hold the said office with all the powers, privileges, and emoluments thereunto of right appertaining unto him, the said Nathaniel G. Uphain. In testimony whereof, I have caused these letters to be made patent 'and the seal of the United States to be hereunto affixed. Given under my hand, at the city of Washington, the twenty-third day of March, in the year of our Lord one thousand eight hundred and fifty-three, and of the independence of the United States the seventy-seventh. FRANKLIN PIERCE. By the Piesident : W. L. Marcy, Secretary of State. COPY OF THE COMMISSIOX OF HER BRITANXIC MAJESTY'S COMMISSIOXER. VICTORIA R. Victoria, by the grace of God, Queen of the United Kingdom of Great Britain and Ireland, defender of the faith, &c., &c., to all and singular to wliom those presents shall come, greeting : Whereas a convention was concluded and signed at London, on the eighth day of February, one thousand eight hundred and fifty-three, between us and our good friends the United States of America, for the settlement of outstanding claims of the one contracting party upon tlie otlier by means of a mixed commission : Now know ye, that we, reposing especial trust and confidence in the approved learning, wisdom, and fidelity of our trusty and well be- u ADJUSTMENT OF CLAIMS UNDER THE loved Edmund Hornby, esquire, have named, made, constituted, and appointed, and do, by these presents, name, make, constitute, and appoint him our commissioner, under and pursuant to the said con- vention, to meet the commissioner appointed, or to be appointed, on the part of our good friends the United States of America, and, in conjunction with him, to investigate and decide upon all such claims as shall be presented to the notice of the commissioners, according to the^rue intent and meaning of the convention above mentioned. In witness whereof, we have signed these presents with our own royal hand. Given at our court at Osborne House, the twenty-sixth day of August, in the year of our Lord one thousand eiglit hundred and fifty-three, and in the seventeenth year of our reign. By her Majesty's command : CLAKENDON. COPY OF DECLARATION MADE AND SUBSCRIBED BY THE COMMISSIONERS. We, the undersigned commissioners, appointed in pursuance of a convention for the adjustment of certain claims of citizens of the United States on tlie British government, and of British subjects on the government of tl\e United States, concluded at London the eighth day of February, one thousand eight hundred and fifty-three, do sev- erally and solemnly declare that we will impartially and carefully examine and decide, to the best of our judgment and according to justice and equity, without fear, favor, or affection to our countries, upon all such claims as shall be laid before us on the part of the governments of the United States and of her Britannic Majesty re- spectively. In witness whereof we have, this fifteenth day of September, one thousand eiglit hundred and fifty-three, made and subscribed this our solemn declaration. NATHANIEL G. UPHAM, Commissioner on the part of the United States. EDMUND HORNBY, Commissioner on the part of her Majesty. CONVENTION WITH GREAT BRITAIN. 15 tituted, and stitute, and le said con- )pointcd, on •ica, and, in such claims iccording to ;ioned. th our own xth day of indred and ENDON. SIOXERS. mance of a ;ens of the subjects on tlie eighth ee, do scv- 1 carefully cording to countries, )art of the ilajesty re- niber, one 3d this our I States. Majesty. THURSDAY, September 15, 1853. I The commissioners proceeded, in compliance with the first article iof the convention, to the selection of an arbitrator " or umpire to act »in any case or cases on which the commissioners might differ in opinion." The names pf several gentlemen were mentioned on either [side, and the subject Avas deferred for further consideration. The mode of notifying claimants of the meeting of the commissioners land of the time within which their claims should be presented was con- isidered, and it was determined that the commissioners should severally I notify their respective governments of the time and place of meeting of I the commission, and request that such notice should be given by them to claimants of the pendency of the commission as they should deem proper ; which resolution was duly communicated to the two govern- ments. The commissioners then adjourned to meet on Saturday, the ; -seventeenth instant, at half-past twelve. I SATURDAY, September 17, 1853. The commissioners met i)ursuant to adjournment, and after further conference in reference to tlie appointment of an umpire, adjourned until Monday, the IDtli instant, at half-past twelve o'clock. u MONDAY, September 19, 1853. The commissioners agreed that they would communicate to each i other in writing their opinions relative to the proper qualifications of an umpire, a-nd the nominations they proposed to make, and further adjourned to meet on Thursday, tlie twenty-second instant. I THURSDAY, September 22, 1853. The commissioners met pursuant to adjournment. The subject of the future meetings of the commissioners was taken into consideration, and it was determined tliat from and after tliis date meetings be holden at the office of the commission, at '.> Wellington Chambers, Lancaster . Place, Waterloo Bridge, London, daily, from twelve to three o'clock, Tintil otherwise ordered. ^ WEDNESDAY, October 12, 1853. § Various letters having jiassed l)etween the commissioners relative to the choice of an umpire, which letters are placed on file, they this day 16 ADJUSTMENT OF CLAIMS UNDER THE agreed on the appointment of Martin Van Buren, late President of the United States, now in Florence, to act as umpire in case of disa- greement between them, THURSDAY, October 13, 1853. I A joint letter was drawn up and forwarded to Mr. Van Buren, com- municating to him his appointment by the commissioners as umpire under the convention between the United States and Great Britain of February 8, 1853. The commissioners then proceeded to the selection of a secretary or clerk, in accordance with the sixth article of the convention, and Nathaniel L. Upham was appointed and entered upon the duties of his office. tf The clerk was directed to make up the records of the commission to the present time, from minutes furnished by the commissioners. SATURDAY, October 15, 1853. The following rules and regulations relative to the transaction of business before the commissioners were adopted : I. The secretary, or clerk, shall keep a docket, and enter thereon a list of all claims as soon as they shall be filed, specifying briefly the grounds and nature of sucli claim. He shall also keep duplicate records of the proceedings had before the commissioners, and of the docket of claims filed with them, so that one copy of each shall be supplied to each government. II. Cases shall be considered in order for the action of the commis- sioners whenever they shall be presented to them for their decision, or, if parties or agents for the governments appear, Avlieiiever they shall agree that the same shall bo taken up for hearing. III. All claims must be presented within six months from the fif- teenth of September last. unh?ss reasons be assigned for the delay satisl'actory to the commissioners, and where cases, by leave of the conmiissioners, arc presented after sucli time, they will be required to be in order for hearing as soon after presenting the same as may be. IV. Cases presented within the first six months, where agents for the claimants appear, and which have not been previously disposed of, will be required to be in order for hearing and decision at any time alter the said six months the commissioners may direct. C30NVENTI0N WITH GREAT BRITAIN. 17 President of I case of disa- i Buren, com- ers as umpire eat Britain of a secretary or ivention, and the duties of ommission to doners. transaction of ter thereon a briefly the s liad before til them, so nt. the commip- eir decision, lenever they from the fif- )r the dehiy leave of the required to i as may be. e agents for disposed of, at any time V. Claims presented to the commissioners by the agents of either government will be regarded as presented by their respective govern- ments, in accordance with the provisions of the convention. TUESDAY, October 18, 1853. • The commissioners having met as usual, John A. Thomas, esq., agent of claims on the part of the government of the United States, was introduced, and presented to them his commission from the De- partment of State, a copy of which was ordered to be placed on record, which, on being read, is as follows : COMMISSION OF THE AGENT ON THE PART OF THE GOVERNMENT OF THE UNITED STATES. Franklin Pierce, President of the United States of America, to all who shall see these presents, greeting : Know ye, that reposing special trust and confidence in the integrity and ability of John A. Thomas, of New York, I do appoint him to be agent of the United States under the convention with her Britannic Majesty of February 8, 1853, on the subject of claims, and do au- thorize and empower him to execute and fulfil the duties of that offioe according to law. And to have and to held the said office with all the powers, privi- leges, and emoluments thereunto of right appertaining unto him, the said John A. Thomas, during the pleasure of the President of the United States. In testimony whereof I have caused these letters to be made patent and tlie seal of the United States to be hereunto affixed. Given under my hand, at the city of Washington, the nineteenth day of April, in the year of our Lord one thousand eight hundred and fifty-three, and of tlie independence of the United States of America the seventy-seventh. FRANKLIN PIERCE. By the President : William L. Marcy, Secretary of State. 18 ADJUSTMENT OP CLAIMS UNDER THE FKIDAY, October 21, 1853. General Thomas, United States agent, presented the statement of, and the testimony in, the claim of Messrs. Rogers & Brothers, of Salem, Massachusetts ; he also introduced J. C. Bancroft Davis as private agent of the claimants in the above case. After a partial hearing, the further consideration of the claim was referred to a future meeting, and the commissioners adjourned. FRIDAY October 28, 1853. A letter was received by the commissioners from Mr. Van Buren, stating his inability to attend to the duties of the office of umpire on account of other engagements, and declining the acceptance of the appointment ; which letter was directed to be placed on file. MONDAY, October 31, 1853. The commissioners, after conferring relative to the selection of an umpire in the place of Mr. Van Buren, agreed upon Joshua Bates, esq., of London, to act as arbitrator, or umpire, in case of disagree- ment between them. General Thomas presented papers and evidence relative to the seizure and claim of the barque Jones, and introduced Mr. Rockwell, agent of the claimants, to the commissioners. A partial hearing was had in reference to the case, when its further consideration was post- poned until the agent appointed by her Majesty's government could attend. TUESDAY, November 1, 1853. The commissioners drew up a joint letter to Mr. Van Buren, acknowledging the receipt of his note of October the twenty-second, in which he declines to accept the appointment of umpire. They further notified, by letter, Mr. Bates of their appointment of him to act as umpire in case of a disagreement between the commis- sioners ; copies of which letters were ordered to be placed on file. WEDNESDAY, November 2, 1853. A letter was received from Mr. Bates accepting the appointment of arbitrator, or umpire, tendered him by the commissioners ; which let- ter was placed on file. CONVENTION WITH GREAT BRITAIN. 19 itement of^ Tothers, of t Davis as I claim was ned. 7 an Buren, umpire on ance of the le. ction of an shua Bates, of disagree- itive to the r. Rockwell, leaving was >n was post- nment could Van Buren, enty-second, pointment of the commis- on file. pointment of which let- I MONDAY, November 14, 1853. Mr. Bates attended the meeting of the commissioners and received from them liis commission as arbitrator, or umpire, which is as fol- lows : COPY OF THE umpire's COMMISSION. To all and singular to ivhom these presents shall come, greeting : Whereas, a convention was concluded and signed, at London, on the eighth day of February, one thousand eight hundred and fifty- three, between the United States of America and her Britannic Ma- jesty, for the adjustment of certain outstanding claims of citizens of either government against the other, by which it is provided that one commissioner shall be named by each of said governments, with power to investigate and decide upon such claims, and that the said commis- sioners shall name some tliird person to act as arbitrator, or umpire, in any case or cases on which they may differ in opinion ; and the honorable Nathaniel G, Upham having been appointed commissioner on the part of the United States, and Edmund Hornby, esquire, on the part of her Britannic Majesty, and having been, severally, duly qualified and entered on the duties of their commission, and on the thirty-first day of October, 1853, having agreed on Joshua Bates, esquire, of London, as arbitrator, or umpire : Now, therefore, be it known that we, the undersigned commis- sioners, reposing e8i)ecial trust and confidence in the impartiality, in- tegrity, and ability of said Joshua Bates, esquire, do hereby, by virtue of the authority vested in us as aforesaid, appoint him arbitrator, or umpire, under said convention, and do authorize and empower him to execute and fulfil the duties of said offit , with all the powers and privileges connected therewith, according to the provisions of the con- vention. In witness whereof, we have hereunto severally affixed our signa- tures this thirty-first day of October, one thousand eight hundred and fifty-three. NATHANIEL G. UPHAM, mmissioner on the part of the United States. EDMUND HORNBY, 'Commissioner on the part of Great Britain. 20 ADJUSTMENT OP CLAIMS UNDER THE The umpire then made and subscribed the following solemn decla- ration, in accordance with the provisions of the first article of the convention : COPY OP THE umpire's declaration. I hereby solemnly declare that I will impartially and carefully ex- amine and decide, according to tlie best of my judgment and accord- ing to justice and equity, without fear, favor, or affection, to the government of the United States or of her Britannic Majesty, all sucli cliiiuiH as may be submitted to me as arbitrator or umpire by the commiissiotiers of the said governments appointed for the adjustment of certain claims on the part of citizens of either of the said govern- ments against the other, under a convention signed at London, Feb- ruary eiglit, one thousand eight hundred and fifty-three. In witness whereof, I have, this fourteenth day of November, made and subscribed this solemn declaration. JOSHUA BATES. THURSDAY, November 17, 1853. James Hannen, esq., attended before the commissioners and pre- sented his appointment as agent of claims on behalf of the govern- ment of her Britannic Majesty, a copy of which was ordered to be placed on record. COMMISSION OF THE AGENT ON THE PART OP GREAT BRITAIN. VICTORIA R. Victoria, by the grace of God, Queen of the United Kingdom of Great Britain and Ireland, defender of the faith, &c., &c., &c., to all and singular to wliom those presents shall come, greeting: Whereas, a convention was concluded and signed at London, on the eiglitli day of February, one thousand eight hundred and fifty- three, between us and our good friends the United States of America, for the .settlement of outstanding chiinis of one contracting party upon the other by means of a mixed commission: Now know ye, that we, reposing especial trust and confidence in the approved learning, wisdom, and fidelity, of our trusty and well beloved James Hannen, esq., have named, made, constituted, and ap- pointed, and do by these presents name, make, constitute, and ap- CONVENTION WITH GREAT BRITAIN. 21 Icmn decla- ticlo of the arcfnlly ex- and accord- tion, to the Vlajenty, all ipire by the adjustment 5aid govern- ondon, Feb- imbei'j made BATES. ii's and pre- the govcrn- dered to be Am. Kingdom of , &c., to all London, on d and iifty- of America, ; party upon :)nfidonce in sty and well ted, and ap- ite, and ap- point him our agent, under and pursuant to the said convention, and do hereby authorize and empower him to act in that cai)acity on our part in regard to all claims which may have been, or which may be, presented to the notice of the commissioners appointed or to be c pointed by us, and by the President of the United States of America, under and pursuant to the convention aforesaid. In witness whereof, we have signed these presents with our royal hand. Given at our court, at Windsor Castle, the sixteenth day of Novem- I ber, in the year of our Lord one thousand eight hundred and fifty- three, and in the seventeenth year of our reign. By her Majesty's command : CLARENDON. '^K' MONDAY, November 28, 1853. Further hearing was had on the claim of Messrs. Rogers & Co. General Thomas, United States agent, offered affidavits on belialf of |the owners of the barque Jones, that their vessel was not engaged in Ithe slave trade; and, in addition, a statement of the amount of dara- iage claimed. He also presented an abstract of the claim of William Cook and lothers, avowing themselves to be the heirs of one Mrs. Frances Shard, land entitled to such property as she had died possessed of, and which, Jfor want of representatives, it was alleged, had lapsed to the crown, ^nd was in the possession of her Britannic Majesty's government. THURSDAY, December 1, 1853. Mr. Hanncn, agent of her Majesty's government, presented to the commissioners the claim of Messrs. Kerford & Jenkin, for losses sus- jtained through a detention by the United States army of merchandise forwarded by them to Mexico during the years 184G and 1847. SATURDAY, December 3, 1853. j Mr. Hannen presented the claim of William McGlinchy, for the |illegal seizure and detention of certain papers and property by United |States custom-house officers on the river St. John. f ■A ADJUSTMENT OP CLAIMS UNDER THE TUESDAY, December 6, 1853. The claim of William Allen, for the seizure and detention, at San Francisco, of the Joseph Albino, by United States custom-house offi- cers, under charge of smuggling, was submitted to the commissioners, and was disallowed. The claim of Messrs. Loback & Co., for the seizure of logwood, at Tabasco, by United States naval officers, was also submitted to the commissioners, and was disallowed. WEDNESDAY, December 1, 1853. Mr. Hannen presented the claim of Messrs. Calmont & Co. for the seizure of goods by Mexicans while under convoy of United States forces, which was disallowed. A claim was then presented for the return of the duties paid on the goods seized, which was deferred for consideration. THURSDAY, December 15, 1853. Mr. Hannen attended and took exception to the jurisdiction of the commissioners in the case of William Cook and others, and presented a protest against the same, which was ordered to be placed on file. FRIDAY, December 30, 1853. Mr. Hannen presented the claim of Christopher Richardson for the seizure of the Frances and Eliza, at New Orleans, and the claim of Messrs. Calmont & Greaves, for excess of duties levied on their goods at Vera Cruz. TUESDAY, January 3, 1854. Mr, Hannen presented the claim of George Buckham for the seizure and sale of the brig Lady Shaw Stewart, at San Francisco, for alleged violation of the revenue laws. SATURDAY, January 7, 1854. Mr. Hannen presented the claim of Francis Watson and others, for lands in the territory formerly claimed by New Brunswick, but now, by adjustment of the boundary, situated in the State of Maine. CONVENTION WITH GREAT BRITAIN. 2S ntion, at San m -house offi- mraissioners, ' logwood, at ttitted to the it & Co. for United States s paid on the liction of the md presented ed on file. irdson for the the claim of i^ied on their MONDAY, January 9, 1854. Mr. Hannen presented the claim of Lord Carteret to lands in North and South Carolina. TUESDAY, January 10, 1854. Mr. Hannen presented the claim of the Earl of Dartmouth to lands in East Florida. FRIDAY, January 13, 1854. Mr. Hannen presented the claim of Jolin Potts for damages sus- tained in Chihuahua, in Mexico, from the American forces. MONDAY, January 16, 1854. Mr, Hannen presented the claim of the Messrs. Laurents for the seizure of property in Mexico by General Scott. I FRIDAY, January 20, 1854. Mr. Hannen presented the claim of John Lidgett for the alleged illegal seizure of the ship Albion by the custom-house authorities of the Territory of Oregon. TUESDAY, January 24, 1854. General Thomas presented the claim of Thomas Tyson, of Balti- i more, for the seizure of the schooner Fidelity, at Sierra Leone, by the ' collector of that port, in 1825. or the seizure :o, for alleged I and others, runswick, but ate of Maine. I FRIDAY, January 27, 1854. Mr. Hannen presented the claim of Thomas Rider to remuneration for losses and injury sustained by his arrest and detention at Matamo- ras by the military authorities of the United States. THURSDAY, February 9, 1854. General Thomas presented the claim of the fishing schooner Caro- line Knight, for its illegal seizure and sale, at Prince Edward's Island, by the officers of her Majesty's government. 24 ADJUSTMENT OF CLAIMS UNDER THE FRIDAY, Fkbruary 17, 1854. Mr. Hannca presented the claim of MeHsrs. Wliitemill & Lyon for damages caused by their brigantine, tlio Confidence, being run down in the Straits of Gibraltar, by the United States frigate Constitution, in December, 1850. THURSDAY, Febiiuary 23, 1854. General Thomas presented the affidavits of William Mayhew, rela- tive to the claim of Messrs. Rogers & Brothers, which were ordered to be placed on file. Mr. Hannen presented the claim of William Patterson for injuries received from the United States forces at Matamoras. MONDAY, February 27, 1854. Further hearing was had relative to the claim of Messrs. Rogers & Brothers, which was submitted. The claim of Thomas Rider was then argued by the agents, and, after some discussion, deferred for further consideration. MONDAY, March 6, 1854. The case of the Frances and Eliza, which vessel was seized at New Orleans by the United States revenue officers, was considered. Mr. Hannen prr^sented the claim of Duncan Gibbs for the seizure of the ship Baron Renfrew, in California ; and the claim of James Crooks for amount of judgment of the court of admiralty, in the case of the Lord Nelson, which was seized, prior to the war of 1812, by the United States ship-of-war Oneida, on Lake Ontario. MONDAY, March 13, 1854. Mr. Hannen presented, on behalf of the government of her Majesty, the following claims: Messrs. Glen & Co. Maurice, Evans & Co. Barque Pearl. The ship Herald. Charles Green. The James Mitchell. CONVENTION WITH GREAT BRITAIN. Hudson Bay Coinpany. A claiiii for drawback. For Hupplies furniHlu'd American troopa. For seizure of the Hchooner Cadboro'. For interruption of trade of the wteamor Prince of Wales, on tlie Columbia river. For return of certain revenue duties. For sei/.uro of the lieaver and Mary Dare. The Union. JoHOpb Wilson. The Young Dixon. Godfrey, Pattison & Co. Messrs. Butterficld & Bros. The Irene. Messrs. Coteswortb, Powell & Pryor. H. U. Dcrwig and others, Florida bondholders. Miller & Mackintosh. George Houghton. Hon. W. Black. Sam. C. Johnston. Thomas Whyte. Alexander McLeod. P. B. Murphy. Charles B. Hall. The Mary Anne. The Sir Robert Peel. The Great Western Steamship Co. G. Rotchford Clarke. Representatives of Colonel Elias Durnford. Messrs. Baker & Co. Anglo-Mexican Mint Co. The Crosthwaite. Ship-owner's Society. The Prosperity. The Duckenfield. The Science. *■ J! : 26 ADJUSTMENT OP CLAIMS UNDER THE i TUESDAY, March 14, 1854. General Thomas presented papers relative to the following claims, on behalf of the government of the United States : Brig Creole. Schooner John. Brig Enterprize. Sch ner Washington. The Levan Lank. Brigantine Volusia. Brig Cyrus. Schooner Director The Maria Dolores. The Tigris and Seamew The Only Son. The Julius and Edward. Brig Lawrence Brig Charlotte. The Jubilee. John McClure and others. The Cicero. The Olive Branch. ♦ Brig Evelina. Schooner Hero. Schooner Washington, seized 1818. Schooner Argus. The Robert. ■I Schooner Hermosa. Barque John A. Robb. The Joseph Cowperthwait. Schooner Pallas. The Elvira. George Attwood. And a claim for return of duties levied on woolen goods. WEDNESDAY, March 15, 1854. The following claims, for return of money collected for duties in New York, were presented by Mr. Hannen, viz: CONVENTION WITH GREAT BRITAIN. 27 James Buckley. Arnon Buckley. James Mallalieu. Francis 8. Buckley. Charles Kenworthy. George Shaw. Samuel Bradbury. John Piatt. Joseph Wrigley. William Broadbent. Charles Clifton. James Shaw. Amon Schofield. He also presented the claims of — William Bottomley's executors. James Kogers. The executors of James Holford. Sam. Shaw. Sam. Bradbury. Piatt & Duncan. George Shaw. John Taylor. Alfred T. Wood. Mr. Hannen also presented the claim of Charles Wirgman, agent of Timothy Wiggin, J. Knight & Co.^ and of fifty-one others, for re- l)ayment of excess of duties charged on cotton goods in ports of the United States. Hearing was had in the case of the Frances & Eliza, and it was sub- mitted for the decision of the commissioners. FRIDAY, March 17, 1854. Further hearing was had in the case of the barque Jones, which vessel had been seized at St. Helena, on charge of being engaged in the slave trade, and for being in British waters without a national character. SATURDAY, March 18, 1854. The hearing in the case of the barque Jones was continued, and the claim was finally submitted to the commissioners. '8 ADJUSTMENT OF CLAIMS UNDER THE f V TUESDAY, March 21, 1854. Mr. Hanncn presented, by leave, the claim of Messrs. Weymouth and others, respecting certain bonds guarantied by the Territory of Florida. • Hearing was had on the claim of Duncan Gibbs, when the case was closed and submitted for decision. THURSDAY, Makcii 23, 1854. Hearing was had on the claim of Thomas Tyson, relative to the seizure of the schooner Fidelity, of Sierra Leone, on a charge of having smuggled goods on a previous voyage, and the case was submitted. The claim of James Crooks, relative to the Lord Nelson, was also heard and submitted. MONDAY, April 3, 1854. The case of William Cook and others was assigned for hearing on the 13th April. Hearing was had by the agents in the case of the Albion, John Lidgett, owner. WEDNESDAY, April 5, 1854. Letters were submitted by General Thomas, from the State Depart- ment, by which it appeared that the case of William McGlinchy, which had been heard on the third of December last, had been settled. Hearing was then had on the question of the jurisdiction of the court in the claim of the Messrs. Laurents, and after full argument of the same it was submitted to the commissioners. SATURDAY, April 8, 1854. * General Thomas made some remarks in continuation of the hearing in the case of the Messrs. Laurents. Hearing was had on the claim of Joseph Wilson, . officer of the Canadian government, on account of an alleged illegal arrest in Michigan, and the case was submitted to the commissioners. The claim of Alfred T. Wood for compensation, in consequence of his being arrested and detained by citizens of the State of Maine while resident in New Brunswick, was also submitted. CONVENTION WITH GREAT BRITAIN. m TUESDAY, Ai'UiL 11, 1854. General Tliomas presented affidavits concerning the goods of certain parties on board the Jones. Hearing was had on the claim of Samuel Johnston for damage on a charge of viohiting the immigration act, and the case was submitted for decision. Mr. Ilancien was heard on the chiim of Robert Hill for damage arising from the capture of the Union by an American ship-of-war after ponce had taken place, and the same was submitted after a few remarks by the agent of the United States government_, and disallowed. The claim of Riddell Robson, for the seizure and detention of the Irene, was also submitted for decision and disallowed. THURSDAY, Apuil 20, 1854. J. L. Clarke, esq., attended before the commissioners, and sub- mitted, as the attorney of the claimants, an argument in answer to the protest filed by the agent of her Majesty's government as to the claim of William Cook and others. Mr. Hannen proposed to reply in writing, and the case was ad- journed for this purpose. SATURDAY, Ai-iul 22, 1854. General Thomas presented, by leave, the claim of Amos Frazer as to the brig Douglas. The commissioners having been unable to agree in the case of the barque Jones, opinions were severally delivered by them, and the case was directed to be connnitted to the decision of the umpire. Some discussion was had on the case of McCalmont & Greaves, when the further hearing of the same was postponed. TUESDAY, Ai'iuL 25, 1854. The hearing on the claim of ]\[ossrs. (*almont & Greaves was con- tim;ed, and the case was tinally submitted for the decision of the com- missioners. FRIDAY, May 5, 1854. Heaving was had in the claim of Mr. G. Rotchford Clarke for the recovery of the value of lands in Vermont, granted prior to the ad- mission of that State into the Union. 80 ADJUSTMENT OF CLAIMS UNDER THE SATURDAY, May 6, 1854. Mr. Clarke was further heard relative to his claim to lands now in the State of Vermont, and the case was submitted for the decision of the commissioners. WEDNESDAY, May 10, 1854. Mr. John L. Clarke, counsel in the case of the schooner John, cap- tured after peace was concluded in 1814, was heard, and the claim submitted. Mr. Hannen read his reply to the argument filed by Mr. Clarke in the case of William Cook and others. SATURDAY, May 13, 1854. Hearing was had as to the brig Lady Shaw Stewart, seized at San Francisco. General Thomas submitted, by leave, additional evidence in the case of the Frances and Eliza. Hearing was had in the case of the ship Albion, Lidgett, owner. A memorial was also submitted by General Thomas in the claim of the brig Douglas. The case of the Enterprize was assigned for hearing on Tuesday, the 23d of Mav instant. I'-i MONDAY, May 15, 1854. Mr. Hannen made further remarks as to the question of damage in the case of the brig Lady Shaw Stewart, and the case was submitted. General Thomas introduced, by leave, the affidavit of Mr. Frye, in the case of the barque Jones. THURSDAY, May 18, 1854. Hearing was had in the case of the barque Pearl, James Tindale, owner, and the case was submitted. Mr. Hannen was heard in the claim of Messrs, McCalmont & Co. for return of duties paid on goods afterwards seized by Americans. The umpire met the commissioners by their appointment, and ar- rangements were made as to the mode of proceeding in the cases to bt submitted for his decision. i!;i CONVENTION WITH GREAT BRITAIN. u The papers in the claim of the barque Jones, on which the commis- sioners had disagreed, with the opinions delivered by them, were directed to be sent to the umpire. TUESDAY, May 23, 1854. Mr. Hannen presented a memorial on behalf of James Crooks, in the case of the Lord Nelson. Various English and American claims for returns of duties were presented by Messrs. Hannen and Thomas. Hearing was commenced in the case of the brig Enterprize. WEDNESDAY, May 24, 1854. Hearing in the case of the Enterprize was continued and concluded, and the case was submitted for the decision of the commissioners. FRIDAY, May 26, 1854. The claims of the representatives of Colonel Elias Durnford, and the claim of Thomas Whyte, for certain lands in Florida, was sub- mitted by Mr. Hannen. Hearing was also had on the claims of Hon. W. Black and of Fran- cis Watson and others, to lands in the State of Maine, and on the claim of George Houghton for specie taken from him by pirates, who were subsequently captured by a United States vessel of war. Mr. Hannen also presented, by leave, the claim of certain indivi- dual holders of bonds guarantied by the Territory of Florida. THURSDAY, June 1, 1854. General Thomas presented, by leave of the commissioners, the claim of Robert Roberts for the seizure of the ship Amelia, in January, 1815. SATURDAY, June 3, 1854. Hearing was had in the case of the brig Creole, tlie ship Amelia, and the claim of James Young, for slaves captured during the war and sold in the West Indies by British government officers. These claims were then submitted to the commissioners for decision. The case of William Cook and others was assigned for Wednesday, 19th instant. 32 ADJUSTMENT OF CLAIMS UNDER THE ns WEDNESDAY, June 1, 1854. In the case of the barque Jones. Genern,! Thomas presented certain papers and correspondence from tlie legation of the United States in London, which were directed to be furnished to the umpire. He also presented the correspondence of the governments in the case of the Creole. Mr. Hfinnen presented the claim of Messrs. Dawson and others, for bonds issued by the republic of Texas. The case of the Confidence was assigned for hearing on Saturday, the 10th, and the cases of Pattison & Mitchell on Thursday, the 29th instant. FRIDAY, June 9, 1854. General Thomas, by leave, presented the claim of the brig Brook- line, for the seizure, in 1848, and removal of one of her crew as a deserter from her Majesty's navy. SATURDAY, June 10, 1854. A hearing was had in the case of the brigantine Confidence, by Dr. Adams, the special agent of the claimants, and General Thomas. General Thomas then, by leave, presented two claims for property on board the brig Creole, and the claim of Henry Schieflfelin for the detention and refusal of the British government to carry out an award of the court of admiralty. MONDAY, June 12, 1854. The commissioners took into consideration the propriety of requesting from the two governments an extension of the time originally assigned for the termination of the commission, the better to enable them to dispose of the very great and unanticipated amount of business which had devolved upon them, and a letter was drawn up by them to the American minister, and to her Majesty's principal secretary of state for foreign affairs, recommending the extension of the commission for four months. WEDNESDAY, June 14, 1854. General Thomas, by leave, presented the memorial of Charles Barry, in behalf of claims for returns of duties on woolens, levied contrary CONVENTION WITH GREAT BRITAIN. sa ed certain [ States in in the case )thers, for Saturday, -, the 29th ig Brook- crew as a ice, by Dr. lomas. r property lin for the t an award equesting y assigned e them to ss which oiu to the y of state nission for 10 les Barry, I contrary to the treaty of 1815, and also the claims of James Heard and of the Merchants' Insurance Company of New Orleans, to property in slaves on hoard the hrig (Jreole. Mr. Hannen presented the claim of Charles Ulide for the seizure of goods by the United States army, and a memorial of Andrew Mitchell relative to the return of duties levied contrary to the treaty of 1815. Hearing was had on the claim of William Cook and others by Mr. John L. Clark, attorney for the claimants, and tlie case was submitted to the commissioners. THURSDAY, Junk 15, 1854. Mr. llauneii presented a memorial on behalf of Messrs. ffodfrey, Pattison & Co., for interest on tlieir claim. The cummis-sioners received a letter from the counsel on the claim of the Florida bondholders, asking for a postponement of the hearing in their case to June 21, which was agreed to, and the secretary was directed to request the attendance of the umi)ire at that time. Mr. Charles Barry, by leave, presented claims relative to the return of duties on woolens. MONDAY, June 10, 1854. (leneral Thomas submitted, by permission, papers in the oases of the l.rig Enterpri/e and schooner Hermosa, and in that of the Brookline. In the case of the Confidence, Mr. Hannen presented a letter written by one of the sailors on board, dated at Lisbon. The case of Piatt & Duncan was assigned for hearing on Saturday, July 1, at 1 1 o'clock. WEDNESDAY, Jine '1\, 1854. Hearing was had on the claim of the Florida bondholders. Mr. Rolt, Queen's counsel, and Mr. Cairns, special agents and counsel of the claimants, and Mr. Thomas for the United States ; the case was committed for the decision of the commissioners. Mr. Bates, the umpire, attended on the hearing. SATURDAY, June 24, 1854. In the claim of Messrs. Kerford & Jenkin, for damages caused through delays of a caravan of merchandise by United States forces in Mexico, a hearing was had and the case submitted. 3 84^ ADJUSTMENT OF CI.AIMS UNDER THE THURSDAY, JixR 29, 1854. The claim of Messrs. Pattison & Co., and of Andrew Mitchell, for return of duties levied contrary to treaty of ISl.', was heard and sub- 'mitted. * In the claim of the brig Brooklino a hearing was also had, and the case was Kubmitted. SATURDAY, July 1, 1854. In the claim of Messrs. Piatt tV: Duncan, hearing was had before 'Hf: the commissioners by Mr. Butt, Queen's counsel, and special agent and counsel of the claimants, and the case was submitted for decision. WEDNESDAY, Jlly 6, 1854. General Thomas presented for hearing the claim of the brigantine Volusia, for seizure and condemnation on charge of being concerned in the slave trade, which was submitted. Hearing was had on the claim of the Great Western Steamship Company, for return of duties paiil on coals used at sea, and the case was submitted. SATURDAY, July 8, 1854. Hearing was had on the claim of Messrs. liutteriield & Brothers, and the case was submitted. General Thomas, on behalf of the claimant.!*, jiresented the protest of the captain in the case of the Volusia. Hearing was had on the claims of Timothy Wiggins, et als., (Wirg- man, agent,) and on the claim of J. P. Oldfield it Co.; and the cases were submitted for decision. WEDNESDAY. July 12. 1854. The claim of the executors of James HoUbrd was a.'-signed for hear- ing July 18. Mr. Hannen presented aflidavits in llie case of Joseph Wilson, heard April 8, 1854. Hearing was had on the claim of the owners of tlie schooner Caroline Knight, for seizure of the same in 1852; and the ca.se was submitted to the commissioners. jUl, CONVENTION WITH GEEAT BRITAIN. 35 cll, for 1(1 8ub- md the I before il agent lecision. igantine oncerned teamship . the case Brothers, 10 protest ,(Wirg- the cases I for hear- Wilson, n- Caroline subnritted TUESDAY, July 18, 1854. Hearing was had on behalf of the executors of James IlolforJ, rela- tive to the i»aynient of Texan bonds, by Mr. Cairns, special agent of the claimants. General Thomas read a protest against the jurisdic- tion of the commissioners over this case, which was directed to be placed on file. The case of Messrs. Dawson and others was assigned for hearing on Friday the 28th, and those of the Hudson Bay Company on Saturday the 29th instant. SATURDAY, July 15, 1854. The claims of the brig Crosthwaite, the Prosperity, the ship Science, and the Duckenfield, were submitted to the commissioners. Hearing was had on the case of the John A. Robb, which was submitted. In the claims of the Argus and Washington, General Thomas was heard as to the interpretation of the treaty of 1818 relative to the fisheries, and Mr. Hannen had leave to reply at a future time. The case of the Maria Dolores was assigned for August the 9th, proximate. FRIDAY, July 21, 1854. The claim of the Cicero, for seizure and detention in 1809^ was re- jected, as being without the jurisdiction of the commission. The claims of the Joseph Cowperthwait, for detention and search at Cape Coast Castle ; of the brig Charlotte, for refusal of the admiralty court to award costs for its detention ; and of the brig Douglas, for detention and being taken out of its coiirse on the coast of Africa; were- severally iieard and submitted. MONDAY, July 24, 1854. In the claim of William Cook and others, the cunuuissicmers de- cided that tlie claim is not included within the terms of the convention^ and it was therefore dismissed on the ground (»f want of jurisdiction. il^tlDAY, July 28, 1854. The claim of I'hilip Dawson and others, relative to Texas bonds, was argutd by Jlr. Cairns. Exception was taken by General Thomas 36 ADJUSTMENT OP CLAIMS UNDER THE n tothe jurisdiction of the commissioners, on tlie ground tliiit Mr. Daw- son was a naturali/cd citizen of the United States. General Thomas filed, by leave, an affidavit in tlio case of the brig Douglas. '. SATURDAY, Ji ly 29, 1854. Hearing was had on the several claims of the Hudson Bay Com- pany, for detention of the steamer Beiwer, for the prevention of trade on the Columbia river by their steamer Prince of Wales, for expendi- tures in obtaining the release of persons taken caittive by the Indians, and for the payment of drawback on goods re-exported from Oregon. The claims of said company for the refunding of duties levied on live stock for the seizure of the schooner Cadboro' and their brigan- tine Mar; Dare, were withdrawn. TI^ESDAV, August 1, 1854. The claim for return of duties levied between 1815 and 1823 was taken up for hearing, and the letter of Mr. Everett relative to the effect of the treaty on the duty imposed on rough rice was read and placed with the papers. The cases of the Washington and Argus, involving the fishery ques- tion, were discussed, and the claims submitted for decision. WEDNESDAY, August 2, 1854. In the claim of the brig Cyrus, Dumas, owner, seized and detained on the coast of Africa on charge of being concerned in the slave trade, a hearing was had, and the case was submitted. WEDNESDAY, August 9, 1854. In the claim of the Maria Dolores, Colonel Aspiuwall, agent of the parties, appeared, and made a statement of the facts, and the case was H submitted. WEDNESDAY, August 16, 1854. Hearing was had in the case of the schooner Levin Lank, James Sullivan, owner, for the seizure and subsequent condenmation of the same at St. Helena. -_• - . -^-- ^ CONVENTION WITH GREAT URITAIN. 37 r. Daw- thc l)rig ay Com- of trade expcndi- Indians, Oregon, evietl on r brigan- 1823 was c to the read and ery <\uo«- dctained ive trade, .nit of the e case was ak, James ion of the THUllSDAY, Amv^T 17, IS')!. The claim of .Jolui McCliiro and othcrS; relative to the removal of slaves from Cumberland Island, was heard ; also tlie elaim of Henry Schiofll'liri. by Mr. Lovel, on the ciuestion of the jurisdietion of the ffoniinissioners. (Jeneral Thonuis plaeed on file a copy of his protest as to the Texan bond claims, made liy him on Friday, the '28th ultimo. FRIDAY, August 18, 18r)4. The commissioneri! received information from the Department of State at Washington ihat the time for the close of the commission had been extended for four months by a convention entered into be- tween the United States and Great Britain. A copy of this conven- tion was forwarded to the commissioners by her Britannic Majesty's secretary of state for foreign affairs, which being read is as follows: Convention extendin(j the term allowed for the operations of the. Commis- sion cstahlif^hed under the convention of Fehruanj 8, 18515, for the mutual settlement of claims. Whereas a convention was concluded on the 8th day of February, 1853, between the United States of America and her Britannic Majesty for the settlement of outstanding claims by a mixed commission, lim- ited to endure ft)r twelve months from the day of the first meeting of the commissioners ; and whereas doubts have arisen as to the practi- cability of the business of the said commission being concluded within the period assigned, the President of the United States and her Ma- jesty the Queen of the United Kingdom of Great Britain and Ireland are desirous the time originally fixed for the duration of the commis- sion should be extended, and to this end have named plenipotentiaries to agree upon the best mode of effecting this object, that is to say : the President of the United States, William L. Marcy, Secretary of State of the United States ; and her Majesty the Queen of the United Kingdom of Great Britain and Ireland, John Fiennes Crampton, es- quire, her Majesty's envoy extraordinary and minister plenii)otentiary at Washington, who have agreed as follows : Article I. The high contracting parties agree that the time limited in the convention above referred to for the termination of the commis- 38 ADJUSTMENT OF CLAIMS UNDER THE hIoii shall bo extondcd tor a period not, oxcccdiiij; f«»iir iiioiitliH fiorq tlio 15tli of .Septoinbor next, should such extension ho doomed noeos- sary by the conunisslonois, or the umpire, in ease of their disapjree- ment; it bcin^' aj^reod that notliinj;' contained in this artiolo shall in anywise alter or extend the time oiif^lnally fixed in iho said oonvon- tion for the presentation of claims to the oommissioners. Artiilk II. The j)resont convention shall be ratified, and the ratifi- cations sliall be exchantkmbkr 2G, 1854. • The commissioners being unable to agree in the cases of the Enter- prize, Hermosa, and Creole, and of the Washington, Argus, and Di- rector, as well as in the case of the Messrs. Laurent, severally delivered their opinions. These cases were then ordered to be conmiitted to the decision of the umpire. \JEDNESDAY, Sepikmukr 27, 1854. In accordance with the j)erniission of the commissioners, given on the 25th instant, Mr. McLeod made a statement before them relative ^'1 CONVENTION WITH GREAT BRITAIN. 39 itliH iVonj oil lU'COS- disiv^rce- u hIiiiU in il ciinvon- lie year of [L. S.] Sei)tcmber lio was de- his claim vas heard, 'riday, Oc- tlie Enter- 18, and Di- y delivered decision of i to hiH claim, it l)eing uiid(>rHto()d that the , 1854. In the case of the brig Lawrence, Colonel Aspinwall, special agent of the claimants, had a further hearing. General Thomas submitted a paper relative to the case of the brig Confidence. He also n'ad a letter from the State Department, relative to the suits brouglit for violations of the revenue laws on which certain claims before the commissioners are founded ; and relative to the re- turn of duties on coals used at sea, on which drawback is claimed. The claim of the Evelina was brought up for hearing, and the case submitted. Discussion was had as to the amount of damages in the case of the Tigris and Seamew. TUESDAY, OcTomni 10, 1854. Mr. Spinks appeared, and Wednesday, November 1, was assigned for the re-opening of the case of Messrs, Piatt & Duncan. WEDNESDAY, Octoher 11, 1854. Hearing was had before the nmi)ire, by the respective agents, on the claims of the Washington, Argus, and others, as to the interpretation of the convention of 1818, relative to the fisheries, and the cases were severally submitted. 40 ADJUSTMENT OF CLAIMS UNDER THE The case of the Enterprise was assigned for hearing on Wednesday, October 18. The elairns of the Prince of Wales, the Amelia, the Brookline, of James Young, and of William Patterson, the barque John A. Robb, and the schooner Fidelity, were severally disallowed. The claim of the Hudson Bay Co., for drawback, was allowed. TPIURSDAY, October 19. IS'A. In the claims of the brig Enterprize, and Creole, and the schooner Herrnosa^ hearing was commenced before the umpire. SATURDAY, October 21, 1854. Hearing was continued in the Enterprize_, Hermosa, and Creole, and the cases were submitted. The claim of Messrs, King & Gracey, Mr. Barry, agent for the claimants, was assigned for hearing on the 25th October instant, of Mr. Kenworthy on the Ist, and Messrs. Dawson and als. on the 2d November next. MONDAY, October 23, 1854. In the claims of the Jubilee, for salvage, of the Robert, the Elvira, and the Olive Branch, the commissioners decided the evidence to be incomplete, and the cases were accordingly dismissed. The claims «)f the Crosthwaite, of the Ship-owner's Society, in the case of the Ann, of the Duckenfield, the Science, the Prosperity, and of the Anglo-Mexican Mint Co., were, for the same reason, also dis- missed. WEDNESDAY, October 25, 1854. Hearing was had as to the claiTus of Messrs. Barry and others, for the return of duties on woolen goods, levied contrary to the provisions of the treaty of commerce of 1815. Mr. Hannen, by leave, presented for the use of the umpire the opinion of Dr. Phillimore on the claim of Charles Uhde, as applicable to the question raised in tin case of the Messrs. Laurent. (Jeneral Thomas was to reply in writing to the same. SATURDAY, OcruiiEK 28, 1854. The commissioners delivered their opinions relative to the Frances & Eliza, Baron Renfrew, Tigris S: Seamew, the Lady Shaw Stewart, and the Albion, and these cases were severally referred to the umpire for decision. CONVENTION WITH GREAT BRITAIN. 41 Inestla)', L'li.i, the 2 barque lallowed. rod. schooner cole, and icey, Mr. the 25th , Dawson le Elvira, nee to be ty, in the rity, ami , also dis- thers, for )rovision8 npirc the ipplicable e Frances V Stewart, le umpire t Tlie claim of the baniue Pearl was disallowed. The commissioners having disagreed upon the claim of the Beaver, it was referred to the umpire for decision. WEDXESDAY, Novkmbkii 1, 1854. The case of Piatt A- Duncan was, on leave, re-opened, and General Thomas jjioposed to jjresent certain affidavits; but objection being made to the introduction of further te.«!timoiiy, and it being .suggested that the case would probably turn on tlie question of jurisdiction, tlie aftidavits were withdrawn. Some remarks were made by Messrs. Spinks and Thomas, on the question of jurisdiction, and the effect of the treaty of commerce as bearing on that question, when the case was submitted. In the case of Charles Kenworthy, jMr. Willes, special agent and counsel of the claimant, was heard, and the claim was submitted for decision, and in case of disagreement, to that of the umpire, who was present. SATURDAY, November 4, 1854. In the claim of James Shaw, the umpire being present, Mr. Willes, special agent and counsel for the claimant, was heard, and the case was submitted. The case of the Lawrence, the John, and of Messrs. Rogers, were referred to the umpire as to the amount of damages to be awarded. SATURDAY, Nove.mber 11, 1854. Hearing was had before the commissioners and umpire by Hon. Reverdy Johnson, special counsel of Philip Dawson and others, holders of bonds issued by the republic of Texas, and General Thomas for the United States ; the case was submitted. MONDAY, NovEMBim 13, 1854. In the claim of the Lady Shaw Stewart, the umpire being present, Mr. Hillyard made a statement relative to the amount of damages claimed, and the case was submitted for decision. In the case of the Only Son, hearing was had in the presence of the umpire, when the eonmiissioners disagreed upon the allowance of the same. The claim of Messrs. Piatt & Duncan was disallowed. The claim of Charles Kenworthy was disallowed. The claim of James Shaw was disallowed. ■•'W 42 ADJUSTMENT OF CLAIMS UNDER THE The commissioners being unable to agree in the case of the Florida bondholders, that claim was referred to the umpire for decision ; ah was also that of Messrs. Kerford & Jenlcin. WEDNESDAY, NovKMnKii 15, 1854. in the case of Messrs. Kerford & Jenkin, Mr. Hannen and General Thomas were respectively heard, the umpire being present, and the claim was submitted for his decision. THURSDAY, November 1G, 1854. Hearing was had before Hie umpire in the claim of the brig Law- rence, which was submitted. Appointments were made for hearing in the case of the James Mitchell on Monday, and for the claim of Messrs. Cotesworth, Powell & Pryor, and the brig Confidence, on the «ame day. SATURDAY, November 18, 1854. The umpire being present, Mr. Hannen was heard ui)on the case of the steamer Beaver, and General Thomas in reply. General Thomas placed on file a letter in the claim of the Only Son. In the Florida bond case, an appointment was made for hearing on Tuesday week at twelve o'clock. MONDAY, November 20, 1854. Hearing was hail before the umpire in the case of the brigantine Confidence, by Dr. Adams, Queen's counsel, and by General Thomas. In the case of the assignees of the James Mitchell, hearing was had before the commissioners and umpire, by Messrs. Hannen and Thomas, and both cases were submitted for decision. Hearing was also had before them in the ease of Messrs. Cotesworth, Powell & Pryor, as to the recovery of certain lands granted in Texas, which was also sub- mitted for decision. SATURDAY, November 25, 1854. The commissioners disallowed the claims of the brig Cyrus, the Hero, the schooner Levin Lank, and the claim of Messrs. Cotesworth, Powell & Pryor. They also agreed on an award in the case of tlie brig Douglas. The claims of the Lord Nelson, the Volusia, and the brig Lawrence, were severally disagreed upon, and appointments were then nuvde for hearing the same before the umpire. 01 ;he Florida eoision; as id General it, and the brig Law- or hearing le claim of nee, on the the case of Only Son. hearing on CONVENTION WITH GREAT BRITAIN. MONDAY, NovEMDER 27, 1854. 48 hrigantine il Thomas, ig was had d Thomas, s {ilso had *ryor, as to ^ also suh- Oyrus, the jotesworth, niglas. Lawrence, n made for i In the claim of the hrigantine Volusia, John Graham, owner, hear- ing was had by the agents of the two governments, and the same was submitted for the decision of the umpire. WEDNESDAY, Novkmbeu 21), lSr,4. The umpire reported to the commissioners hi.s opinion upon a por- tion of the claims referred to him for decision. The claim of the executors of James Holford for tlie payment of bDuds issued by the republic of Texas, tlie um])ire decided to be without the jurisdiction of the commissioners. The claim of Philip Dawson, for the payment of bonds similarly issued, was also decided to be without their jtirisdiction. In the claim of the liarque Jones, and for sundry ventures thereon, the umpire awarded the sum of one hundred thousand six hundred and twenty-five dollars, due the 15th t)f January, 1855. In the c; ir!i of the schooner John, the umpire awarded to the own- ers, or tii I M ;al representatives, the sum of thirteen thousand six hundred and eight dollars, due the loth of January, 1855. In the claim of the ship Lady Shaw Stewart, the umpire awarded tlie sum oi' six thousand dollars, due the 15th of January, 1855. In the claim of the Frances and Eliza, the umpire awarded the sum of thirty-four thousand two hundred and twenty-seven dollars, due the 15th of January, 1855. In the claim of the Hudson Bay Company's steamer Beaver, the umpire awarded the sum of one tliousand dollars, all of which awards are in full of said claims, and due to the claimants from the respective governments on the 15th of Januarv, 1855. FBIDAY, Deckmuku 1, 1854. In the claim of the Hudson Bay Company, for drawback, the sum of fifteen hundred and twenty-three dollars and sixty-eight cents was awarded by the commissioners. In the claim of the Hudson Bay Company for supplies furnished vol- unteers of the settlers against the Indians, the commissioners .awarded the sum of three thousand one hundred and eighty-two dollars and twenty-two cents in full of said claim to the 15t': of January, 1855. In the claim of the Albion, the umpire awarded the sum of twenty thousand dollars, duo the 15t]i of JanuarV, 1855. •1»i»- 44 ADJUSTMENT OF CLAIMS UNDER THE The claim of the Volusia was disalloweil by the umpire. In the claim of tixe ship James Mitchell, the umpire awarded the sum of twenty thousand dollars, due the loth of January, 1G55. The conmiissioners disagreed in the case of JMcCalmont & Greaves, in that of Calmont & Co., and on the amount to be awarded in the claim of the Great Western Stoiiinship Comijany. Ai)puintmeuts for hearing wore made for those of McC!j|,lmont & Greaves and (Mmont & Co. on Thursday at 12 o'clock, m. THURSDAY, Dwkmber 7, 1854. In the claim of Messrs. McCalmont & Greaves, lor return of duties levied on goods imported into Vera Cruz during the Mexican war, hearing was had before the umpire. Also in the claim of Messrs. Cal- mont & Co., for return of duties levied on goods taken possession of by Mexicans, while under a«convoy of United States forces, and both cases were submitted to the umpire for his decision. In the claim of Messrs. Rogers & Brothers, the umpire awarded the sum of seven thousand six hundred and seventy-six dollars and ninety- six cent?, due the 15th of January, 1855. SATURDAY, December 9, 1854. In the claim of Miller & Mackintosh, hearing was had before the commissioners and umpire. Hearing was also had before the umpire in the claim of the Lord Nelson, and both cases were submitted for decision. The case of the (Jreat Western Steamship Company was argued by the agents and submitted for the decision of the umpire. The claim ot the Sir Robert Peel was submitted to the commission- ers on the papers. MOND'AY, December 11, 1854. In the claim of Alexander McLeod for his arrest and imprisonment in New York on charge of being engaged in the destruction of the steamer Caroline, hearing was had in the presence of the umpire. Mr. McLeod was also personally heard relative to his claim, when the same was submitted to the commissioners for decision, and in case of their disagreement to the umpire. In the claim of Charles Barry, on behalf of American importers of woolens, discussion was had as to the evidence requisite to establish proof of such ownership. CONVENTION WITH GREAT BRITAIN. 45 commission- WEDNESDAY, Decemijeu 13, 1854. Ill the claim of Mr. Barry for roturn of Brotiieus. f resented October 21, 1853 — Heard November 28 — Further atliduvils filed February 23. 1854 — Furtlier lieard February 27, and submitted — Disagreement of commissioners on the amount of damngo — Award of umpiro. For tlie return of customs duties assessed in the Bay of Islands, New Zealand, during the years 1840 and 1841. Noirmhcr 4. — The commissioners disagreed as to the amount of earing to the commissioners that there existed probable . — The commissioners disagreed on the fillowance of the claim, and it was referred to the umpire. Januarii 1). — The umpire awarded to the several clainuints in this case, hereafter mentioned, the sums set against their respective names, amounting in all to one hundred and ten thousand three hundred and thirty dollars, in full, to the loth of January, 1855, viz : To Edward Lockett - - - .f 1812, li autlio- )n board . iiibiiiittod — 1854— DiHa- — Award of BaliamaB le slavcH, ng one of ite, and a (wunce of ts lu this e names, id red and 8t claim. ;oud claim. I I ^H # CONVENTION WITH (}REAT HRITA1N. 68 l:{. B.\iuiri; J«>n\ A. Umiii. PrfHontml Mitrrli 14, 1H54— llciird July 15, and itihiiiitled — DiRallowud. For tlu' removal of u sailor from this vcHsel by a liritihli cruiHcr on the coast of Africa. • Ovlohi I- 1 1. — Tlie ri^lit to outer the vesHel for such jjurpose was dis- avowed : ami it apjieariu^^, on the evidence sultuiitted, that the sailor, who had some coutroverHV with hi.s captain, left the vessel ultimately with the maHter'H consent, tlie claim was diHallowed. 14. Maui A Doi.uiuis, IFUliain T(tt/(/af( ontJ otlHr»,oioners. PreMMilo«l .Marrh 14, IHr»4 — Heiird AiijfURt I) and Soptoinbnr 'Hi, and submitted — Diitalluwod, (iM not beini; within tlio jtirindiotion of tho roinmigsiononi. For proceeds of said vessel and car>i;o, cajjtured by i Bolivian priva- teer, and brought into Barbadues, where tho vessel and carf;o were sold by the British colonial authorities, the i)resent claimant oc'xn^ a citizen of the United States. Held not to be within the jurisdiction of the commissioners. 15. Biiicj UoKiLAs, Amos Fmzar, owner. Trcsentod .\pril."}:2, 18.')4 — Further papers filed May 13 — Heard July 21, and ubmuted — Award. • For seizure and detention of the above vessel on charge of being engaged in the slave trade. November 25. — The commissioners awarded tha sum of six hundred dollars in full of said claim, due January 15, 1855. 1(5. S«iiooNEU Carolinr Knight, George W. Knight and others , moners . Presented February 2, 18.'i4— Heard July 1'2, and submitted — Award. For capture of the above vessel and proceediu.;- in the sale of the same at Prince Edward's Island, in 1852. October 10. — The commissioners awarded the sum of one thousand eight hundred and eighty-seven dollars and .sixty cents, in full of said claim, due the 15th of January, 1855. 17. Tjii; VEriSKi^ Tigris and Seamew, 3[essr,s. Brookhonse cC Hunt, owners. Presented Marcli 14, 18.")4 — Submitted on the papers — Disagreement of commissioners as to amount of damages — Award of umpire. Damage for seizure of the above vessels^, in 1840, by the British cruiser Water Witch, on the coast of Africa, and sending them to Ame- rica for trial for violation of laws of the United States. 54 ADJUSTMENT OF CLAIMS UNDER THE October 28. — The commissioners disagreed on the amount of damage to be awarded, and the case was referred and submitted on the papers to the decision of the umpire. December 14. — The umpire awarded twenty-four thousand six ; wn Edward, Charles Tymj, oivner. Presented March 14, 1854 — Subiniltcd on tiie papers- Dismissed. Vessel seized by British cruiser and taken to Bremen. No evidence submitted ; claim dismissed. 21. Schooner Hero, James B. McCunncJ. Presented March 14, 1854— Submitted on the paper!*— Disallowed. For seizure and detention of the above vessel l)y lier Majesty's brig Lynx, off the coast of Africa. November 25.— Claim disallowed. i i ii# CONVENTION WITH GREAT BRITAIN. 55 iamage ; papers six (lol- Eiiiuary, roemonl of otention e of the ufficient reemcnt of impire. ; British she was and the and dol- ly's brig 22. BiiKi Charlotte, Hart, Sands and others, onmers. Prosenteil MiTch 14, 1854 — Heard July ijl, and submitted — Disallowed. For seizure, under. legal process, by a British claimant, on the coast of Ireland, and her subsequent release by the court of admiralty with- out costs for lier detention. Claim disallowixl, on ground of its being a controversy between private individuals, settled by a competent court within whose juris- diction the property was. 23. Hrnry H. Sciiieffelin. Prosontcd, by leave, June 10 — Heard August 17 and October 4, on (juestion of jurisdiction, and submitted — Disallowed on the ground of want of jurisdiction. Case pending in admiralty court for seizure of a vessel prior to the war of 1812, on which restitution was ordered ; but, during the war, the property was confiscated. Claim is now math; for damage in refusing 1o proceed with suit in court after peace. Claim disallowed on the ground of want of jurisdiction. 24. SciiooxKR Wasuinotox. ['resented Marcii 14, 1854 — Submitted on the papers — Dinallowed. For capture and condemnation of the above vessel, at Halifax, by the British authorities, in 1818. Jamiarij 13, 1855. — Evidence incomplete ; disallowed. 25. TiiK JoriEi'ii CowPERTUWAiT, WilUaui J. Smith and others, owners. Presented Marcli 14, 1854 — Heard July 21, and submitted — Dismissed. For search and detention of the above vessel by the governor of Cape Coast Castle. No evidence submitted ; dismissed. 26. Schooner Washington. Presented Marcii 14, 1?*54 — Heard July 15 and August 1, and submitted — Disagreement of rommiswionera as to construction of fishery treaty — Heard liefore umpire October 11 — Award of umpire. For the capture and condemnation of tlie above vessel, at Halifax, in 184.S, by the colonial authorities, for taking fish in the bay of Fundy when more than three miles from the shore. 56 ADJUSTMENT OP CLAIMS UNDER THE September 26.— The commissioners disagreed on the construction of the treaty of 1818 as to fisheries applicable to this case, and the same was submitted to the umpire. December 23. — The umpire awarded the sum of three thousand dol- lars^ in full of said claim, due the 15th of January, 1855. 2T. Schooner Dirixtoh. Presented Marcli 14, 1854— Heard July 1.") and August 1, and submitted— Disagrcenifnt of commissioners as to construction of fishery treaty — Heard before the umpire Ortober 1 1— Disallowed by the umpire. For capture of the above vessel, iu 1840, by the IJritish armed ves- sel "John and Louisa Wallis." September 26. — The commissioners disagreed on the construction of the treaty of 1818 as to fisheries applicable to this case, and the same was submitted to the umpire. January 13. — Claim disallowed by the umpire for want of sufficient evidence. 28. George W. Atwood. Presented March 14, 1854— Submitted on the papers — Disallowed. The claimant chartered a British vessel to take passengers and freight from England to California. Controversies having arisen be- tween him and the captain and passengers, Atwood appealed for aid to the British minister at Rio. After various difficulties, the matters in controversy were there settled by arbitrators mutually appointed. Claim disallowed. 29. \Vn.LL\M Cook and others. Presented November 28, 1853 — Exception taken as to jurisdiction of the commissioners De- cember l.**, ISi).? — Hem ' on same June 14, 1854, and submitted — Dismissed. Claim for the proceeds of the personal ])roperty and oftects of Mrs. Frances Mary Shard, deceased, of whom tlio claimants allege them- selves to be the legal heirs, and that the proceeds of her property have gone into the treasury of her Majesty's government. July 23. — The commissioners in this case are of opinion that the claim is not included within the terms of the convention, and it is therefore dismisged on the ground of want of jurisdiction. 4 CONVENTION WITH GREAT BRITAIN. 5T iction of ho same and (lol- rreement <>( rtober 11 — iiied ves- uction of the same sufficient gers and irisen be- d for aid ; matters iinted. isioncrs De- sed. 8 of Mrs. ge them- erty have I that the and it is ;{(). IJuKi HNTKKi'ur/E, Josvp/i ll\ Ncal and olherfi, ownem of slaves on hoard. Presented Miirdi 14, 18.')\— riiillicr papors lijod June 19 — Heard May 23 and 24, and sub- mitted — Disagrooniont of till' (•oiuinissioners — Heart! before umpire October 19 and 21 — Award of umpire. Chiim fur dauiai^o in liberating sbivos on board of said vessel under the laws of 15onnuda, when driven into harbor in that island by stress of weather. Septcmhvr iid. — 'Ihe commissioners disagreed on the allowance of the claim, and it was referred to the umpire. December 2'.). — The umpire awarded to tlie claimants in this case the following amounts. To the Augusta Insurance Banking Com- pany, the sum of sixteen thousand dollars; and to the Charleston Marine Insurance Company, the sum of thirty-three thousand dollars, due the 15th of January, 1855. 31. 8cuooNER Heumosa, New Orleans Insurance Company and others, underwriters and owners of slaves on board. Presented March 14, 1854— Further papers filed Juno 19— Heard May 23, 24, and 26, and submitted — Disagreement of tlio commissionera — Heard before umpire October 19 and 21 — Award of umpire. Claim for damage in liberating slaves forced on the Bahamas by stress of weather. September 26. — The commissioners disagreed on the allowance of the claim, and it was referred to the umpire. Januarij 11. — The umpire awarded to the Louisiana State Marine and Fire Insurance Company, eight thousand dollars ; aud the New Orleans Insurance Company, eight thousand dollars; in full of their claims in said case to January 15, 1855. 32. The Bhookllve. Presented June 9, 1854— Further papers tiled .Fune 19— Heard June 29, and submitted— Disallowed. For damage in reclaiming from said vessel, in British waters, a deserter from a British ship of war, who had been received and was .secreted on board the Brookline. October \\. Claim disalloweil. 58 ADJUSTMENT OP CLAIMS UNDER THE I :>3. Brio Evelina. ProBontod March 14, 1854— Heard October fi, and submitted— Disallowed. For damage alleged to be caused by her Majesty's ship-of-war Win- chester running foul of the above vessel in the English cluinnel, in the year 1833. January 8. — Claim dis illowed. 34 Brio Lawrencij, Edicard Yorke and others, owners. Presented March 14, 1854 — Heard September 25, ond Octubcr 6, and November 16, before the umpire, and submitted — Disagreement of the commissioners — Disallowed by the umpire. Seized at Sierra Leont', in 1848, and condemned on the charge of being concerned in the slave trade. November 25. — The commissioners disagreed on the allowance of the claim, and it was referred to the umpire. January 13, 1855. — Claim disallowed by the umpire. 35. DiTiES ON WooiiEX Goods, Charles Barry. WilUam Frost, and others, agents. Presented March 14, 1854, May 23, and June 15— Memorial submitted Juno I'J — Heard August 1, October 25, December 11 and 13 — Withdrawn. Claims for return of duties levied on woolen goods by the British government beyond those paid by citizens of other nations, contrary to treaty between the United States and Great Britain^ of 1815. January 13, 1855. --The agent for tlie said claims, Charles Barry, addressed a letter to the commissioners, informing them that, having deemed it advisable for the pai'ties to adjust the same without recourse to the adjudication of the board, he liad effected a settlement with the government, and desired to withdraw the claims. Claims withdrawn. 36. The Cicero. Presented Marcli 14, 1854 — Dismissed. For seizure and detention for .alleged violation of revenue law.s. July 21. — Not sustained. Dismissed. 37. The Jibilee. Presented March 14, 1854 — Dismissed. Claim for salvage. No evidence submitted. Claim dismissed. d. ar Wiii- mnel, in r 16| before 'cd by the iharge of tvance of •ost, and I'J— Heard ! British contrary 15. s Barry, , having recourse kvith the CONVENTION WITH GREAT BRITAIN. 38. The Robert. Presented March 14, 1854 — DiHmissed. Not sustained. Dismissed. :59. TiikKlvira. Presented March 14, 1854— Dismissed. No evidence submitted. Dismissed. 40. ThK OlIVR BllAN'CK. Presented March 14, 1854 — Dismissed. No evidence submitted. Dismissed. m January 13, 1855. The foregoing docket contains a correct report of awards and judg- ments made on claims of citizens of tlie United States against the British government, after full hearing and examination thereof; and we iiereby place our signatures to tlie same, to be applied thereto in the same manner and as fully as if severally affixed to each of said awards and judgments. The awards of moneys therein made are to l)o paid by the British government to the government of the United States for the benefit of the several claimants, their attorneys, legal representatives, or assigns, and said awards are to be regarded as bearing date from the 13th of January, 1855. EDMUND HORNBY, British Commissioner, § N. G. UPHAM, United States Commissioner ws. led. 60 ADJUSTMENT OF CLAIMS UNDER THE CLAIMS OF BRITISH SUBJECTS UPON THE GOVERNMENT OF THE UNITED STATES, WITH THE JUDGMENTS AND AWARDS THEREON. I . William Mc({linchy. Presented December 3, 1853— Heard April 5, 1854, and submitted— Claim dismissed. For the seizure and detection of paj)er.s and personal property not subject to duties, by United States revenue officers, on the river St. John's, in the year 1845. April 5. — Evidence having been submitted of the return and ac- ceptance of the articles seized, the claim was dismissed. 2. Thomas Rider, Presented January 27, 1854 — Heard February '21, and submitted — Award. For losses sustained in consequence of an arrest and detention in custody by the military authorities of Matamoras, during a period of five and one half months, in the year 1846. The commissioners awarded the sum of six hundred and twenty-five dollars, in full of said claim, due January 15, 1855. 3. TiiE Joseph Albino, WiUiam Allen, owner. Presented December G, IS.'iS — Heard and submitted — Disallowed. For injury and detention at San Francisco, on charge of violating the revenue laws of the United States in respect to foreign vessels. Claim disallowed. 4. The Francics and Ei.iza, Christopher Jiichardson, owner. Presented December 30, 1853 — Heard March 6 and 15, and submitted — Reopened for the admission of further testimony, and again submitted May 13, 1854 — Disagreement of com- missioners on the amount of damages — Submitted to the umpire — Award of umpire. For the seizure of this vessel at New Orleans, in 181U, and sale under a judgment of the United States district court, which was subsequently eversed by a decision of the Supreme Court of the United States. ' ,1' •^'^i CX>NVENTION WITH GREAT BRITAIN. 61 : UNITED >N. stnissed . )erty not river St. and ac- rd. ention in period of cnty-five violating }ssels. mer. ined for the lent of com- npirc. lie under equently tatcH. October 28. — The commissioners disagreed on the amount of damages to be awarded, and the case was referred to the umpire, and was sub- mitted by the agents for his decision on the papers. November 29 — The umpire awarded the sum of thirty-four ihousand two hundred and twenty-seven dollars, in full of said claim, duo January 1'), 1855. » 5. Ship Albion, John Lidgell, owner. Presented January 20, 18.")4 — Heard April 3 and May 13, and submitted — Disagroenieiit of tlic commissioners — Award of umpire. For seizure of the above vessel by the United States officers of reveiuio for non-payment of customs duties ; for cutting timber in Oregon ; and for trading with the natives in violation of acts of Congress. October 28. — The commissioners disagreed on the allowance of the claim, and it was referred to tlic umpire. December 1. — Tlie umpire awarded the sum of twenty thousand dol- lars in full of said claim, due January 15, 1855. ♦*.. MtSSRS. liOltACK &: Co. Piesentcd Duceinhur G, 18J3 — .Siiiimitted — Di(«aIlowed. For the seizure of logwood, at Tabasco, by American seamen during the Mexican war. (Maim disallowed. 7. Hudson- Bay Co.mi'Anv. Presented MurcJi 13, 1^54 — Withdrawn. For exemption from taxes on live stock in Oregon, and rei>ayment of duties collected thereon. July 'IS). — ('laim withdrawn. 8. Hihsox Bay Company. Presented Marcli 13, 1H54— Heard July 29, and submitted— Disagreement of the commis- sioners—Heard before the umpire November 18 — Award of umpire. For seizure of the steamer Beaver, in Dcceml»er, 1851, in Oregon, on the charge of having violated the United States revenue laws. October 28. — The commissioners disagreey the seizure of tlieir scliooner Oadbon)'. July 20. — Claim withdrawn. 10. Hudson Bay Company. Presented Marrh 13, 1854— Heard July :J!), and submitted — Disallowed. For obstruction, by United States revenue officers, of rights of trans- portation by their vessel, the Prince of Wales, under the treaty of 1846. Octohr 11. — Claim disallowed. 11. Maurice Evans . of trans- treaty of [ficers, in citv dur- filcd July jisingliis ithin the jiirisdic- ihcr 1. and 11 iuljust- Icotor at ods with 14. The Execi'toiw of James Holfoud and other daimants. Presented Miircli 15, 1854 — Protent filed as to tlio jurisdiction of tlio conunissioners, July 18 — Heard July 18 — Disagreement as to jurisdiction, hoard before the umpire July 18 — Disallowed by the umpire. For money due on bonds issued by Texas prior to its admission into the Union, for payment of which bonds tlie Texan duties were pledged, and were al'terwards transferred to the United States. The commissioners disagreed on the question of jurisdiction o\ said CHNe, and it was referred to the umpire. Noveniher 2i>. — Chiini disallowed by the umpire. IT). riiiLii- Dawson and others. Prew.'nlnd Juno 7, 1854 — Protest filed agaiu-st the jurisdiction of the coiumiHsionnrH July 28 — Hoaril July 28, and Huhmilted — Disaffreenicnt as to jurisdictiim— Hoard in-forp the um- pire November 1 1 — Disallowed by the umpire. For money due on bonds issued by Texas jjrior to its admission into the United States. The commissioners disagreed on the (juestion of Jurisdiction, and the case wa.s referred to the umpire. November 2*J. — Claim disallowed by the umpire. 16. Tub Lord Nelson, James Crooh, oioner. Presented March 6, 1854 — Heard March 23, on question of jurisdiction — Further argument submitted , by leave, May 23, 1854 — Disagreement as to jurisdiction — Heard before the umpire December 9 — Disallowed by the umpire. For proceeds of a judgment in the court of admiralty in 1818, which proceeds were not received on account ot the clerk of the court proving a defaulter, said judgment being founded on a suit for seizure of a vessel made prior to 1855. The commissioners disagreed on the question of jurisdiction of the case, and it was referred to the umpire. Becemhcr 14. — Claim disallowed by the umpire. 17. lAfrud T.Wood. Presented Marcii 15, 1854 — Heard April 8, and submitted — Disallowed. For seizure in New Brunswick and removal to Maine, for offencea aid to have been committed in that State. Claim disallowed. ADJUSTMENT OF CLAIMS UNDER TUF3 .*» 18. Hamlel C. Johnston. ProHontcd March 13, 1854— Hoard April II, and isubiiiittod— Disillowiil. For arrest luul prosecution at New Vork, on the charge of vio iating the emigrant passenger act. Claim 'lisallowed. 11). Thr Union, Jiobert Unll, master. PreHenlcd March 1.3, 18.')4— Heard April 11, and subinittod— Disallowed. For additional i)ayment of damage on account of the capture of this vessel by the United States sloop-of-war Peacock, after ))cace had taken eflect. where the capture was made. Claim disallowed. 20. (iHEAT WesTEKN StBAMSHIP CoMl'ANY. PrcHcntcd Martii l.'l, l.s.")4 — llcaid July .5, and sulunittod — Disagreement of coinnii«»ioner* on the amount of damage — Heard heforo tlie uiiipiro December '.) — Award of umpire. For return of duties on coal entered and stored at Boston and con- sumed on outward hound voyages of their steamers, for which tliey claim that tliey are entitled to drawback. Deccinher 1. — The commissioners disagr(Hnl as to the amount to he ^allowed and tlu' same was referred to the umpire. December I [. — The um])lre awarded the sum of thirteen thou-sand dive liundrt'd dollars, due the IGth of January, 1855. 21. Henkaok W. Deiunq and others. iPrrMiitcd Marrh l.'J, ls,">4— March 21 aiul .May :i6— Heard June :>1 and submitted— Disii- agrecnient as to jurisdiction — Heard before the umpire — Disallowed by the umpire. For sums due on bonds issued bv the territorial government of Florida. Novemher \',\. — The commissioners disagreed on the (|uestion of jurisdiction, and also tm the merits of the case, and it was referred to the timi)ire. Ihrvmher 14. — Chiim disallowed by the umpire. 'I'l. The .) a.mks Mitciii;!.!-, Francis A-shlen and others, owners. Trcscnted March 13, 18r)4 — Heard boCoro tlie conimissioncrs and umpire November '20, and submitted — Disagreement of the commissioners on the amount of damage — Award of umpire. Claim for damage in removal of the above ves.sel to Key West in Florida for trial as to salvage, and sale there of vessel and cargo. CONVENTION WITH GREAT BRITAIN. G6 I'd. *^o of vio- yed. capture of ftor ])ca('0 cuiiiiiiiHiiioner^ of umpire. II andcon- whicli tlioy ount to htj tliouMiind Limittecl — Disii- ,lie umpire. jrnmcnt of |ue.stitm of as referred vcmber "20, ami ge — Awuni of [ey West in carso. The commissioners disagreed as to the amount of damage to be allowed, and the same was referred to the umpire. Decemln'r\. — The umpire awarded the sum of twenty thousand dol- lars, due the 15th of January, 1855. 23. Th» Young Dixon, Samuel Moats, owner. ProBontcd Marcli 13, 18.'>4 — Submitted on the papers October 18 — Diiallowed. For excess charged on tonnage duties of the above vessel by custom- house officers at Philadelphia on her arrival from Honduras. Claim disallowed. 24. Francis Watson and otiii- s. Presented January 7, lB.'i4 — Heard May 26, and submitted — Disallowed. For lands granted them in the Territory of New Brunswick, but by adjustment and location of boundary line now included in the State of Maine. Claim disallowed. 25. The Irene, lUddell Robson, owner. Presented March 13, 1854 — Dismissed. For the seizure and detention of this vessel for violation of the emigrant passenger act. October 18. — Dismissed. 26. Miller & Mackintosh. Presented March 13, 1854 — Heard December 9, and submitted — Award. For damage from seizure of wines at San Francisco, in 1849, by the United States revenue officers. December 14. — The commissioners awarded the sum of six thousand dollars, in full of said claim, due the 15th of January, 1855. 27. Brio Lady Shaw Stewart, George Bachham, otvner. Presented December 3,1854 — Heard May 13 and 15, and submitted — Disagreement of com- missioners on tlic amount of damage — Case submitted to the umpire on the papers — Award of umpire. For the alleged illegal seizure and sale of the above vessel at San Francisco by the United States authorities. October 28. — The commissioners disagreed on the amount of damage to be awarded, and the claim was referred to the umpire, and was sub- mitted by the agents to his decision on the papers. 5 66 ADJUSTMENT OP CLAIMS UNDER THB '' Kovemher 29.— The umpire awarded tlie sum of six thou.rnn ; . ;,liar«, in full of said claim, due the 15th of January, 1855. 28. Godfrey, Pattison & (h. Preientcd March 13, 18.')4— Furllior memorial preHtntid Uy leave June 15, 1854— Heard Juno 2'J, nnd nubmittcd — Award. For the repayment of duties levied on tlieir goods beyond those paid by citizens of other nations, contrary to the treaty of 1815. January 13, 1855. — ThecomnnHsioners award the sum of sixty-one thousand six hundred and eighty-nine dollars and fifty-four cents, in full of said claim to January 15, 1855. 29. Messrs. Baker & Co. Presented March 13, 1854— DismiBsed. For expulsion from Tani])ico by the forces of the United States. Claim dismissed. 30. Messrs. McCalmont & Greaves. Presented December 30, 18.')3 — Heard April 22 nnd 25, 1854, nnd subniittod — Disagreomont of the commisHioners — Heard before the umpire Decrmber 7 — Award of umpire. For return of duties levied at Vera Cruz during the Mexican war, through change and alleged mistake iti the American tariff. December 1. — The commissioners disagreed on the allowance of the claim, and it was referred to the umpire. January 8. — The umi)ire awarded the sum of eleven thousand seven hundred and thirty-three dollars and fitty-eight cents, due January 15, 1855. 31. Messrs. Calmoxt & Co. Presented December 7,1853 — Heard and submitted — Disallowed — Further claim for return of duties paid on the above — Presented December 3, 1853 — Heard May 18, 1854 — Disa- greement of the commissioners — Heard before umpire December 7, 1854 — Disallowed by ^he umpire. For the seizure of goods belonging to them by the Mexicans, while under convoy of the United States forces. December 7. — Claim for seizure disallowed. A further claim was then made for return of duties paid on the above goods. December 1 . — The commissioners disagreed on the allowance of the same, and it was referred to the umpire. December* ' . — Claim for the return of duties disallowed by the um- pire. f i CONVENTION WITU GREAT BRITAIN. 67 ul 4 — Submitted on papers — Dismissed. For the seizure of wines and other spirits, at San Francisco. October 18. — Claim dismissed as being in progress of settlement by the Secretary of the United States Treasury. 53. P. B. Murphy. Presented March 13, 1854— Withdrawn. For return of duties on brandy, levied at San Francisco. Claim withdrawn — the duties having been refunded by the collector. 54. Charles B. Hall. Presented March 13, 1854— Withdrawi*. For the illegal seizure of goods at Cincinnati, b) iJaited States cus- tom-house officers. Claim withdrawn. 55. The Mary Ann»-, Presented March 13, 1854 — Disf.llowed. For loss arising out of infringement of the emigrant passenger's act. Claim disallowed. 50. The Ship Herald. Presented March 13, 1854 — Submitted on the papers — Dismissed. For injuries received at Marseilles by the United States sloop-of- war, Erie. Claim dismissed. ADJUSTMENT OP CLAIMS UNDER THE I , 57. Hon. W. Black. Presented March 13 — Submitted on the papers May 26 — Disallowed. For lands in the Territory of New Brunswick, included by location and adjustment of boundary line within the State of Maine. Claim disallowed. 58. Lord Cartarbt. Presented January 9, 1854, and submitted on the papers — Disallowed. Claim to lands granted his ancestors in North and South Carolina, of wliich he alleges himself to be entitled. Claim disallowed. 59. Earl of Dartmouth. Presented January 10, 1854, and submitted on the papers — Disallowed. Claim for lands formerly granted to him, situated in East Florida. Claim disallowed, 60. The Keprksbntatives op Colonel Elias Durnford. Presented March 13, 1854 — Heard May 26, and submitted on the papers — Disallowed. Claim for lands formerly granted Colonel Elias Durnford in Florida. Claim disallowed. 61 . James H. Rogers. Presented March 15. 1854, and submitted on tiie papers — Disallowed For the recovery of lands in Florida. Claim disallowed. 62. Thomas Whyte. Presented March 13, 1854— Heard May 26, and submitted — Disallowed. For the recovery of lands in Florida. Claim disallowed. 03. G. lloTCHFORD Clarke. Presented March 13, 1854 — Heard May 5th and 6th, on question of jurisdiction, and sub- mitted — Disallowed For the recovery of lands in Vermont, or the value thereof, granted to his ancestors by the State of New York, prior to the admission of Vermont into the Union, and which wore claimed to be reserved to the proprietors under provisions of treaty between the United States and Great Britain. Claim disallowed. CONVENTION WITH GREAT BRITAIN. 73 r location Carolina, Bd. Florida. ,D. )isalIowed. n Florida . red. ition, and sub- of, granted Imission of 'cservod to it(^d States 64. Barque Pearl, James Tindoll, et al., otvners. Presented March 13, 1854 — Heard May 18, and submitted — Disallowed. For the seizure and confiscation of the above vessel at San Fran- cisco, for alleged breach of the United States navigation laws. Octohe}' 28. — Claim disallowed. 65. Duties on cotton goods, Charles Wirgman, agent. Presented March 15, 1854 — Heard July 8, and submitted. Claim for return of duties levied on cotf-on goods beyond those paid by other nations, in contravention of the treaty of commerce of 1815. January 13, 1855. — Claims in favor of the following persons were severally allowed by the commissioners for the sums specified against their names, amounting in all to twenty-nine thousand seven hundred and sixty dollars and fourteen cents : Names. Residence. Wotherspeon & Wolford Liverpool Joim Tvvigg do... . William A. Brown do. . . . Andrew Taylor |. . . .do. . . . William Fielden & Co |....do. ... Timothy Wiggin .1 London.. George Wildes .do. . . . Charles Jackson ' Leigh . . . . Abraimm Turner ; Chorluy. . John Oardwcll &. Co I Paii^wcll . Martin &. Lee ! Panhead . Patrick Mitchell { Glasgow . John Framr S ion !. . . .do.... John McPhail | do.... Jarcd 11. Cogan i . . . .do. . . . Buchanan &. Mitchell j... .do. . . . P. Hutchinson &. Co j. ...do... . William Sncll ' . . . .do. . . , ..do... ..do..., . .do. . . , ..do... ..do... ..do.... . .do. . . , . .do. . . . .do. . . . .do. . . . .do. . . J. Rollo&Co John Black William Alston J. Walston J. McDoug.ill Warden, Walker & Hill Patrick McGregor David Mackinlay John Todd & Co Gilc!irist,Risk&Co.... John Dick Amounts. $1,510 60 97 20 338 82 337 27 158 95 2,816 94 68 U6 292 51 129 81 44 50 218 06 296 72 1,016 39 286 48 250 86 278 61 326 59 177 00 147 39 116 39 113 75 107 25 112 66 102 40 90 10 95 00 100 93 76 72 ' 1 85 74 ADJUSTMENT OF CLAIMS UNDER THE i, « Ni^mes. Black & Stewart John Pinley Charles Kerr & Co John McAIister & Co Ur« & Monteith , Duff & Stevenson Strine Piintingr Company FioMcn Brother & John Crosby John KcNnl T. Lotigshaw John Ingham &. Co John Knowles T. Cariiwell & Co J. & S. Bury Willi,'! II. Lindsay R. F. ot H.iri^recvcs, Dugdale & Co 'Do n & Brothers, (Bolton,) near P J'v.n &, Brothers Hiir\ i'-'un U Beam J &.'-'. Ramsbotham J. 't. G. Junes , fliHue. Voods Weston, exert'r ot'Tlios. Calvert, la',-; fJohn '.'Icgg, executor of William Turner, late of ... John Ivnight & Co J. & J Ashton R. Bleasby F. Dixon John A. Ilubson F. Slatter , fGeorge Faulkner, executor of John Owens, late of. T. BuriTcss William Gray Sykes &. Yates , Residence. of., Glasgow . . . ...do ...do ...do ...do . . .do Manchester . ...do ...do . . .do ...do ...do ...do ...do ...do ...do ...do...... . . .do ...do ...do ...do ...do . . .do. ...... . . .do ...Jo . . .do ...do ...do ...do ...do ...do . . .do . . .do London Amounts. $69 58 58 83 85 29 72 95 65 65 47 13 60,5 79 3U9 34 269 21 225 39 234 60 105 00 297 70 207 55 200 73 87 20 ,C89 48 ,2<);j 69 .^a.-i 65 ,5262 18 500 00 ,25:i 34 ,329 51 ,640 87 948 54 788 45 405 51 378 oa 373 18 339 17 .325 07 203 82 475 41 638 95 30,260 14 •Jane Dean, cxf tutrix of J. Dean, (Bolton ) t In these thrne cases, the probates of the wills of the parties named in this list, (being the surviving jA^ncrs of the firms to which the amounts were found to be due,) have been duly examined by the commissioners, and fo'.md to h. indue form and properly executed, attested, &c. Duties on cotton ooods, Charles W'rgman, agent. Claim for return of duties, as above, by John A. Hobson and An- drew Taylor. January 13. — The commissioners award to John A. Hobson the sum of forty-two dollars fifty -eight cents, and to Andrew Taylor the sum of one hundred and seventy dollars and seventy-six cents, in full of oaid claims, respectively, to January 15, 1855. ■11! i;s CONVENTION WITH GBEAT B^ITAIH. 75 Amounts. $69 58 58 83 85 29 72 95 65 65 47 13 605 79 309 34 269 21 225 39 234 60 105 00 297 70 207 55 200 73 87 20 I, cm 48 1,293 69 i,?3r. 65 1,1*62 18 500 00 l,25:i 34 1,329 51 3,640 87 948 54 788 45 405 51 378 02 373 18 339 17 325 07 203 82 475 41 638 95 30,260 14 id An- CG. Claim for return of duties levied on cotton goods, as above, in No. 65, Andrew Mitchell, agent. January 6, 1855. — Claims in favor of the following persons were severally allowed by the commissioners for the sums specified against their names, amounting, in all, to twenty thousand six hundred and two dollars and sixty-five cents : Names. Residence. Robert Gourlay & Co R. G. Finliiy &. Brothers John Alston & Son John Ker, jr John Spencer & Son Fort, Qrotliors «c Co Late Patrick Mitchell George Berrcll Mitchell & Kcr, jr Fort, Brothers & Co., Manchester, and Ker, jr., and Alston & Son • • . .do Berrcll (Dunfcrmnline) and Mitchell ;....do Borrell (Dunfcrmnline) and Finley & Brothers |. . . .do Spencer & Sons (Manchester) and Mitchell do Berrell, (Dunfermnline,) and Brown & Co., Mitchell, and Finlay Is. Brothers Mitchell, Finlay & Brothers Glasgow ...do , . . .do , . . .do iVianchester .. ...do Glasgow Dunfcrmnline Glasgow Amounts. do. do. $501 52 2,39) 01 336 79 806 64 180 76 1,112 27 4,007 55 516 64 452 01 1,012 30 3,840 76 1,339 53 1,183 96 2,062 03 914 91 20,602 65 6*7. Geoiiqe and Samuel Shaw. Presented March 15, 1854— Heard January 6, 1855, and submitted — Disallowed. For return of moneys alleged to be illegally obtained by the collec- tor of customs of New York in compromise of a suit brought on charge of having entered goods with false invoices. Jamiary 13. — Claim disallowed. 68. William Broadbent. Presented March 13, 1854 — Heard January 6, 1855, and submitted— Disallowed For return of moneys as above, in No, 67. January 13, 1855. — Claim disallowed by the umpire. 69. William Bottomlby, hyhis executors. Presented March 15, 1854— Hoard January 12, 1855, and swbmitted— Disallowed. Claim for return of moneys, as above, in No. 67. January 13. — Claim disallowed. 76 ADJUSTMENT OP CLAIMS UNDER THE 70. The Crosthwaitb, Messrs. Stuart dt Simpson, owners. Presented March 13, 1854— DiBmigeed. For seizure of the above vessel at New Orleans. Dismissed. 71. Ship-owner's Society. Presented March 13, 1854 — Dismissed. For seizure of the Ann in 1819. Dismissed. - . 72. The Duckenfield, Messrs. David Lyon d Co., oioners. Presented March 13, 1854 — Dismissed. For return of discriminating duties levied on the above vessel. Dismissed. 73. The Science, Messrs. Wilson (k McLellan, oioners. Presented March 13, 1854 — Dismissed. For return of duties levied on the above vessel during the year 1840, Dismissed. 74. The Prosperity, Messrs. Musgrave, owners. Presented March 13, 1854 — Dismissed. For excess of duties imposed on said vessel. Dismissed. 75. Anglo-Mexican Mint Company. Presented March 13, 1854 — Dismissed. For Joss caused by order of the United States proliibiting the ex- portation of gold from Mexico. Dismissed. The forcgoinij; docket contains a correct report of awards and judg- ments made on claims of British subjects against tlie United States government, after full hearing and examination thereof, and wc here- by place our signatures to the same, to be applied thereto in the same manner and as fully as if severally affixed to each of said awards and judgments. CONVENTION WITH GREAT BRITAIN. 77 '.rs. ners. The awards of moneys therein made are to be paid by the United States government to the T)riti8h government, for the benefit of the several claimants, their attorneys, legal representatives or assigns, and said awards are to be regarded as bearing date from the 13th of January, 1855. N. G. UPHAM, United Slates Commissioner. EDMUND HORNBY, British Commissioner. January 13, 1855. ressel. rs. year 1840. ing the ex- ORDER OP COMMISSIONERS AND THE UMPIRE, AS TO THE RATE OF EX- CHANGE APPLICABLE TO THE AWARDS MADE BY THEiM. The commissioners, by and with the concurrence of the umpire, hereby establish the relative rate of payments of the awards made by them in the currency of the respective countries of Great Britain and the United States, at four dollars and eighty-four cents to the pound sterling. N. G. UPHAM, United States Commissioner. EDMUND HORNBY, British Commissioner. January 13, 1855. JOSHUA BATES, Umpire. s and judg- aitod States nd wc here- in the same awards and i 78 ADJUSTMENT OF CLAIMS UNDER THE RECAPITULATION. Aivards of moneys made under the convention for the adjustment of claims of February 8, 1853, in behalf of the United States claimant^ OAjainst the British government. Names of parties Amounts awarded. N. L. llogers & Brothers Barque Jones, P. J. Parnharn & Co. owners Scliooner John, Reuben Shapely owner The Only Son, Fuller & Delano owners Brig Creole, Edward Lockett el als. owners Brig Douglas, Amos Frazar owner Schooner Caroline Knight, George W. Knight tt als. owners . The Tigris and Seamew, Messrs. Brookhouse & Hunt owners. Scliooner Argus, Doughty master Schooner Washington ririg Enterprize, Joseph W, Ncal el nls. owners Schooner Hcrniosa, Now Orleans Insurance Company et als . . $7,676 96 100,625 00 13,608 22 1,000 00 110,330 00 600 00 1,887 60 24,006 40 2,000 00 3,000 00 49,000 00 16,000 GO Amoiintino- in all to the sum of 3^9,734 16 Or, at the relative value of exchange as established by the commissioners, to (:f68,13l Os. 75(/.) sixty-eight thousand one hundred and thirty-one pounds seven and one- half pence sterling. ill i CONVENTION With great Britain. 79 adjustment of (ates claimant^ RECAPITULATION. Aimrds of moneys made under the convention for the adjustment of claims of February 8, 1853, in behalf of British claimants against the United States government. Amounts awarded. |7,G76 96 100,625 00 13,608 22 1,000 00 110,330 00 6G0 00 1,887 60 24,006 40 2,000 00 3,000 00 49,000 00 16,000 00 "329.734 16 commissioners, to unds seven and one- Names of parties. Amounts awarded. Thomas Rider Tlie Francis and Eliza, Chrintoplier Richardson owner. Ship Albion, John Lidgett owner Steamer Beaver, Hudson Bay Company owner Great Western Steamship Company The James Mitchell, Francis Aslttoy et a!s. owners. .. . Miller & Mcintosh Brig Lady .Shaw Stewart, George Buckham owner.... Godfrey, Pattison & Co Messrs. McCalmont & Greaves Andrew Mitclipll Hudson Bay Company, (claim for return of dutits). .. , Brigantine Confidence Hudson Bay Company, (Cayeuso war claim) George Houghton The Baron Renfrew, Duncan Gibb owner , J. P. Oldfield&Co , Charles Wirgman Charles Uhde i $G25 00 34,227 00 20,000 00 1,000 00 13,500 00 20,000 GO 6,000 00 6,000 00 G1,G89 54 11,733 53 20,602 65 1,523 68 9,946 20 3,182 21 2,. 500 00 6,000 00 3,099 54 30,473 48 25,000 00 Amounting in all to the sum of 277 , 102 88 Or, at the relative value of exchange as established by the commissioners, to (i'57,252 135. id.) fifty-seven thousand two hundred and fifly-two pounds thirteen shillings and four pence. ' ^, <3^ ^ IMAGE EVALUATION TEST TARGET (MT-3) 1.0 Li|2£ 125 1.1 l.-^'^" IL25 i 1.4 I Photographic Sciences Corporation 33 WIST MAIN STRUT WnSTIR.N.Y. MSSO (716) t72-4503 \ ^. •s§ :\ \ 6^ o^ s 80 ADJUSTMENT OF CLAIMS UNDER THB EXPENSES OF COMMISSION. Salary of commissionere at #3,000 or £620 per annum, each, for sixteen months, from September 15, 1833, to January 15, 1855, during the actual time of session Clerk's salary Messenger's salary, &c Rent of office from September 29, 1853, to March 25, 1855, at .^0 per annum . Housekeeper's account during the above time Stationers' and copyists' bills 0, Printing and binding of the commissioners' judgments and printing also of report for the two governments Messrs. Quilter & Ball's bill, as accountants Clerk hire of umpire • Coals and wood Incidental postage, &c £ d. *. 1,653 6 8 399 6 4 97 135 24 68 6 6 120 57 15 4 10 11 10 18 2,588 16 6 The commissioners leave it to the two governments to determine the time when the salaries of the commissioners should commence and terminate, and what travelling expenses, if any, should be allowed to the appointed place of meeting, and return from the same, and the compensation to be allowed to the umpire. Such further amounts as may be allowed on these accounts are to be added to the expenses hereabove written, which expenses we certify to be true and correct, and that they are to be defrayed by a ratable deduction from the total amount awarded by the commissioners, agree- ably to the 6th article of the convention, provided that, if they shall exceed the rate of five per cent, on such total amount, the deficiency is to be defrayed in moieties by the governments. By the convention it was left to the respective governments to ap- pear in behalf of the claimants by counsel or agents, or not, at their )unts are to ;8 we certify t)y a ratable ners, agree- f they shall le deficiency CX>NyENTION WITH GREAT BRITAIN. 81 option, and no compensation was established for such agents. The commissioners, therefore, leave the amount due to the agents to be de- termined by their respective governments. N. G. UPHAM, United States Commissioner. • EDMUND HORNBY, British Commissioner. £ d. *. 1,653 6 8 399 e 4 97 135 24 68 6 8 130 57 15 4 10 11 10 18 3,588 16 6 termine the imence and 1 allowed to le, and the Note. — By the civil and diplomatic appropriation bill of March 3, 1855, the sum of twelve thousand dollars each was allowed by Congress for the services and expenses of the American commissioner and agent. I hereby certify that I have duly examined, with a view of authenti- cating the same, the foregoing records of the commission, with the transcript thereof for the government of Great Britain, and have found the same to be correct. And I further certify that the signatures therein are the genuine signatures of the commissioners and umpire. Dated this 20th day of January, in the year of our Lord 1855. N. L. UPHAM, Secretary of Commission on Claims. [seal of commisiion.] #* iients to ap- lot, at their THE UMPIRE OF THE LONDON COMMISSION. Note. — Mr. Bates, of London, was selected as umpire, by agreement between the commissioners. It so happened that many of the most important questions that came before the commission were referred to him for decision^ which rendered his labors arduous, and his responsi- bility great. Although provision was made in the treaty to compen- sate him for his services, yet he refused to receive any remuneration whatever. % f 5 REPORTS OF DECISIONS BY THE COMMISSIONERS, AND THE ARGUMENTS OF COUNSEL. agreement )f the most referred to is responsi- |to compen- muneration VI The following constitute the reports of decisions drawn up in the principal cases hy the commissioners. Other cases, which depended mostly on questions of fact, or in which no important principle of international law was involved, are hriefly stated, with the reasons assigned for their decision, in the preceding report of awards. BARQUE JONES. The barque Jones was seized in the harbor of St. Helena, on chargres — I. Of being in British waters, without having ship's papers on board, and therefore without national character. n. For being engaged in and equipped for the slave trade. There was a competent court for the trial of these charges at St. Helena, but the barque was taken to Sierra Leone for trial, and the charge of being engaged in and equipped for the slave trade was adjudged by the court there " to be without foundation, and destitute of any probable cause to sustain it." It appeared, also, that the ship's papers were duly deposited at the collector's and consul's offices, on her arrival, as required by law, but the court assessed the vessel in costs, on the ground of alleged resistance to conp' 'tuted authorities, and it waa sold at auction for the payment of these charges. Held, that the allegation of being without ship's papers, and without a national character, was unsustained by evidence. Held, also, on the judgment delivered by the court, that no costs could be taxed against the vessel, and that no resistance to authorities was shown. And further, that the remoral of the vessel from St. Helena, where a competent court existed for the trial of these charge*, to Sierra Leone ibr trial, was a violation of the rights of the parties, and that the owners of the Jones were entitled to full remuneration for all damages sustained. The case was fully argued hy J. A. Thomas, agent and counsel for the United States, and hy James H annex, agent and counsel for the British government. 4 84 ADJUSTMENT OP CLAIMS UNDER THE UriiAM, United States Commissioner : The barque Jones, owned by P. J. Farnham and Company, of Salem, Massachusetts, having shipped lier crew for Montevideo, and other ports north of the thirty-sixth parallel of south latitude, sailed from Boston, in March 1840, for the west coast of Africa, having a valuable assorted cargo for a trading voyage upon that coast. She arrived at Ambriz, on the coast of Africa, on the Itth of June, and landed, and disposed of a considerable portion of her cargo, con- sisting of flour, biscuit, soap, candles, tea, fish, furniture, lumber, and gunpowder. After receiving on board a quantity of African produce, she sailed for Loando, on the same coast. On this passage she was, in violation of the rights of her flag, boarded and overhauled by her Majesty's armed brig Water Witch, but, after examination of her papers and cargo, was permitted to proceed on her voyage. At Loando the Jones landed a considerable quantity of merchandise, and received in return ivory and otiier African produce. From Lo- ando she returned again to Ambriz, and, after taking on board more produce, sailed for St. Helena, where she arrived on the 24th of August, 1840. She was regularly entered at the custom-house, and had remained at St. Helena twenty-one days, until the 14th of September, discharg- ing and receiving cargo, when she was seized by her Majesty's ship Dolphin, Lieutenant Littlehales. commander, and taken from St. Helena to Sierra Leone for adjudication, on charges specifically set forth in the affidavit of seizure, the opinion of the court, and other papers in the case. The grounds of seizure of the Jones, as set forth in the affidavit of A. C. Murray, mate of the Dol])hin, taken before the officiating judge of the vice-admiralty court of Sierra Leone, on the 5th of October, 1840, are, that the Jones ''was found in British waters, without any national character, and having no ship's papers or colors on board, and for being engaged in and fitted and equijiped for the slave trade, contrary to the provisions of the acts of 5 Geo. /K, cli. 113, and of 2 rf'3 Vic.,ch. 73." The officiating judge in the court of vice-admiralty states the charge in the same manner, reciting that it was alleged "the barque Jones had violated two acts of the British parliament, viz: the 2 and 3 Vic.f CONVENTION WITH GREAT BRITAIN. 96 ch. 73, and the 5 Geo. IV, ch. 113; against the first, for being found in British waters Avithout any national character, having no sliip's papers on hoard ; and against the latter, for being engaged in and equipped for the slave trade." Lord Palmerston states the case in almost the same words. He says that the Jones was seized upon two grounds : ^' First, under the act of 2 and 3 Vic, ch, 73, for being found in British waters without having ship's papers on board, and for being therefore without any national character." "Secondly, under the act of 5 Geo. IV, ch. 113, for being engaged in and equipped for the slave trade." In each of these statements two distinct and independent charges are alleged as separate grounds of seizure, and each of them are based on different statutes. It is perfectly clear, however, that the first charge, "of being found in British waters, without having ship's papers on board," is not an offence, as alleged under the 2 and 3 Vic, and that no jurisdiction over, or right of seizure of the vessel, exists by that statute, whatever may be ker papers, except as based on her connexion with the slave trade ; and this view ot the statute is important, as an erroneous construction in this respect has caused an undue and unwarrantable importance to be given to a controversy which has arisen as to the papers of the vessel. A brief reference to the act of 2 and 3 Vic will sustain us in this position. This act empowers British cruisers ''to capture Portuguese vessels engaged in the slave trade, and other vessels engaged in the slave trade, not being entitled to claim the protection of the flag of any state or nation;" and, by its terms, unless the charge of being engaged in the slave trade is sustained, it becomes wholly immaterial whether the Jones had papers or not, so far as the statute of 2 and 3 Vic is concerned. The charge, therefore, "of being found in British waters without having ship's papers on board, and having no national character," ig no allegation of an offence against 2 and 3 Vic, and the whole pro- ceeding, so far as it is based on that act, falls to the ground. The only remaining ground of seizure of the vessel is " her being engaged in and equipped for the slave trade," which is charged as a violation of the act of 5 Geo. IV. It becomes necessary, then, to look into the provisions of that act. We concede that the charge of being 86 ADJUSTMENT OF CLAIMS UNDER THE concerned in and equipped for the slave trade is well alleged as against that statute, and the vessel is to be holden responsible if the charge is sustained and the offence is prosecuted agreeably to the requirements of law. By that act, however, it appears that all vessels, seized for being concerned in the slave trade, "shall and may be sued for, prosecuted, and recovered in any court of record, or vice-admiralty, in any port in, or nearest to which such seizure may be made, or to which such vessels, if seized at sea, or without the limits of any British jurisdic- tion, may most conveniently be carried." ■ By this act, vessels seized ^' at sea, or without the limits of any British jurisdiction," are to be taken to the nearest and most convenient port for trial ; but, if within a harbor, and an established and com- petent jurisdiction, they are to be there tried. The vessel in this case was seized at St. Helena, where there had long been a court of record of an established character^ and competent to try any felony or capi- tal offence against the laws of Great Britain. The removal, therefore, of the vessel from this jurisdiction to the remote jurisdiction of Sierra Leone, upon the coast of Africa, was an illegal act. The object of the act of 2 and 3 Vic. undoubtedly was to give au- thority to seize, in the open sea, Portuguese vessels and vessels having no national character, concerned in the slave trade. In harbor, or in British loaiers, Portuguese and other vessels had always been liable to seizure under the prior act of 5 Geo. IV, if their masters were engaged in fitting them out for the slave trade. The act of 2 and 3 Vic. was not at all required to give jurisdiction over the Jones in the harbor of St. Helena. If she was guilty of being con- cerned in the slave trade there, whatever might be her papers, she could be seized, and tried at once, under the act of 5 Geo. IV, where the parties were all present, and ready for trial, without removal to a distant jurisdiction where the very same issue, of being concerned in the slave trade, was to be tried. Her removal, therefore, to Sierra Leone was without any excuse, and was rendered peculiarly oppres- sive against these owners, as their captain was excluded from his ves- sel, without money or means of conveyance to the remote jurisdiction of Sierra Leone, a thousand miles distant by water, and the trial was proceeded with without any attendance on the part of the owners. The proceedings of Lieut. Littlehales were in clear violation of the T- CONVENTION WITH 6BEAT BRITAIN. 87 act of 5 Oeo. IV, under which the only valid offence against the vessel was charged, and, under the circumstances of the case, were of a character that should, of itself, render him and his government re- sponsible for all damage that subsequently accrued to the owners in the loss of their vessel. If the seizure had been made and the offence had been solely set u») under the 2 and 3 Vic, it would, in my opinion, have made no difference, as there certainly was the alternate of a fair and speedy trial of the vessel at St. Helena, under the act of 6 Geo. IV, for the only essential charge against her ; and, under the circum- stances of this case, it would have been the imperative duty of Lieut. Littlehales to have proceeded under that statute. His removal of the vessel to Sierra Leone, under any form of process, would have been in violation of the spirit of the statutes relative to the slave trade, taken in connexion with each other, and against the first principles of right and justice in the trial of offences. We shall now proceed to consider the proceedings had at Sierra Leone. Immediately on the arrival of the vessel there, it appears, from the papers in the case, that public notice was given, for the first time, of the offence for which the vessel was seized, by posting up a notice " on a conspiciuous part of the public wharf of Freetown," fourteen days before the adjudication of the court, not that the vessel was to be tried, but that, according to the provisions of law, she was to be "condemned, unless the owners should appear and show just cause to the contrary." For the facts proved on trial relative to the offence charged, we shall look to the decision of the court, without going behind it, unless it should be hereafter deemed necessary. The knowledge of the court, by its resic'jAoe on the African coast- with all matters of African commerce, and ts familiarity with every fact tending to show a connexion with the slave trade, is far greater than any information that can be possessed on these subjects by this commission. So long, therefore, as the decision of the court is confined to facts of this nature, relative to the offence on trial before it, we shall regard it as the highest authority of which the case admits. The captors, also, cannot complain, as the decision of the court at Sierra Leone was made after a full hearing on their part, and an examination of all testimony they chose to present. The witnesses, also, selected and taken to Sierra Leone, had been 88 ADJUSTMENT OF CLAIMS UNDER THE ■*' f engaged in a bitter controversy with the captain of the vessel, and were in open hostility to him. Notwithstanding these adverse cir- cumstances, and the fact that the court were to proceed by law, in the outset, on the assumption that the vessel was guilty, her acciuittal on all the grounds on which she was seized was most triumphant and complete. The court, in its opinion, from which I shall make full extracts, says: " I shall dispose, in the first place, of the question as regards this vessel's national character ; for, if it be made to appear to my satisfaction that she was duly documented, and that there are fair and reasonable grounds for presuming that she was entitled to claim the protection of the flag and pass of the United States, the al- legation against her, under the act of 2 and 3 Vic, ch. 73, must "on- flequently fail and fall to the ground." " I have had already occasion," he observes, "to remark, that the vessel was visited and detained for two hours, on the 2d of July last, by her Majesty's brig Water Witch, and I can have no rational doubt but that her papers then exhibited to the boarding officer fully proved her American character. The vessel having gone to St. Helena, and having remained there twenty-one days, discharging and receiving cargo, must necessarily have come under the immediate notice of the constituted authorities of that island ; and it cannot be supposd that, at a place where a custom-house is established, a vessel would be al- lowed to lie so long, and transact business with the island upon an extensive scale, and which must have been done with the knowledge and consent of the collector, without his satisfying himself of her na- tional character." To ascertain this point, the first preliminary step would be the pro- duction of the ship's papers at the custom-house. I have therefore come to the conclusion that the charge of the vessel "being found in British waters, without a national character, must be dismissed." The court then proceeds to examine into the charge of the vessel's being concerned in the slave trade. In remarking on the paper which had been signed by a portion of the crew of the Jones, protesting against going to the coast of Africa, and which is alleged as the original cause of proceeding against the vessel, the judge states "that not even the most distant allusion is made by the seamen, whose names are affixed to that paper, that the vessel had been, or was about to be, engaged in the slave trade." Restates as his conclusion, after 1 CONVENTION WITH GREAT BRITAIN. 89 )8cl, and 'crso cir- ifj in the uittal on lant and nake full question to appear there are ntitled to IB, the al- nust "on- , that the July last, nal douht ily proved ilcna, and receiving tice of the )osd that, luld he al- d upon an cnowledge of her na- )e the pro- ! therefore y found in ssed." le vessel's ,per which protesting ed as the ites "that en, whose was ahout sion, after a full examination of the testimony presented, "that not a single article of slar equipment is cstahlishcd against her;" that "the evidence of the witnesses has literally produced nothing which can hy possibility affect the character of the vessel ;" that " no indication has heen adduced, showing the vessel's employment in the slave trade, and that there has not been a single paper found, on hoard the ship that could warrant him in drawing such a conclusion." And he further says that, "after having carefully reviewed the grounds upon which sentence of restoration had been given by him, with a view of discovering, if possible, some probable cause of skizurb as regards the vessel's alleged equipment for the slave trade, he never saw a case so free even from suspicion." Thus the vessel was fully exonerated by the decision of the court on all the grounds on which she was seized, and the judgment is as clear, distinct, and explicit as words can make it, that there was no probable CAUSE, or ground of suspicion of the vessel's being concerned in the slave trade. The necessary result of this finding by the court is, that the vessel must be discharged; and not only so, hut, the judgment being that the seizure was without probable cause. Lieutenant Littlehales, and the government for which he was acting, are left entirely unprotected as wrongdoers and trespassers from the beginning. By a most singular proceeding, however, the court has undertaken to consider another charge, without the statute, and of which it had no cognizance, which was of a personal character, against an individ- ual who was not present, and not against the vessel, and which, whether well or ill founded, could in no manner avoid or alter the judgment previously delivered. Notwithstanding the judge had fully discharged the vessel on all grounds on which she was seized, he assessed her in costs, as he says, "for resistance of the master to fair inquiry," and for "his wilful misconduct in resisting constituted authorities;" and it is contended that the error of the court, in this respect, is to overrule its decision in the matters strictly before it. Now the entire evidence on which this charge is founded is before us in writing, and after full examination of it, we express the opinion with entire confidence, that it is wholly unsustained by testimony. But admitting it was fully sustained, and that Captain Gilbert had forcibly resisted British authorities, so that he had heen capitally 90 ADJUSTMENT OF CLAIMS UNDER THB liable for an offence of that description ; it would have made no dif- ference an to the decision, or liability of this vessel as to other matters charged against it. If the vessel is exonerated and cleared from all suspicion of offence, the haHty or wilful misconduct of the master, in resisting a British armed force, has nothing to do with the national character of the vessel, or her being engaged in the slave trade. He might have resisted the more obstinately for the very reason tliat he knew his vessel was clear of all probable cause of charge, and because he believed its seizure was an abuse of authority ; but, on whatever ground he might make such resistance, it would be an offence of which no cognizance could be had except the party was specificiilly arraigned, and on trial for that cause. It is an offence also for which a trial could only be had at St. Helena, where the acts complained of were committed, and before a jury of the country. No provision of the statute, or any principle of common law, gives authority to the court to assess a vessel in costs, when discharged from all legal ground of seizure and probable cause of offence. The court might, for proper cause, have omitted to tax costs against the captors, but this is the utmost extent of any discretionary power, vested in them in such case. In statutes where the delivery of papers is an imperative duty, as in the seamen's act of 7 and 8 Fie, ch. 112, sec. 56; where the master of a vessel is required to produce certain papers to the consul, a refusal to deliver them is a distinct offence, and is punishable under a penalty of £20. Here there is no requirement to deliver papers. An assessment of costs against the vessel clearly could not be made under the 2 and 3 Vic, as that statute provides that, "no court shall proceed to condemn any vessel," (and if so, it cannot assess her in costs,) "where the owners shall establish, to the satisfaction of the court, that they are entitled to claim the protection of the flag of a State other th^i Great Britain or Portugal." And this provision further shows that the act of 2 and 3 Vic. was intended to apply merely on the high seas, and that, in harbor, the only act justifying the seizure of a vessel engaged in the slave trade is 5 Geo. IV. The case then shows that Lieutenant Littlehales stands condemned, by a court of his own choosing, on a wholly ex parte examination, OONVBNTION WITH OBBAT BRITAIH. 91 kde no dif- er matters of offence, a British cter of the 'ery reason harge, and y ; but, on luUl be an I party was had at St. nd before a I law, gives discharged "ence. The against the aary power Ive duty, as the master 111, a refusal 3r a penalty lot be made court shall sess her in jtion of the le flag of a is provision id to apply t justifying IV. 3ondemned, :amination, and by a judgment unimpeachod, of the seizure of a vessel having an establiHliod national character, and against which there was no pro- bable ground of charge of her being concerned in the slave trade. Such being the case, it is clear that the ])arty offending is directly responsible to the owners of the- vessel. No obligation reHted on the owners to follow their property to a remote jurisdiction, to rescue it from the control of law thus unwarrantably asserted. No principle of common law is plainer, than that trespassers and wrongdoers, ah initio, in the seizing and removal of property, are at once personally liable, and it rests not in their mouths to say that the party aggrieved should not prosecute them, but must follow the pro- perty and abide the result of the legal proceedings instituted against it. With much more propriety might the owners of the Jones have said that Lieutenant Littlehales, after the discharge of the vesHcl, in- stead of instituting an appeal from the decision of the court, which he never j)rosecuted, should have at once returned the vessel to America, and made ample indemnity to the owners for all costs and damages for its illegal seizure and detention. For the seizure of a vessel without probable cause, the legal rule of damage is full restitution and compensation for all costs and injury sustained. We hold, for the reasons thus set forth, that the following points are sustained : I. The not having ship's papers is not an offence under 2 and 3 Vic. , and is of no consequence in any way except as secondary and subsidiary to the charge of being engaged in the slave trade. II. Where no probable cause, or ground of suspicion exists, of being concerned in the slave trade, no right of entry upon, or seizure of any vessel exists, either by 2 and 3 Fi'c, or by 5 Geo. IV; and who- ever enters upon or seizes such vessel is a wrongdoer from the begin- ning. III. In case of entry upon or seizure of a vessel under such cir- cumstances, the owner is not bound to follow the property and take an appeal from any proceedings of the party, but he has, at once, a remedy on the wrongdoer, or his aiders and abettors, if he so elects. IV. Where a vessel has been seized, on a charge of being concerned in the slave trade, and is acquitted from all grounds of probable cause of being concerned in such o£fence, the court cannot impose costs 92 ADJUSTMENT OF CLAIMS UNDER THE against the vessel "for resistance of the master to constituted authorities" in seizing the vessel; hut it is a personal and distinct ground of offence, that must he separately prosecuted. Further, it cannot assess costs against the vessel in any case when discharged from all prohahle cause or ouspicion*of the offence for which it was seized. V. Where a vessel is seized in harhor and is suhject there in all respects to the jurisdiction of competent authorities for the punishment of the offence charged against her, the removal of such vessel to a re- mote and distant jurisdiction for trial, even though it may he done under the form of law, is an unjust and oppressive act, in violation of the spirit of British institutions. VI. The lowest rule of damages for the seizure of a vessel without prohahle cause, or color of right, is full compensation for all injury incurred. Having arrived at these results, it would he unnecessary to go further were it not for the exaggerated and erroneous statements that have heen made as to opposition "to constituted authorities;" and the attempt to palliate and excuse the conduct of Lieutenant Littlehales, to the prejudice of the fair consideration of this case, and the just rights of the parties. We go into the consideration of this matter with great reluctance for the reason of the time it must consume, and that it is wholly irrelevant to tlie projjcr issue hetween the parties ; hut so much pro- minence has heen given to it in the correspondence relative to this claim, and the evidence upon it has been so imperfectly understood, that we deem it our duty to look into the facts, to see how far any charge of tlie kind is home out by the testimony, and to determine whetlier any justification or mitigation of the circumstances of the seizure of the vessel can he drawn from it. We will first state the charges made as to ''resistance to constituted authorities," and then compare these charges with the evidence on the 8ul)ject. Before doing this, however, we would state the facts relative to the arrival and position of the Jones in the harhor of St. Helena, and the laws of the two countries applicable to the custody of her papers while in port. We have already stated the decision of the court that there was no probable ground of charge against the Jones, of being I ■ m CONVENTION WITH GREAT BRITAIN. 93 onstituted id distinct •"urther, it discharged lich it was here in all unishment sel to a re- ay be done iriolation of sel without • all injury ;sary to go jments that s;" and the Littlehales, nd the just t reluctance t is wholly much pro- tive to this understood, low far any determine tices of the constituted evidence on ative to the lelcna, and her papers e court that es, of being concerned in the slave trade ; and we may here add the sworn testi- mony of Mr. Frye, " that he had been a member of the firm of Farn- ham & Co. for twenty years, ind that he had neither directly nor indirectlv been concerned in the slave trade; nor, according to the best of his knowledge and belief, had Mr. Farnham, or any other partner, ever been concerned in the slave trade ; and tliat the barque Jones was fitted out solely for carrying on a legitimate trade, and with- out the slightest intention or remotest design, either directly or indi- rectly, of engaging in the slave trade." The Jones, as previously appears, cleared from Boston in March, 1840, and proceeded with a valuable cargo of assorted merchandise for the western coast of Africa. After trading at different places along that coast, and exchanging a considerable portion of the original cargo for African products, it left for the island of St. Helena, where it arrived on the 24th of August. Immediately on her arrival. Captain Gilbert, as is shown by his testimony and that of the supercargo, "■ caused the vessel to be entered at the custom-house, and handed in there a manifest of articles in- tended for sale at St. Helena. He then proceeded to the United States consulate, and there deposited the register of the vessel, ship's articles, list of crew, manifest of outward cargo from Boston, and bill of health also from Boston." The laws of Great Britain, see act 3 & 4 Will. IV, ch. 52, require that "the commander of every vessel arriving from ports beyond seas, at any port in the United Kingdom, shall, within twenty-four hours from his arrival, make due report of his ship, and shall make and subscribe a declaration to the truth of the same before the collector or comptroller of the port, and such report shall contain an account of the particular marks, numbers and contents of all the different pack- ages or parcels of goods on board such ship, and of the place or places where such goods were respectively taken on board, and of the bur- den of such ship ; the country v/here it was built and belongs ; the name of the master and the number of seamen, stating how many are subjects of the country to which the ship belongs, and how many are subjects of some other country." Similar regulations are believed to exist as to all colonial ports. It is further lawful and customary for agents of the collector to board all ships coming within their jurisdiction, and remain on board them until the goods have been ''\k 94 ADJUSTMENT OF CLAIMS UNDER THE delivered from them. They are at all times while in port strictly under the watch and guard of the collector. It is made the imperative duty also of the collector of customs, com- manders of forts, governors of colonies, &c.,to guard against and prosecute for all violations, within their jurisdiction, of the laws pro- hibiting the slave trade. The laws of the United States, passed February 28, 1803, in rela- tion to commercial agents or consuls, provide ''that every master of an American vessel, immediately upon his arrival at a foreign port, shall deposit his register, sea letter, and Mediterranean passport with the American consul, or commercial agent, at such port, under penalty of five hundred dollars, which the consul may recover in his own name for the use of the United States." These papers are required by statute to remain in the hands of the consul until the master has exhibited to the consul his clearance from port. The consul is also required to enter on his consulate records the time of the receipt and delivery of these papers. Provisions of a similar character are believed to be universal as to the power and duties of the consuls of all nations. These laws had been fully complied with, as we have already shown, by the deposit of the proper papers of the vessel at these offices. It should be further understood that these requirements, as to ship's papers, are of such public character and notoriety, that no master of an armed vessel in her Majesty's service, who, from his position, is ne- cessarily familiar with the ordinary details of commercial intercourse between nations, can be supposed to be ignorant of them. The vessel was thus duly entered in port, and had remained there twenty-one days, from the 24th of August to the 14th of September, as appears by the decision of the court, "unmolested, having during that time discharged a large quantity of flour, biscuit, and other articles, and shipped thirty-nine bales of goods from the town," when, late on Saturday afternoon, Lieut. Littlehales met Capt. Gilbert, the master of the Jones, in the street in St. Helena, and demanded of him the ship's papers, and the charge of "wilful misconduct and illegal opposition to constituted authorities" arises out of a refusal, as it is said, to produce the ship's papers at that time, and a refusal, on subsequent demand made soon after, the same evening, on board the vessel. No other demand for these papers was ever at any time made. CONVENTION WITH GREAT BRITAIN. 95 jrt strictly itoms, com- gainst and le laws pro- ;03, in rela- •y master of Q port, shall »rt with the r penalty of 8 own name lands of the !arance from date records iversal as to ■eady shown, ffices. as to ship's master of an jition, is ne- 1 intercourse nained there eptemher, as during that her articles, hen, late on the master lim the sAip's opposition to d, to produce lent demand No other Having stated these facts, we will now proceed, as we hefore proposed, to specify the charges as to the resistance complained of, and compare these charges with the evidence on the suhject. The court states: "that the resistance of the master of the Jones to fair inquiry, in having refused to produce his papers for inspection to the commander of the Dolphin, prohahly led to the seizure of the Jones," and this refusal he designates as "wilful misconduct and illegal op- position to constituted authorities." Lord Palmerston, in his letter to Mr. Bancroft of Dec, 9, 1847, represents the testimony on this suhject in this manner. He says that Mr. Littlehales having met Mr. Gilbert in the street, requested to see his ship's papers, and Mr. Gilbert "refused to produce them," and that Mr. Murray afterwards asked him for his papers on board the ves- sel, and Mr. Gilbert "again positively refused to produce them, and said they were in possession of Mr. Carroll." Lord Palmerston then says that Mr. Littlehales, "on learning this/' went to Mr. CarroH's office, and there requested the production of the papers in the presence of Messrs. Murray and Rowe, officers of the Dolphin, Mr. Pike, admiralty passenger, and Mr. Carroll; and that, on this occasion, as he had done before, Lieut. Littlehales disclaimed any right to call for the papers on shore, but said he had that right afloat, and it might be a conveni- ence to both parties to have the papers shown to him at once, but Mr. Gilbert however pertinaciously and peremptorily refused to show tJiem. Such are the allegations and conclusions at which Lord Palmerston arrives. On examining the testimony, however, in the case, it will be found that the third meeting, represented by Lord Palmerston to have taken place, never occurred. It is a mere repetition, doubtless by mis- take, of the first meeting, only, in the repetition, the facts are stated as taking place after the demand for the papers on board the vessel was made, and after Mr. Gilbert's reply that the papers were in the possession of Mr. Carroll, when, "on learning this," as Lord Palmer- ston says, Lieut. Littlehales went to 31r. Carroll's office, and there requested the papers. So that the third repetition of this statement, the particular cause, or occasion on which the demand was made, and the place of making it, are all without foundation in fact. We have no belief that this error was designed, but we allude to it merely as an instance of the hasty and inconsiderate manner in which this case has been examined and conclusions have been arrived at. t ^im ■a^- :.<¥^ 96 ADJUSTMENT OP CLAIMS UNDER THE But this is not all ; the assertion that Capt. Gilbert refused to show his papers, at any time, is not sustained by the evidence. The only pretence pointed out by Lieut. Littlehales, as constituting a refusal to show his papers, is that Capt. Gilbert, on the first demand for the pa- pers, in the street, stated, in his testimony, that the papers were at the custom-house, and on a second demand made on board the vessel, by Mr. Murray, he said they were at the consul's office. Lieutenant Littlehale's quotation, however, from the testimony of Captain Gilbert is not correct. He does not say in his testimony that the papers, on the first demand in the street, were at the custom- house, but he says he was asked for his manifest, and he stated the manifest was at the custom-house, and afterwards, when asked for his papers on board his vessel by Mr. Murray, he said his papers were at the consul's house. Both of which statements were correct. But taking the statements precisely as Lieutenant Littlehales chooses to represent them, ttiey are entirely difi'erent from a refusal to show his papers. Waiving all right and propriety of Lieutenant Littlehales making a demand in the street, where he admits he had no authority to make it, and his refusal to assign any reason why he demanded the papers, which he clearly should have done, to entitle him to a reply any- where, the answer of Captain Gilbert, on both these occasions as- signing H reason why he could not produce his papers, is not a refusal to deliver them. Satisfactory papers as to the character of the vessel were at both the places named, and there is no such contradiction in the statements as shows any design to vary from the literal truth in the case, or in the east degree to embarrass the proceedings of Lieutenant Littlehales. But the testimony of Captain Gilbert does not terminate here. Lieu- tenant Littlehales chooses to call his reply thus far a refusal, because the papers were not delivered on the spot, and therefore he pursues his testimony no further. Captain Gilbert, however, when demand was made of him for the papers on board the vessel, by Mr. Murray, which is the only place where it is pretended a proper demand was made, not only stated to him that the papers were in the hands of Mr. Crroll, the United States consul, but he further told Mr. Murray, " it was then late on Saturday night, and the next day, being Sunday, there would be no business done, but on Monday he would show him ^ CONVENTION WITH GREAT BRITAIN. 97 i to stow The only refusal to or the pa- irere at the vessel, by stimony of imony that lie custom- 3 stated the sked for his )er8 were at rrect. But J chooses to to show his ales making rity to make 1 the papers, a reply any- (ccasions as- not a refusal le at both the itatemcnts as ,se, or in the Littlehales. Ihere. Lien- [usal, because •e he pursues rhen demand JMr. Murray, demand was the hands of Mr. Murray, [eing Sunday, lid show him 5^' 1 all his papers, and give him every satisfaction as to his voyage and cargo." So that there was not only no refusal to deliver tlie papers, but a promise to produce them at the earliest possible moment on Monday. Captain Gilbert also states that " at eight o'clock on Monday morning, he took a boat, and attempted to go on board his vessel, and was warned off and refused admittance. Tliat be immediately afterwards went to the office of the consul, took bis papers, and pro- ceeded with the supercargo in a boat towards the vessel, but was again warned off, and threatened to be fired into if he approached any nearer. So that the promise was not only made to produce the papers, but Captain Gilbert did all in his power to carry this promise promptly into effect, and was prevented from doing it only by threats of violence ; and this statement does not rest on the testimony of Captain Gilbert alone, but he is fully sustained in these facts by the testimony of three other witnesses. Captain Gilbert further states that the same morning, in conse- quence of these extraordinary and harsh proceedings, he made com- plaint to Mr. Carroll, the consular agent of the United States, repre- senting to him these facts, and that Mr. Carroll addressed a letter to Lieutenant Littlehales on the subject, which Lieutenant Littlehales declined receiving, stating that he did not recognize him as consul. Captain Gilbert then immediately wrote to Lieutenant Littlehales him- self, but he made him no reply. He also, on the same day, on Monday, in company with Mr. Carroll and the supercargo of the vessel, called on the collector of the port, and exhibited to the collector the register of the Jones, the manifest of outward cargo from Boston, clearance, bill of health, and list of crew from Boston, and ship's articles executed in Boston, and offered to give any and every information in his power relating to the barque Jones. Captain Gilbert testifies that the collector examined all these papers carefully, and said he was perfectly satisfied the Jones was on a legal voyage, and that he Avould do all in his power to have the vessel re- leased ; and he immediately wrote to the commander of the Dolphin, asking the reason of his conduct, and received no answer that day, as the collector told him ; and he wrote again the next day, and in the afternoon received a few lines from the commander, in which ho gave 1 m 98 ADJUSTMENT OF CLAIMS UNDER THE ■* c him no satisfactory answer, and assigned no reason for what he had done, and the collector then said he could do nothing more. These facts are in no manner contested. Lieutenant Littlehales, indeed, says, in reply to this statement : " I received or held no com- munication with the collector of her Majesty's customs, after having informed that gentleman, in the early part of the seizure of the barque's detention." No one alleges that he held communication with the collector, after giving him this information ; but he had given no information of tlie seizure to the collector till after the papers had first been shown to the collector by Captain Gilbert, and the collector had written to Lieutenant Littlehales fully on the subject. He then wrote a brief line to the collector, as Captain Gilbert says he did, and this is the communication had by Lieutenant Littlehales with the collector, " in the early j^art of the seizure," to which he refers. Captain Gilbert then addresses the governor of the island, asking his interference and protection, and Mr. Carroll also wrote a letter to the colonial secretary to the same purport. Every possible effort was thus put forth, down to the time the Jones was taken away to Sierra Leone, to communicate the facts in relation to the vessel. To the lines written to the governor and secretary, replies were re- ceived, after the barque left, that they had no control over her Ma- jesty's naval officer. The vessel was removed without giving to Captain Gilbert any information as to the charges against her, or any notice where she was to be taken. Lieutenant Littlehales attempts to avoid portions of this statement, by saying that Captain Gilbert "did not offer to show him his papers at any one time." But Captain Gilbert does not so say. He states that he proceeded to his vessel, and when Mr. Murray, who had charge of her, by command of Lieutenant Littlehales, demanded his papers, he told him they were at Mr. Carroll's, but he would produce them on Monday, and on Monday, when he attempted to do it, he was pre- vented by being warned off, and by threats. « Lieutenant Littlehales further says, "that no threats of vijlence were used by persons on board the barque;" but he was not present, and (jould have no knowledge on the subject. He is also contradicted by five witnesses on this point. Such is a plain statement of the facts relative to this transaction. CONVENTION WITH GREAT BRITAIN. •9 We have given it a careful examination, and are wholly at a loss to say what course of conduct could have heen pursued hy Captain Gilbert that would have been more proper, or in what respect he has failed in his duty in any particular. There is clearly no ground for the charge that he was guilty of "a pertinacious and peremptory refusal to pro- duce the ship's papers," or "of wilful misconduct^ and illegal oppo- sition to constituted authorities." ,^ It would have heen a great gratification to me, and certainly highly important, in an international point of view, if the court of Sierra Leone, and Lords Palmerston and Aberdeen, who give this construc- tion to Captain Gilbert's conduct, had specified what answer the cap- tain of an American merchant vessel in port should make to her Majesty's cruiser, where his vessel has been regularly entered, and her papers are at the custom-house and at the consul's, as they are required by law to be. What more the captain of such a vessel can do than to say that his papers are at these offices, and that he will produce them at the earliest possible moment, and carrying out this promise promptly by his acts, I don't know ; or how such a reply can constitute a legal justification for the seizure of the vessel of a friendly nation, breaking up her voyage, dispersing her crew, removing her to a jurisdiction a thou- sand miles from her course, and assessing her in the costs of seizure, though most honorably acquitted, by a British court, from "all pro- bable cause, or suspicion of any offence," except the proper answer to constituted authorities. While I thus consider the conduct of Captain Gilbert as free from blame, and the decision of the court in this respect as wholly erroneous, the conduct of Lieutenant Littlehales impresses me in a different light. A controversy had arisen between Captain Gilbert and his men as to the legal effect of their shipping articles. This had been settled, after a full hearing, by the United States consular agent, at St. Helena, who had full power, by the laws of the United States, to adjust such controversy, in the same manner that British consular agents have, by law, to adjust such controversies between British masters and seamen. Notwithstanding this decision, Lieutenant Littlehales in- terposed in the matter, "these seamen having come to him," as he says, "for protection and assistance, the same having been denied ^ them by Mr. Carroll." So that, in the outset,. Lieutenant Littlehales 100 ADJUSTMENT OP CLAIMS UNDER THE '«! IT not only claims cognizance and control over Captain Gilbert and his venscl, hut over the proceedings of the United States consular agent. Having thns embarked in this business, and seized the vessel while in port, because on demand for her papers they were not delivered at once on the spot he chooses to consider it an absolute and wilful refusal to exhibit them ; he prohibits all access of Captain Gilbert to ^ the vessel ; refuses to receive any explanation from him or his friends, or to give any information as to his grounds for seizing the vessel, or the course he designed to pursue in relation tuber. Tliese acts furnish to us no favorable example of oflicial conduct or character. Mr. Carroll was appointed as consul of the United States, and was recognized as such on the loth of February, 1833, by the court of directors of the East India Company, who were at that time competent agents for that purpose imder the British government, and held the island of St. Helena as a portion of their territories. From that period for seven years, up to the time of the seizure of the Jones, he had been uniformly recognized and treated as consul by the British authorities. \ A British consul, by the regulations of the British government, is an officer who would out-rank Lieutenant Littlehales, and on whom he is required to wait immediately on arriving in port. An American consul holds a similar ])osition as regards American officers. Com- mon courtesy would require that Lieutenant Littlehales should have received from any individual of respectable character such communi- cation as Captain Gilbert desired to make as to his vessel; liut not- withstanding Mr. Carroll was entitled to consideration in every respect as a man and as a British citizen, as well as from his position of hold- ing an appointment from the United States, his letter on this occasion was returned unopened, and all aid from him was denied by Lieu- tenant Littlehales. Captain Gilbert seems to have been very unfortunately situated. When called upon for his papers, his precise form of reply, though he oiFers to produce them at the earliest i)oHHible moment, is regarded as opposition to authorities; if he goes to his vessel to deliver his papers, he is threatened to be shot at ; if he writes a letter to Lieutenant Littlehales, he receives no answer ; if he gets the American consul to write for him, his letter is returned unopened, because, though pre- viously acknowledged by competent British authorities for seven -.^itt: ..^ CONVENTION WITH GREAt BRITAIN. 101 jrt and his liar agent. >8sel while ; delivered and wilful , Gilbert to his friends, e vessel, or acts furnish es, and was he court of e competent nd held the From that le Jones, he the British vcrnment, is id on whom n American iccrs. Com- should have sh communi- sel ; l>nt not- every respect ition of hold- this occasion lied by Lieu- tely situated. y, though he s regarded as rer his papers, to Lieutenant ican consul to !, though pre- ies for seven years, it is now said he has no exequatur; if he gets the collector of customs to write, Lieutenant Littlehales tells him he has sei/od the vessel, and tlie collector says ho can go no further; if he ait|)lie8 to the governor and secretary, he is inforn>ed they have no power over the commander of her Majesty's armed vessel ; if he applies, as a last resort, to his government for redress, it is held to be an improper appeal from the jurisdiction of British courts, *' whose duty it was," it is said by Lord Palmerston, "if circumstances required it, to give the claimant full indemnity," and that Captain Gilbert "had no right to call for the interposition of the state to do that which he might, hy ordinary care and diliyence, have done for himself" through the aid of such tribunals. And this is said when a commander of her Majesty's cruiser has expelled the captain from his vessel, refused all specification of charge against her, and taken her away to a coast, no one knew where, except by hearsay — tliat the captain of a vessel, imder such circumstances, not knowing where to follow his vessel, and deprived of all means of fol- lowing it, might, "bythe exercise of ordinary care and diligence," have reached Sierra Leone from St. Helena in season to have taken cogni- zance of a notice i)osted up, for fourteen days, " on the i)ublic wliarf of Freetown," that the vessel would be "condemned, unless the owners should ai)pear, and show just cause to the contrary." Such reproach addressed to Ca])tain Gilbert, in the distressed con- dition in which he was left at St. Helena, would have probably seemed to him an unnecessary addition to the wrongs already received ; And it seems to me to be a harsh application of the rule of due diligence' in the mouth of one who has taken away from an innocent party all means of its exercise. If the seizure of the Jones had been made at sea, and Lieutenant Littlehales had expelled Captain Gilbert from the vessel on some dis- tant coast, the outrage would have been too great to have been tole- rated, but in this case it is practically as bad. Lieutenant Littlehales should have promptly furnished his charges against the vessel, should have been ready to receive, from any re- spectable source, any and every intbrmation in relation to her. He should have notified Captain Gilbert of his intention to take the vessel to Sierra Leone, and furnished him the facilities of his vessel to have gone there. His conduct in all these respects has been the reverse. % 102 ADJUSTMENT OF CLAIMS UNDER THE But the wrongs to these owners do not terminate here. When the decision was rendered against the captors, the ahsurd charge of a resistance to authorities was made to prejudice the vessel ; and an appeal was also taken from the decision of the court, and bonds were filed. The appeal was never prosecuted. The ordinary eifect of an appeal, however, is to hold custody of the property seized for the further term of one year. The hands of the court are not^ indeed, tied up by such an appeal until the service of an inhibition upon it, obtained from the higher court ; but whether any intermediate steps, in the mean time, shall be taken, depends, under the particular circumstances of the case, on the discretion of the court. The ordinary practice, however, is to defer to an appeal, certainly till a reasonable time be had to obtain an inhibition, which would have required a number of months in this case for the proper application to the higher court. It is an estab- lished principle also of courts of admiralty that, where there is an appeal, the property in question cannot be withdrawn but upon secu- rity given for the value. The Woodbridge, 1 Hagg. 76. Proceedings were thus stayed, and the case rendered still more difficult and com- plicated. A yet further wrong was done by Lieutenant Littlehales. The regulations of the British service, as we learn from a letter of Lord Aberdeen to Mr. Everett, December 29, 1841, " require all cruisers, under the several acts for the suppression of the slave trade, to enter on tlieir log-book all particulars relating to the seizure of all vessels for the violations of those acts, and that a full statement of these particulars should be sent by the first opportunity to England." No such return was, for a long period, made by Lieutenant Little- hales. The two volumes submitted to Parliament, purporting to be a list of vessels detained and captured by her Majesty's cruisers em- ployed for the suppression of the slave trade, published succeeding this date, covering a period of some years, contain no report of the seizure of the Jones. So that Lieutenant Littlehales has failed in his duty as an officer of the British government, in not comjilying with orders important to the interests of these parties and to the protec- tion of the commerce of the United States. Lieutenant Littleliales had all the means of knowledge before him that was subsequently possessed by the court of Sierra Leone. He was bound to come to the same just and impartial decision as to the I U I ^ CONVENTION WITH GREAT BRITAIN. 103 an appeal, irther term up by such }d from the mean time, nces of the B, however, ad to obtain nths in this is an estab- there is an t upon secu- Proceedings lit and com- hales. The tter of Lord all cruisers, ade, to enter f all vessels ent of these md." enant Little- orting to be cruisers em- succeeding report of the failed in his nplying with o the protec- ;e before him Leone. He ion as to the character of the vessel, and the want of all probable ground of her connexion with the slave trade. By his hasty and ill-judged pro- ceedings, and relying on trival circumstances and vague surmises, of no weight to an unprejudiced mind, contrasted with known facts be- fore him, he has been guilty of a wrong against unoffending citizens of the United States, that has ruined tlieir pecuniary prospects, and has caused an embittered state of feeling between the two countries in reference to his acts. The course of the British government, also, not only in not affording redress in this matter, but in delaying prompt inquiry and investiga- tion, and in not holding its officers and tribunals responsible for the enforcement of their own laws and rules important to the protection of American commerce, is a ground of grave and serious complaint by the parties in this case. Both the 5 Geo. IF and the 2 » pt in entire 1 and cargo us sacrifice. y's govern- ration, and t, a full and Bth of May, nment, and ?r Majesty's to the state- transaction on which it had hooti his iiaiiif'ul duty to dwell m extruordimiry and KpprisHive in all its parts," and that a denial of repanition " would prodtice a degri' of discontent on the part of the government and jjcople of the United Sfutos of a oh ffacter greatly to he deprecated." To tliis urgent h'ftcr, to which the attention of the Hritish govern- ment WHS iiL'iviji called by Mr. Kverett in June, 1840, no reply was made hy the Ihi'i'ih governniciit for more than finre and a half ijenra, when Mr. Bancroft, Novemher 20, 1840, adtlressed a letter to Lord Palmorston in reference to the unanswered letter of Mr. Kverett of May, IH I:J, stating " that he was iustruc/rd hy his government to a.sk an early and definite rej)ly." A reply was then made early in the ensuing month, Avhich was resi)()nded toby Mr. lJancroft,and wliich was again replied tohy Tiord Palmerstou, in wliich he sets up the closest toclinical ground ami oltjec- tions to the claim of the owners of the Jones, and alleges that they had had " ample opportunities to assert their rights, either in the court be- low, or hy an appeal from the decision of that court to the judicial com- mittee of herMajesty's privy council," and denying to them all other remedy. In March, 1849, this whole sul»ject and the correspondence in rela- tion to it, wascominunicated to Congress, and was passed u[)on hy a very intelligent committee, who unanimously reportepears to have deter- k mined to inspect the ship's papers; and, after being told by a clerk ,;,, at the custom-house that the papers were not there, on meeting the I master, W. Gilbert, in the street, he asked to see tlie "Jones" papers. I To this re(i[uest he obtained what he considered an unsatisfactory and I evasive answer. Tliis is the version given of this interview by the ,| lieutenant, as well as by his mate and a passenger on board the "Dol- I phin;" and it is important to observe here, with reference to tbe ac- :| counts of the same rencontre given by tlie master in two affidavits, that 1 the supercargo, who was with the master, states tlie latter said "the I ship's pa[)er8" were at the "custom-house." Now the master, in his lirst I affidavit, states that Lieutenant Littlehales asked to see the "manifest" of the "Jones," whereupon he, the master, inquired his motive. He then goes on to say that tlie lieutenant repeated his request, to which he made the same answer ; when the lieutenant observed that if he, the master, showed them, "mucli trouble would be saved to both of them;" upon which Gilbert states he asked the officer " if there was , not a custom-house at St. Helena?" whereon Lieutenant Littlehales I turned round and went towards the sea. In the second affidavit the I master gives another version, as follows : "About six or seven o'clock I on Saturday afternoon I was accosted by Lieutenant Littlehales of the 110 ADJUSTMENT OF CLAIMS UNDER THE British armed brig Dolphin, who very abruptly demanded my mani- fest. I did not then know Lieutenant Littlehales. I asked who he was? He said *he was commander of H. M. brig Dolphin.' I asked if he considered it a matter of right to demand my manifest in the pub- lie streets, or whether he asked it as a favor? He said he did not consider it a matter of right, and then said, 'You won't show it me, will you?' and before I could make answer he turned round and toent aioay. ' * I confess I find it difficult to reconcile these two statements. Either the first long conversation took place, or Lieutenant Littlehales turned away so abruptly — as described in the last statement — that there was no time for it to have taken place. But whatever the master was asked for, wh«ther "papers" or "mani- fest," the important question is, what did he say on the subject of the "papers?" and this is at least clear, for the supercargo himself distinctly declares that the captain replied that his " papers" were at the ciisfom-house. ' The master and supercargo also say that the lieutenant was not in uniform. The lieutenant and those that were with him declare that he was. The next scene is on board of the "Jones" about two hours after- wards, when no one disputes that it was the ship's "papers" that were then asked for, and no one denies that the answer then returned by the master was that they were at the "consul's." The master then goes on to say that he offered to bring the papers to Lieutenant Littlehales on the Monday morning ; that he a* ote to Lieutenant Littlehales, offering to show them to him ; and that after all this, the collector of customs wrote to Lieutenant Littlehales an explanatory and expostulatory letter. Lieutenant Littlehales, on the other hand, flatly denies that the master ever offered, either in writing or other- wise, "to show his papers" or "to give any information on the Mon- day morning," and he also denies "receiving" or "holding" "any communication" with the collector after the seizure. It is not pre- tended that the master attempted to see or speak to Lieutenant Little- hales personally on board the "Dolphin," where the latter was to be found, although it is said that he twice endeavored to go on board the "Jones," where the lieutenant was not, for the purpose of showing him his papers, a prize crew under a subaltern being in possession. '-.J^r i. .- CONVENTION WITH GREAT BRITAIN. Ill )S8e8Sion. And it is a curious fact that neither these papers or copies of chem are now before the commissioners, nor at any time does it appear that they were ever shown to any one whose seeing them would have facilitated the discharge of the vessel, or is there any confirmation of the alleged explapatory or expostulatory letter from the collector of the customs. In the course of the argument it was urged by the learned agent of the United States that it was the duty of the lieutenant to have oflFered every facility to the master to clear his vessel, and that the master was justified in standing upon his *' rights," let the consequences be what they might. It was undoubtedly the duty of the captor to inspect any papers oifered to him for inspection by the master ; but it was most unquestionably the duty of the master to have facilitated the inspection of his ship-papers by the captor. If he had done so, all the subsequent mischief would, in my opinion, have been avoided. Nothing would have been easier than to have sought Lieutenant Littlehales on board H. M. S. Dolphin, yet this was never attempted, and in fact no attempt was ever made to show this officer the papers, nor does it appear that the subaltern in command of the prize was ever asked to look at them, or was even told that the captain had them with him when he went alongside the ** Jones" on the Monday following the seizure. Nor does it appear in the affidavits of the master and supercargo that the former really had his papers with him on these occasions, or went for the purpose of showing them. At page 238 of the printed evidence, both these individuals say that James Gilbert went " with a view of getting on board of the vessel on hiisiness." I confess that it does appear to me to be a strangely suspicious circumstance, that the master never attempted to explain the facts of the case to Lieutenant Littlehales, when his obvious duty, and indeed his interest and that of his owners demanded that, on being refused admission to his ship, he should have gone at once to Lieutenant Littlehales, asked him the reason, and showed him that his papers — if he had them (which even now does not very clearly appear) — were all right and as they ought to be. That this would have been the conduct of a man really anxious to prevent a calamity, such as that which has ultimately fallen on the owners, appears to me to be indisputable. The next step in the case is the overhauling the vessel and the 3 1 i f : 112 ADJUSTMENT OF CLAIMS UNDER THE finding of two letters, both addressed to the supercargo ; one being from the owners, and the other from a Spaniard of the name of D Masoro I^fiiray. They are as follows : Messrs. Farnhain and Co. to Mr. Sexton. , Sallm, March 12, 1840. Deah Sir : Your much estoeiiiod favor of December 4 from Ambriz, per " Quill," was promptly delivered on the arrival of that vessel, Februarys. Your remarks on the trade with Doctors Wilson and Savay,and others, at Capo PalmaH,aro noted, but will not be acted upon at present. We have no doubt there is a field there to work in to advantage, but we shall i)rolrilily omit it till your return. The information however is very acceptable. Your sales at other places wore so limited that the profits will not pay for the delay ; but wo think you will have found a very good market at Loanda for all the flour you had on board, pro- vided you did not report over one hundred barrels. If you obtain the quoted rates, or even thirty dollars i)cr barrel, for the 470 barrels remaining, the " Sarah" must make a fine voy- age, unless she is very badly mismanaged on her retur' passage, of which there is much reason to fear. Wo regret much that we were so greatly deceived in Captain Cork. We know nol whose fault it was that the specie was left in New York. The writer found it in the s;ifo after you sailed, and u.sed it ; he knew nothing of it before. We heard of your arrival at Sierra Leone in twenty-four days by the British man-of-war brig "Butterfly "and her prize ; but your letters did not come to hand till January 2], (four months after they were written,) and then by the " Saladin." George and Cork's letters of November 21, rid Rio, came to hand two weeks since, and we hope soon to hear in the same way or direct. The " Sea-mew" arrived at St. Helena January 6, and sailed 14th for Africa, and perhaps will soon get home. We hope you closed your sales however before she arrived at Loanda. The " Quill" is hero, and idle we believe. Nathan Augustus Frye was married last nii'ht, and probably will not wish to sail very soon for Africa. It is not known that Ike " Jones" is going to Africa, and we hope she will not be followed very closely ; but the " Jones" is a fast sailer, and we hope will have a short passage, Mr. Hunt has just been in to ask plainly, if the " .loncs" goes to Africa. Ho writes to Cap- tain Bryiint by lier. He says the " Quill" is doing nothing yet. Yours truly, P. J. FARNHAM & CO. Captain Frakcis W. Sexton, ^Imbriz. i [Translation.] D. Masoro Maruy to " Captain Sequeson."* BoRNA, June 16, 1840. Sir ano Esteemed Friend: I hope you are well. I inform you now of all the trouble 1 had respecting the ivory. I am in expectation of " Chibuca,"containinB^ vine hundred teeth of ivory " together ivilh one liundred slaves ;" and yet I shall not be able for the present r».),. My desire is, sir, that you may keep in health. Your faithful servant. DOMINGO MASORO MARAY * Mistake for Sexton. CONVENTION WITH GREAT BRITAIN. 113 one being lamo of D xh 12, 1840. " Quill," was 8 on the trade ill not be acted autagc, but we uplnblo. Your ; but we think on board, pro- 1 rates, or even lake a fine voy- there is much Cork, he writer found tish man-of-war .nuary 21, (four /ceka since, and ed at St. Helena hope you closed idle we believe. Lo sail very soon )f she will not ht orl passage. lo writes to Cap- JHAM St CO. fane IG, 1840. all the trouble 1 lundred teeth of ■escnt to purchase finish til is busi- at from Loango, particulars from ir, that you may RO MARAY Besides these letters, irons, spare plank, and articles used for slave- food were found. This is the evidence with reference to the cause of seizure. And as the judge at Sierra Leone, whose experience enabled him to form an opinion on such a subject, ha.s decided that the evidence was insufficient to sustain so serious a charge, I have no liesitation in giving my full assent to that judgment ; but on the other hand I cannot but feel, when endeavoring to place myself in the position of Lieutenant Littlehales, and viewing these events and circumstances separately and in the order in which they happened, and not collectively and from an epoch long subsequent to the time of tlteir occurrence, that the jiidge at Sierra Leone was riglit in considering the error of the seizure materially induced by the conduct of the master. The sus- picious circumstances were undoubtedly those connected with the ship- ment of the crew, their assertions with regard to false papers and the objects of the voyage, the evasive answers and questionable conduct of the master and lastly, the two letters to which I have alluded. The seizure being complete, on the sixth day after it the vessel sailed for Sierra Leone with three of the ''Jones" crew. It is not alleged that the master, or the supercargo, asked to be allowed to go, although this is sought to be inferred when it is stated, hut contradicted, that he twice, before tlie Monday previous to the departure of the vessel, tried to get on board. About six or seven weeks after the arrival of the vessel at Sierra Leone site was libelled, tried, and de- clared free. The reason why Lieutenant Littlehales sent the vessel for adjudica- tion before a vice-admiralty court, instead of libelling her before a court of record at St. Helena, is stated to be that the latter court had only jurisdiction under 5 Geo. IV, ch. 113, to try the simple question of ivhcfher or not the ship was actu.ally engaged in the slave trade, while the charge made against the "Jones," involving the doubt of her nationality, suggested by the suspicion of lier having doviblo or false sets of papers on board, coupled ^yith. a suspicion of her being engaged in the slave trade, being only an offence created by the 2 (& 3 Vic, ch. 73, it could not be tried by any other court except that specially pointed out by the statute. I come now to tlie second division of the case, namely, to that part which has reference to the cause of the damage subsequent to the S St ' 'I I ill ! 114 ADJUSTMENT OF CLAIMS UNDER THE decree of the court ; and the first question which I find myself called upon to answer is this : Was the master justified, under the circum. stances, in abandoning his vessel so entirely as he did ? I believe that he was ; and if I am right in the view which I take upon this part of the case, namely, that the conduct of the master in abandoning his vessel was, under the circumstances, unjustijiahle, and that the losses subsequent to the judgment of the court were in the first instance the result of such abandonment by him, and afterwards by his prin- cipals, (the owners of the vessel,) it follows that it would be an act of injustice to hold the British government responsible in damages for consequences which were the natural result of the conduct primarily of the claimant's agents, and subsequently of their own. In making these remarks I am, of course, confining myself to the losses suffered after the judgment decreeing the vessel "recete." Now, in order to test the conduct of the master, I propose to inquire whether, as between insurers and owners, such an abandonment (sup- posing capture to be a risk insured against) would have been justifiable, so as to render the former liable, as on a total loss, to the latter ; and on looking carefully hrough the cases on the subject, I do not find anything to justify me in deciding this case upon the basis that the mas- ter acted either prudently, fairly, or for the interests of all parties. The rules laid down, so far as they concern the master, and in so far as the British government may now, for the purpose of illustration, be con- sidered as standing in the position of insurers called upon to pay as in the case of a total loss, are, in my judgment, equally applicable. It is Stated in Phillips on Insurance (vol, i. page 38) that "abandon- ment is only justifiable as against insurers when the thing insured is irretrievably lost ;" and it is elsewhere laid down that the total loss upon which abandonment is naturally consequential must be "clear and absolute, " that is, " tchere all probable hope of recovery is gone. ' ' Lord Mansfield, too, in giving judgment in a case in which the alleged loss was the consequence of a capture, said (M. d J., 2 Douglas, 232) the question is, "whether the consequences of the capture were such as, notwithstanding the recapture, occasioned a total obstruction of the voyage, or whether they merely occasioned a partial stoppage, as in the case of ^Hamilton v. Mendes.'" It has been held also that, although capture will sanction an abandonment, as in the case of a total loss, yet when followed by a recapture or restitution (and it must CONVENTION WITH GREAT BRITAIN. 115 be recollected thrit by the maritime law no change of property takes place until after condemnation) it does not do so; and this doctrine is practically laid down by Chief Justice Marshall, •-' a case cited in the work of Mr. Phillips^ to which I have referred. *. the case of Gar- derev. Col, 7 «7o/m'Sf 514, Mr. Justice Yates says that it is the bounden duty of a master to labor diligently for the recovery of his owner's property; and that if he does not, he lays himself open, after aban- donment by his owners, to an action at the suit of the insurers, whose agent by that act he becomes in the contemplation of the law. And in numerous other works it is laid down as a maxim of maritime law, that it is incumbent on the master "to stick" to the vessel until the last moment, and even to its ''planks." I have merely cited these authorities in proof of what I consider to be the imdisputed duties of a master of a vessel ; and if a fulfilment of them were necessary to enable an owner to recover as against his insurers, there is no good reason for assuming them to be unnecessary as between parties situated as the claimants are towards the British government. If then, in the present case, the insurers could not have been called upon to pay^ as in the case of a total loss, it is difficult to discover any principle which should impose a heavier obligation on the British government. Having then determined the question of what was the duty of the master under the circumstances of this case, I proceed to examine the grounds upon which its performance is sought to be excused ; and the first is that Lieutenant Littlehales did not send him and the supercargo with the prize crew to Sierra Leone. I do not find, however, that either of them ever asked to go, nor is it stated anywhere that they were unable to go there, or that no subsequent opportunity presented itself ; wliilc the presumption is^ from what is well known concerning the intercourse between the African coast and St. Helena in 1840, that communication between the two places was frequent. Not only, how- ever, was no attempt made, either by the captain or supercargo to accompany the vessel, (for the alleged refusal of the subaltern in com- mand of the "Jones" to permit thera to come on board only extended to the Monday, and the vessel, it must be borne in mind, did not sail be- fore the following Saturday,) but it does not appear that they ever attempted to apprise, or ever did apprise, by letter or otherwise, the factors of Messrs. Farnham and Frye on the coast of Africa, or, in short, any of the trading connexions of the owners ; and it is in evidence I 11 116 ADJUSTMENT OF CLAIMS UNDER THE lih that they had largo trading connexions on the coast, wlio could have watched the proceedings on behalf of the owners, and who might have reclaimed the vessel the moment she was declared free from the charge made against her, and enabled her to continue her voyage. Nothing, however, was done; the most ordinary precaution, against consequent losses were systematically neglected, and thus it appears, from the first, that those most concerned and interested in the case made up their minds to wash their hands of the whole affair — therein, as it appears to me, neg- lecting the very first duties of men in their position, and strongly sug- gesting the suspicion that the master and supercargo, at least, must have had pretty strong grounds, only known perhaps to themselves, for sus- pecting that the charge would be substantiated ; in which case they may have considered that their own personal safety within the jurisdiction of the court would have become somewhat problematical. It has been said, however, that the master, being left without money or clothes, could not proceed to Sierra Leone. But the same means which enabled him to take the longer joui iicy to England, and thence to America, would also, it may be fairly presumed, have enabled him to make the shorter journey to the coast of Africa. Passing by the question as to whether the master and sui)ercargo were guilty of misconduct, it becomes important to ascertain the course pursued by the owners on their being made ac(piainted with what had taken place. In the month of January, 1841, they had received intelligence of the capture and sending of the "Jones" to Sierra Leone, and as early as the 8th of February, in the same year, they had notice of the clearance of the vessel by the judgment of the court. Both prior and subsequent to these dates, they had other vessels trading on the coast ; their super- cargo had returned to Africa, and yet no attempt was made by them, or by any one in their behalf, to reclaim the "Jones," or to prevent the dam- age which was then going on. These are laches which I cannot overlook. It is conduct strictly in keeping with that of the captain, and was probably suggested by hira ; and throughout it savors of a determi- nation, through the instrumentality of the United States government, to make the Britisli government answerable, not only for losses sus- tained through the error of an officer in its service, but also for losses the immediate result of laches which even the most vexatious, unjus- ! CONVENTION WITU GRBAl 117 lid havo ;ht liavo c charge Nothing, 1 sequent the first, >ir minds me, neg- gly 8Ug- lust have , for sus- ;liey may isdiction without the same and, and i enabled ipercargo he course wrhat had gence of as early clearance :)sequent ir super- them, or thedam- )verlook. and was determi- jrnment, sses sus- or losses 8, unjus- tifiable, and improper conduct on the ])ar( i he Britis tiuthor e»j would have neith^ justified nor excused. Feeling therefore that the seizure, though not justifiid oi ho ground upon which it has been assorted the vessel was seized — miv iy, that she was engaged in the nlave trade — was the consequence ol the suspicions excited in the mind of Lieutenant Littlehales by the crow, of the unsatisfactory conduct of the master, and of the discovery of the letters addressed to the supercargo, I must say that I agree with the spirit of the judgment pronounced by the vice-admiralty court at Sierra Leone, which by its terms attributed, to a very great degree, the "error of the seizure" to the conduct of the master. The case, however, is now brought before the commissioners upon different grounds. We are not asked to declare the vessel guilty or not guilty of the charge under which slie was libelled, but we are simply asked to give the owners compensation for any damages they may have sustained through the conduct of an officer of the British government. To this extent 1 am willing to accede to the prayer of the claimants ; but I cannot go further, and compensate them for losses which appear to raft the direct and natural result of their own laches and those of their authorized agents. One fact, however, has entered into my com- putation of the comjiensation to which I conceive the owners have a fair claim, and I mention it because on principle I shall feel it my duty, whenever it occurs, to treat it in the same way. To the judg- ment of the court, the captors thought fit to enter an appeal ; and although such a proceeding does not appear in the present case to have in any way affected the vessel, yet I consider that where an appeal is entered without any sufficient or probable cause for disputing the judgment of the court, and subsequently abandoned, the parties intended to be affected thereby are fairly entitled to compensation for any expense, inconvenience, or loss of time to which they may have been put. The cargo, of whatever it consisted, (and on this head there is very great disparity, both as to quantity and value, in the evidence of the master and owners and that of the supercargo — sec statement in memorial and affidavit of F. Sexton, p. 218 of printed evidence,) was sold simply for the benefit of all concerndtt, because it was deteriorat- ing in value in consequence of the neglect of the owners to look after it, after they had notice that the vessel was acquitted ; and for this --«i< ,..:li. 118 ADJUSTMENT OF CLAIMS UNDER THE reason I do not consider them in justice or equity entitled to more than the proceeds of the sale. ^^ Estimating tlicreforo the detention of the vessel consequent on the seizure — as from the 12th of Soptcmber, 1840, to the 12th of May, 1841, a period of eight montlis — at £1,500; putting down also the probable injury sustained by the vessel in that climate at a third of its alleged value, that is to say, at CI, 000; and awarding for the loss suffered on a forced sale of stores, rendered neces.sary by such detention, at £300, with interest on these three suniB for twelve years and six months at five per cent. i)er annum from September, 1840, to Feb- ruary, 1853, equal to £1,749 — I adjudge to the ehiinuuits these four sums of £1,500, CI, 000, £300, £1,749, together with the sum of £1,C35 3.9. Id., the amount realized by tlie sale of the ship, stores, cargo, &c., and also the bags of coin and specie found on board the "Jones," and now in the custody of the marshal of the vice-admiralty court of Sierra Leone, making a gross total, exclusive of the said coins, &c., of £0,184 3.s. Id. *., . t '4 ) i I Jt|U.|UUJ P li» W CONVENTION WITH GREAT BRITAIN. 110 a it on tho of May, also the , third of • tho loss otc'ution, H and six , to Feh- heso four sura of [), stores, oard the dmiralty the said Hates), unii)ire: The uinpirc, appoinU'd aj^rt'ciibiy to the provisions of the convention entered int(» between (rrcat Hritain and the United Stiite.s, on tho 8th of Fehruary, ISGIJ, for the adjustment of claims by a mixed oommis- sion, having been duly notified by tho conimisHiunerH UTider tho said convention that they had been unable to agree upon tho decision to be given with reference to the claim of the owners of the baniuo "Jones," so far as regards the amount of compensation to be paid })y the gov- ernment of (treat Britain ; and having carefidly examined and con- sidered the papers and evidence produced on tlie hearing of the said claim; and havingeonferredwiththesaidconmiissionersthereon, hereby reports and awards that there is due from the government of Great Britain to theownersof the barque "Jones," or their legal representa- tives, the sum of ninety-six thousand seven hundred and twenty dol- lars ; to the supercargo, Sexton, the sum of twelve hundred dollars ; to James Gilbert, the master, the sum of eighteen hundred and sixty- three dollars ; to Ebenezer Symonds, the mate, the sum of eight hun- dred and forty-two dollars — together one hundred thousand six hun- dred and twenty-five dollars ; or, at the exchange of $4 85 per pound sterling, twenty thousand seven hundred and forty-seven pounds eight shillings and five pence. The British government retaining the pro- ceeds of the sales of the brig and cargo at Sierra Leone, and the silver coin now in the possession of the vice-admiralty court at that place. 'S •ii <* If 120 :3k:-:: ADJUSTMENT OF CLAIMS UNDER THE * THE MESSRS. LAURENT. Where claimants, who were originally British subjects, had become dciniciled in Mexico and continued to reside there, engaged in trade, during war between Mexico and the United States, held, tiiat they had so far changed their national character that they could not be considered " British subjects" within the meaning of these terms as used in the convention for the settlement of claims of British subjects upon the government of the United States. It appears from the memorial of the claimants, filed in this case, that the Messrs. Laurent have been resident merchants, engaged in business in Mexico, from 1829 to the present time, a period of twenty- five years ; that, in 1847, a law Avas passed by the Mexican Congress, authorizing a sale of certain church property, for the purpose of rais- ing the sum of |15,000,000 for the necessities of the government. The claimants occupied a house belonging to the church, and made proposals to the government to purchase it. TJiese proposals were accepted, and the government ordered the contract to be duly drawn up, and executed b}' the authorized officer appointed for this purpose. The contract was signed by the Messrs. Laurents. and the purchase- money v.as dejiosited in the hands of a banker, to await the execution of the instrument by the government officer ; but owing to some neglect it was not signed by liim, and in the meantime a revolution occurred, and the new president was authorized to annul the law for the sale of the church property, which he 07id fide trade, to the privileges of the neutral character." " This same principle, that for all commercial purposes the domicil of the party, without reference to the place of birth, becomes the test of national character, has been rei^eatedly and explicitly admitted in the I CONVENTION WITH GREAT BRITAIN. 141 courts of the United States. If he resides in a belligerent country, his property is liable to capture as enemy's property ; and if he resides in a neutral country, he enjoys all the privileges, and is subject to all the inconveniences of the neutral trade. He takes the advantages and disadvantages, whatever they may be, of the country of his residence." "This doctrine," says this distinguished writer, "is founded on the principles of national law, and accords with the reason and practice of all civilized nations." Would it bo in conformity with this doctrine to give these claimants the adv. '\tn^ 'f British subjects at tht' same time that they are domicile, in Ml^.oo, and enjoying C > oenefits of citizenship in that country? Sucli a thing is totally unheard of as that England should undertake to redress the grievances arising within the territory of another country. It is, I repeat, entirely opposed to the notion of independence in other countries, to the decisions of her own courts, and the practice of her government. If she can redress the grievances of an Englishman domiciled in Mexico, she can those of a Mexican, (for the law of nations places them both on the same footing,) and we shall have before this commission yet other Mexican claims. By the recent action of the British government, these principles have received important and authoritative confirmation, which must have great weight with the commissioners in determining this question. The exact question for which I have been contending in this case, has been practically decided by a despatch from the secretary of foreign affairs, in answer to an application from the British consul at Riga, asking to be informed in what condition war would place British merchants residing in Russia. In reply, Lord Clarendon said, on the 16th of February, "that, by the law and practice of nations, a belligerent lias a right to consider as enemies all persons who reside in a hostile country, or who maintain commercial establishments therein, whether these people are by birth neutral, allies, or enemies^ or fellow-subjects; the property of such persons, exported from such countries, is there- fore res hostium, and, as such, lawful prize of war ; sucli property will be considered as a prize, although its owner is a native-born subject of the captor's country, and although it may be in transition to that country, and its being laid on board a neutral ship will not protect the property." 4. 142 ADJUSTMENT OF CLAIMS UNDER THE This is a declaration, that every person domiciled in Bussia during the war will be regarded as a Russian. We have seen that it is merely an announcement of th" law of nations on this point, and presents nothing new. If, therefore, persons are to be considered as Russian subjects who remain under that government during war, the same rule must be applied to those who adhered to the Mexicans while the United States were at war with that country, and henco this commission is bound to declare that it has no jurisdiction in this case. •♦.'..;■ CONVENTION WITH GREAT BRITAIN. 143 Upham, United States Commissioner : The first article in the convention provides 'Hhat all claims of cor- porations, companies, or private individuals, subjects of her Britannic Majesty, upon the gDvernment of the United States, and all claims of cituens of the United States against the British government ' ' from the year 1814 to the present time, shall be submitted to the decision of this commission. It has been objected, on the part of the United States, that the claimants in this case are not British subjects within the meaning of the terms of this convention, but were domiciled merchants in Mexico, engaged in trade there during war between that country and the United States, and are therefore to be regarded as Mexican citizens and alien enemies ; and that all acts of hostility between the two coun- tries were settled and adjusted by the treaty of peace, or, if unsettled, can only be adjusted by the United States and Mexico. On the other hand, it is contended that the claimants are subjects within the terms of the British statute, and are to be held as such, so far as regards their remedy under this convention, though in adjudi- cating n})on their claim they may be entitled to no greater rights than a Mexican citizen. It is quite clear to me that the correlative terms ' ' citizens ' ' and ' ' sub- jects" were used by the contracting parties in the convention in contrast with and exclusive of each other ; and that it was not contemplated by them that subjects of Great Britain could be regarded, at the same period of time, as citizens of the United States, or that citizens of the United States might in the same manner have the additional character of subjects of Great Britain. If, however, we affix to the term British subjects the meaning estab- lished by the municipal laws of England in their statutes, it will in- clude vast numbers of American citizens, embracing not only all the emigrants from Great Britain who have become settled and natural- ized citizens of the United States since the revolution, but their child- ren and grandchildren who may have been born there. — (See 7 Anne, ch. 5; 4 Geo. II, ch. 21; and 13 Geo. Ill, ch. 21.) Thus, under this construction, every officer in the American govern- ment might be entitled to enforce before this commission claims, as British subjects, against their own government, as their grandfathers may have been subjects of Great Britain. A li 144 ADJUSTMENT OF CLAIMS UNDER THE This constructive doctrine ns to British subjects, though it still re- mains upon the British statute-book, has long been wholly obsolete as to all international action between Great Britain and other States. Many years since the claim was put forth by a British commander, that naturalized citizens of America engaged in war against their na- tive country would be summarily proceeded against as British subjects. But the claim was at once met by the declaration, that for every American citizen thus proceed'^l against, a similar example would be made of British prisoners, and it was abandoned. It is possible that Great Britain may keep this provision upon her statute-book in order that the children and grandchildren of emigrants from that country who may clioose to return again to her jurisdiction shall be received at once into full fellowship as subjects ; but in the decisions of her courts, in her international contracts, in her construc- tion of the rights of actual subjects, and the disabilities of aliens, she holds, without exception, that a person going to a foreign country and becoming domiciled there, in the legal sense of that term, is to be regarded, for all civil purposes, as a subject and citizen of such coun- try, entitled to the rights and subject to the disabilities arising from his domicil. There never has been anV international difterence of opinion between the two governments as to who are actual citizeiis and subjects of either power in their dealings and relations with each other, and there can l)e no doubt that tliis wcll-undorstood international meaning was adopted and used in tliis convention in reference to the terms citizens and subjects of either country. I contend, then, that we are not t > look to the Statutes of England for the definition of the term subjects, but to the settled practice and usages of nations. The same rule of interpretation applies to the term citizens. Tlie only difterence in the two cases is, that the United States have established conditions of citizenship in harmony with the present views and usages of nations, while such is not the case with tlie term subject as established by the municipal law of England. It seems to ino hardly necessary to sustain, by authorities, the posi- tion taken as to the ])roper construction of the terms under considera- tion. The decisions of England and the United States, as well as those of every other nation, are uniform to the point, that an individual going CONVENTION WITH GREAT BRITAIN. 146 to another country, and becoming domiciled there for purposes of trade, is, by the law of nations, to bo considered a subject of such country for all civil purposes, whether such government be a hostile or neutral power. Authorities to this effect will be found in Wilson v. Mairy(tt, 8 Term Rep. 31 ; M'Connel v. Hector, IJ Bos. d Pull. 113 ; The Indian Chief y 3 Rob. Rep. 12 ; The Anna Catherina, 4 Roh. Rep. 107 ; Do. Damns, note, 255 ; The President, 5 Roh. Rep. 277 ; The Matchless, 1 Hag^'ioris." — {Voet,tome 1, 347 ; Grotius, Book 3, p. 56, ch. 2, sec. 2; Book 3, ch. 4, sec. 6; Vattel, Book 1, ch. 19, sec. 212; Wheaton's International Latv, Part 4, ch. 1, sees. 17 d' 19.) The same principles are declared by public announcement of the present English ministry in reference to the existing war with Kussia, " as the settled law and practice of nations," and that, " by such law and practice, a belligerent has a right to consider as enemies all persons who reside in a hostile country, or maintain commercial establishments tlierein, whether such persons are by birth neutrals, allies, enemies, or fellow-subjects." And in conformity with this declaration, and the previous decisions on this subject, it was adjudged by the admiralty court, a short time since, in llie case of The Abo, that "in time of war a person must be considered as belonging to the nation whare he resides and carries on his trade, so far as the principles and rules of law are concerned, wliether he reside in the enemy's or a neutral coimtry." — (The Times, July 22, 1854.) 10 146 ADJUSTMENT OF CLAIMS UNDER THE The EngliHU authorities which have heen cited expressly declare, that a person domiciled in another country "is to be taken as a subject of such country." These are the words of Lord StowoU, in the case of the President, above cited. And, in making such decision, ho does not* mean to bo understood that such a ])crHon may l)e a citizen of another country, and at tho same time a British subject, as is con- tended before us; but he expressly declares, in The Ann, 1 Dod. Ad. Rep. 224, that this cannot be, because^ ho says, "he cannot take advantage of both characters at the same time," The owner of tlie Ann was a British-born subject, and his wife and child resided in Scotland, but he himself personally was domiciled in the United States. He was therefore clearly a British subject by the municipal laics of England, but Sir William Scott (Lord Stowell) held that, as regarded his international intercourse and character, he was not a British subject, or entitled to redress as such, and his property was condemned accordingly, notwithstanding tlio decree in council declared " that all property of British subjects," seized under like ■circumstances, " should be restored." The international definition of subject is also recognized and adjudged in Drummond's case, 2 Knapp's Privy Oouncil Iteports, 205, where it was holden that, though an individual might be formally and literally, by the law of Great Britain, a British subject, still there was a ques- tion beyond that, and that was, whether he was a British subject within the meaning of the treaty then under consideration ; and it was there contended that all treaties must be interpreted according to the law of nations, and that where a treaty speaks of the subjects of any nation, it means those who are actually and eftectually under its rule and gov- ernment, and not those who, for certain jjurposes, under the mere muni- cipal obligations of a country, may be held to maintain that character. And in Long's case, 2 Knapp's Privy Council lieports, 51, it was holden that a corporation, composed of British subjects, existing in a foreign country, and under tho consent of a foreign government, must be considered as a foreign corporation, and is not therefore entitled to claim compensation for the loss of its property under a treaty giving the right of doing so to British subjects. In the same manner, and on the same principle, the converse of the proposition was holden in the Countess of Conway's case, 2 Knapp's Privy Council lieports, 3C4, that a French native-born subject, residing CONVENTION WITH GREAT BRITAIN. 147 in England, had the charncter of a British suhjcct, nnd waH entitled to chiini compensation as hucIi, af^ainst hin own cnnntry, tor h)8seH under a treaty providing compensation to bo made "to British subjects." Tlieso cases seem to mv to be sound in principle and explicit in authority; and I a'm surprised, after these well-established and adju- dicated decisions, the doctrine is still contended for, that in the inter- pretation of the term subject, in this convention, we are to be confined to the meaning affixed to it by the English statute. It is desirable, before giving to it this construction, we should ascer- tain precisely what it means. By applying this construction to the convention, the second article would be made to read as follows : ' ' That all claims against the United States, of corporations, companies^ or juivate individuals, resident subjects of her Britannic Majesty, and of all ii;\tive-born citizens of Great Britain, who may have emigrated to the United States since the revolution, and of their children and granuchildrer who may have been born there, and all claims of citizens of the Uiiilc I States against the British government, shall be submitted t the decision of t',' board of commissioners, whose decision shall be final, ' &c. It seems to me that such an interpolation in the terms of this cor, vention, or such a construction of it, would strike no persons with more surprise than its negotiators. It is said, however, in order to obviate t'o evident difficulty of re- garding the treaty in this light, that a person holding the statute relation o( subject to England, may appear before this commission, and prosecute his cluim as such ; but if he is domiciled in another country, his case is to be adjudged and determined by the commission as though he were a citizen of that coiinti . . But I regard this as an erroiitjus and untenable position for any court or tribunal to take. Suppose, for instance, thui an American citizen, whose grandfather was born in England, diould come before this commission, armed with the power and authority of the British government, to enforce liis claim here against his own countrv, will it answer for this commission to say, that by the law of England he is a British subject, and as such we must hear him, but we will adjudge his case precisely as though he were a citizen of the United States? Surely not. Like any other citizen of the United States, he must pursue his remedy before the ordinary constituted tribunals of his country, or before Congress. It f ■ h 148 ADJUSTMENT OF CLAIMS UNDER THE ' !' M would be a futile attempt in uh to undertake to make any award on the merits of his case, as it cannot be supposed that either nation would sanction such an extraordinary assumption of power. This tribunal was not constituted to pass upon any such claim ; neither was it constituted to pass upon the claim of any British-born subject who may have domiciled himself in Mexico, and who continued to reside there during a war between the United States and that coun- try, '^^ carrying on," in the words of the legal authorities, "trade there, paying the taxes, and employing the people of the country, and expending his industry and capital in her service." "Such a person," says Lord Chief Justice Alvanly, "who resides in a hostile country, is a subject of such country. He is to all civil purposes as much an alien enemy as if he were born there, and to hold to a different conclusion would be to contradict all the modern author- ities on the subject." — {M'Connel v. Hector, 3 Bos. <£• Pull. 114.) This foreign character, however assumed, is a substantial recog- nized civil relation, as much so as the prior subsisting relation with England. The Messrs. Laurent, in this case, are citizens of Mexico, and their claim against the United States is a Mexican claim. Such a claim can only be adjudicated between the two governments where it originated. They alone are the national parties to it. And neither Mexico nor the United States are here with the necessary papers and evidence for its adjustment, for the reason that neither of those govern- ments has delegated to us any such authority, and an attempt by us to bind them in the decision of such claims would be wholly nugatory. It is suggested in the argument in this case, ' ' that the claim of English subjects cannot extend to every case in which a British sub- ject has been a party, but would only extend to claims upon the United States government, preferred by persons who had not by their acts forfeited their right to appeal to the English government for its inter- position." What would constitute a forfeiture of such right of a British sub- ject is not stated ; whether the act of the father would bar the son of his right as a British subject; or whether being born in a foreign country, where his futlier was domiciled, would have sucli effect. Many such (questions would arise under such a mode of determining tlie national character. If however the question, whether an indi- vidual is to be regarded as u sulyect of Great Britain, is to depend upon the fact whether he has, by his otcn acts, forfeited the right to CONVENTION WITH GREAT BRITAIN. 149 on the would claim 'y h-born itinued t coun- " trade ry, and resides ill civil to hold author- 14.) . recog- on with Mexico, I. Such ts where neither )ers and ^overn- t by us gatory. claim of ish sub- United eir acts ts inter- ish sub- le son of foreign effect, r mining m indi- depeud right to appeal to the English government for protection, it seems to me this case is clearly of that character. The injury of which the Messrs, Laurent complain arose from their placing themselves in the position of alien enemies of the United States in the war with Mexico ; they thereby forfeited tfeeir right to protection on the part of England, whose government was neutral, and could neither aid, abet, nor countenance any of its subjects in such acts of hostility. They could only, on this principle, be regarded as British subjects while hdlding the position of the British nation ; and when they departed from such position, and became alien enemies of the United States, they forfeited the p'otcction of England and their right to appear before this commission. The United States has no remedy against Great Britain for the con- duct of the Messrs. Laurent while domiciled in a foreign country, as her suhjecls; and they, as British subjects, have no claim to redress against the United States, or to appear before this tribunal in that character. Domicil, under all circumstances, stamps upon the individual the character oi foreigners, neutral or alien, as the case may be. Chancel- lor Kent says it is " the test of national character;" and that the only limitation upon the principle of determining character from residence laid down in any authority, is that the party, so far as regards his own country, must not take up arms against it. — (1 Kent's Com., 76.) The municipal relation of subject is, for the time being, wholly sub- ordinate to the new relation impressed upon tlie individual, and can- not exist as an international relation. His original right, as subject, may revive or revert if he returns to his native country, but it is otherwise inoperative. Each nation may well claim of other governments that its own native-born citizens, who are domiciled with them, should be equally protected by law with the native-born citizens of other countries. In- vidious distinctions in this respect would manifest a spirit of hostility against the parent country that could not be overlooked. But when individuals leave their own land, and have become domiciled in an- other country, and enjoy there the protection and the benefit of avail- ing themselves of its laws, courts, tribunals, and appeals to its general government, as fully and freely as the native-born citizens of that country, for the protection of their rights and the business in which they are engaged, the original government of such persons has no :f| 150 ADJUSTMENT OF CLAIMS UNDER THE i it '•' y claim to interfere in their behalf. Such persons become, by the set- tled adjudications of all countries, and the judgment of all writers on public law, in an international point of view, citizens of such country, as to all matters arising from such business and residence ; and the treaties and conventions between foreign States are framed on this basis. An attempt on the part of this commission to overrule or revise the decisions of British or American courts as to the business matters, transactions, or liabilities of persons thus do^^iciled in either country, or to pass upon them while such courts were fully open for their hear- ing and decision, would be an utter perversion of the powers granted by this convention. Persons thus domiciled have the rights and the disabilities, under this convention, of the country under whose protection they have chosen to reside. An American native-born citizen who has taken up his residence in London, and engaged in business there, has the same rights, under this convention, against the United Stat'^s, for any claims arising from his business there, as any other citizen of Lon- don, but his claim is as a British subject; his domicil, by the settled construction of public law, affixes on him that character. The same is the case with an English native-born subject resident in New York : his claims under this convention can be those only of an American citizen, so far as regards the business of his elected domicil, or any adjudications upon it. And wliere an individual is domiciled in another country, different from that of either of the contracting parties to this convention — as in Mexico, for instance — his claim arising from acts connected with and partaking of such domicil is not included in a convention for the adjustment of the claims of British subjects and American citizens. Such a claim must be prosecuted through conventions made between the country of his adoption, under wliose protection his business was carried on and his claim arose, and the United States. As regards any powers confided to us, he is to be holden as a Mexican citizen. Such a decision in no manner conflicts with or infringes on any inter- national right of England as regards her subjects. For these reasons, I am of opinion that the exception taken to our jurisdiction over the claim of the Messrs. Laurent, as presented to us, is sustained, and that no authority has been delegated to this commis- sion to adjudicate upon it. CONVENTION WITH GREAT BRITAIN. 151 he set- ters on mntry, nd the 9n this irise the aatters, ountry, ir hear- g ranted I, under ey have aken up ;he same for any of Lon- e settled ?he same w York : mierican , or any diflferent iion — as ted with n for the izens. between ness was regards 1 citizen, iiy inter- 3n to our ed to us, commis- HoRNBY, British Commissioner • I am of opinion that the Messrs. Laurent are entitled, as British subjects, within the meaning of the convention of 1853, to be heard before the commissioners in support of their claim to compensation from the government of the United States. The first article of the convention provides that ' ' all claims on the part of corporations, companies, or private individuals, subjects of her Britannic Majesty, upon the government of the United States, and all claims on the part of corporations, companies, or private individuals, citizens of the United States, upon the government of her Britannic Majesty, which may have been presented to either government for its interposition with the other since the signature of the treaty of peace and friendship concluded between Great Britain and the United States of America at Ghent, on the 24th of December, 1814, and which yet remain unsettled, as well as any other such claims which may be pre- sented within the time specified in article III, hereinafter mentioned, shall ue referred to two commissioners, to be appointed in the following manner." It is not disputed that the Messrs. Laurent^are British-born subjects, nor pretended that, except in so far as their character of British sub- jects may be affected by mere residence abroad, they have done anything to divest themselves of this character. They have not been naturalized in Mexico ; on the contrary, they have annually taken out a permis- sion to reside in Mexico, in which permission they have been imiformly designated as British subjects, and generally they have, so far as lay in their power, perserved their English character. This being so, and having, as they conceive, some ground of complaint against the United States government, they have appealed to the English government for its interposition on their behalf with that of the United States. It appears therefore to me, that this case comes within the letter of the convention, and is prima facie within our jurisdiction. But it is contended by the learned agent of the United States, that though within the letter, the case is not within the spirit of the con- vention ; submitting that the term "British subjects," used in the treaty, is not to be interi)reted according to English law, but according to international law, and that by the latter a person can only be regarded as a citizen or a subject of the country in which he is for the i; I il i :; I. i L !■ '1 152 ADJUSTMENT OF CLAIMS UNDER THE K' time being domiciled. I do not, however, understand it to have Leen assumed by the agent of her Majesty's government that the claimants, being "British subjects" within the terms of a British statute, are therefore necessarily "British subjects" within the meaning of the convention. It is clearly not the statute law of England which is to give the rule of interpretation, but the obvious intention of the parties to the treaty. Now, it is undoubtedly true that treaties are to be interpreted accord- ing to international law, but international law does not affix an un- varying meaning to particular words, or prescribe any rule for the construction of treaties, other than that applicable to the interpreta- tion of all written documents — namely, to discover and give effect to the intention of the contracting parties, which intention is to be col- lected from the language of the instrument of agreement, taken in connexion with surrounding circumstances to which it has reference. The cases which have been cited by the American agent are authori- ties for the well known principle of international law, that foreigners, domiciled in an enemy's country, cannot set up a neutral character as against an invading force on account of their foreign origin, so as to entitle them to immunity.from the ordinary consequences of war ; and with this undoubted principle, the declarations of the English ministers in reference to the present war with Kussia, as well as the recent decision of the admiralty court in the case of "The Abo," cited by the learned agent of the United States, are in strict conformity. It may be also, when we come to consider the merits of the Messrs. Laurent's claim, that this principle will be found to govern the decision which we shall have to give for or against the claimants ; but upon exami- nation of the cases cited, it is clear they do not establish the principle which they have been supposed to prove, viz: that the term "British subjects," as used in this treaty, cannot, under any circumstances ivhat- ever, be intended to apply to British subjects domiciled out of her Majesty's dominions. Several cases which were decided under the treaty of 1814, between France and England, have been referred to. The object of that treaty was to provide compensation for all ' ' British subjects" whose property had been confiscated by the revolutionary government of France. If the construction which is noic contended for by the American agent had been put upon the language of that CONYENTION WITH GREAT BRITAIN. 153 treaty, it would have followed that no persons domiciled in France could have heen admitted to claim compensation under the title of "British subjects ;" and such a construction would have gone far to defeat the very object for which the treaty was entered into, as it is a matter of history that the property of many persons, established as merchants or otherwise in France at the time of the revolution, was seized upon the very ground that the owners wore British subjects, which shows that mere domicil does not settle the question ; and moreover, on reference to the cases, I cannot discover that the con- struction contenaed for by the learned agent was put upon the French and English treaty. Genessee's case, reported in the 2d volume of Knapp's Reports, p. 345, is one in which it distinctly appears that Messrs. Boyd and Kerr, the claimants, were established as bankers at Paris. Now, if the present objection were valid, it would have been *a sufficient answer to that claim to have said, Messrs. Boyd and Kerr had established them- selves for commercial purposes, and were domiciled in France ; that they had voluntarily divested themselves of the character of British, and had assumed that of French subjects ; and cannot therefore claim the benefit of a treaty which was intended for the protection of those British subjects only who had not quitted their own country. Messrs. Boyd and Kerr, however, were held to be clearly entitled to compen- sation as British subjects ; and by the decision of the same eminent judge. Sir William Scott, whose judgments in other cases have been quoted in opposition to the admissibility of the claim of Messrs. Laurent in the present case. Drummond's case, decided under the same con- vention, has been especially relied on. The reasons, however, which are expressly given for the decision in that case, show it was not deter- mined on the mere fact of the claimant being domiciled in France, hut that from special circumstances — such as accepting military employ- ment under the French crown — he had voluntaflly taken upon himself the character of a French subject, and having done so, the new French government had a right to treat him as such, and consequently that he was not entitled to indemnity. If there had been analogous circumstances in the present case I might have felt bound to hold that the Messrs. Laurent wore not entitled to resume at pleasure, for their advantage, the character of British sub- jects, which, for their advantage, they had voluntarily renounced ; but 154 ADJUSTMENT OP CLAIMS UNDER THE in tlie entire absence of such circumstances, I am of opinion that mere resilience abroad does not deprive them of all title to the protection of the British government, or can preclude that government from taking steps to procure for them redress if they have suifered an injury in vio- lation of the law of nations, or absolve the American government from the liability to redress such an injury. In the case of the " Ann," a Britisb subject, who had been domiciled in the United States during the war between that country and Great Britain, sought to be admitted to the benefit of the orders in council which were intended to provide compensation for those British subjects who had been inadvertently injured in the course of the war by theEnglish cruisers, the claimant, having adhered to the enemy, was plainly not one of the class of persons for whose relief the orders in council were issued. The injury he sustained was, under these circumstances, in no wsiy wrongful. The decision therefore was not, as we are now asked to decide, that the claimant being domiciled abroad, could not, under any circumstances, be entitled to the character of British subject ; but that he was not a British subject, within the meaning of the instru- ment then under consideration, entitled to redress. The "Indian Chief," reported in 3 Kob. Rep. 12, as well as the "President," in 5 Rob. Rep. 107, are both cases in which the claimants had acquired a hostile character against their own country, and, as enemies, had sus- tained losses wliich were rightfully inflicted on enemies. It was im- possible therefore for them to establish a claim against this country upon the ground that they were British subjects, in the face of the fact of their having been in a position of hostility to Great Britain. In these cases, however, the merits and justice of the claim were in ques- tion, and they did not depend, nor were they decided, upon a mere ques- tion of domicil. It does not appear to me necessary to examine the other cases in detail, inasmuch as none of them, in my judgment, show that the term " Britiih subject" necessarily excludes every person domiciled out of the British dominions. And it becomes our duty to ascertain, from the object and language of the present convention, the sense in which the words in question were employed by the contracting parties. The object of the convention is stated to effect ' ' a speedy and equita- ble settlement" of certain claims pending and which had become the subject of discussion between the two governments ; and it is not merely for the settlement of the claims themselves, but, rather, to remove i M CONVENTION WITH GREAT BRITAIN. 155 at mere ction of I taking 1 in vio- int from )niiciled d Great council subjects English inly not icil were mces, in ►w asked t, under ject ; but e instru- " Indian It," in 5 quired a had sus- was im- country e of the Britain, in ques- ere ques- mine the nt, show person duty to tion, the itracting 1 equita- 3ome the »t merely remove I them from the arena of discussion between the two governments, that the present tribunal has been erected ; and it is therefore provided that all claims, &c., which may have been or might be presented to either government for its interposition with the other, should be referred to this commission. It is a fad that the applications to the English and American gov- ernments for their interposition, one with the other, have tio^ been con- fined to citizens or subjects domiciled in their own country, but the claims of persons domiciled abroad have in several instances become tlie subject of correspondence between the two governments ; it ap- pears to me therefore that if the sense in which the term ''British subject" or " American citizen" are to be construed be sought in the context of the convention, it will be found that the contracting parties contemplated American citizens or British subjects, wherever resident, whose claims had actually been or might properly become the subject of the interposition of the one government with the other. If, then, this be a correct mode of stating the question which we liave to determine, it cannot be denied that tlie practice of governments has been to extend their protection to such of their citizens as may be domiciled abroad, and to insist upon, and with success, redress for injuries. Instances in which the American government has so ex- tended its protection and demanded compensation have been mentioned ; and the case of Don Pacifico shows that the English government has considered itself entitled to interfere on behalf of an Englishman, though domiciled abroad. And many other instances might be col- lected from the history of recent times. Having regard therefore to the fact that both the English and American governments have from time to time interposed in respect of their subjects or citizens domiciled out of their respective countries, and that such interposition has in some instances led to the prefer- ment of claims by the one government on the other which were pending at the tin\e that the present convention was entered into, it is clear to mo that the high contracting parties in entering into the present treaty intended to provide a tribunal for the settlement of all claims, whether preferred on behalf of subjects domiciled in the British dominions or elsewhere, and consequently that the claim of the Messrs. Laurent is admissible before us. I cannot find any force in the argument, that if the Messrs. Laurent 156 ADJUSTMENT OF CLAIMS UNDER THE are admitted under this convention as British subjects, thousands of American citizens by birth having claims against the American gov- ernment, might also have presented them before the commissioners as British subjects by descent. If I am right in the rule of interpretation which I have adopted, it is clear that they could not ; for it would be ridiculous to suppose that either of the contracting parties intended this international tribunal to adjudicate upon the claims of acknow- ledged citizens or subjects upon their own governments. The effect also of acquiescence in the interpretation to be given to the words "British subjects" in the treaty contended for by the learned agent of the United States, would be that henceforth no merchant residing in a foreign country could ever claim the assistance and protection of the government of the country of which he was a native, and to which country he owes allegiance. Thus an English merchant residing in France, or an American merchant residing in England, is to be con- sidered as barred from appealing to England or America for protection and assistance. Mr. Everett, in his correspondence with Lord Aberdeen on the rough rice question, incidentally maintains the same view of the law and practice of nations which I have already expressed, although he carries it somewhat further than is necessary for the purposes of the argument in the present case. The American minister there insisted on his right to interfere, under the treaty of commerce between Great Britain and the United States, on behalf of an English firm, claiming compensation for pecuniary damage done in consequence of a non- observance of the treaty, because one of the members of that firm was an American citizen, domiciled in England. If in that case domicil in England had ousted the American partner of his right to appeal to the United States government for protection, or for its interference in obtaining for him the compensation due for an injury thus done to him, Mr. Everett was wrong in claiming the right to interfere, and Lord Aberdeen was wrong in admitting it. My judgment is founded on the following conclusions, at which, after a careful consideration of the arguments that have been advanced on either side, I have arrived. To recapitulate them, they are shortly as follows : That the Messrs. Laurent are admitted to be — whatever else they may also be — British subjects. CONVENTION WITH GREAT BRITAIN. 167 sands of can gov- ioners as (rotation vould be intended acknow- he effect ^le words ed agent residing ection of to which jiding in 3 be con- rotection I on the ' the law lOUgh he 3s of the insisted en Great aiming a non- irm was domicil >peal to rence in done to ere, and which, ivanced shortly Ise they H That mere residence in a foreign country, in time of peace or war, docs not deprive a merchant of his original citizenship or of the right to call for tho protection of the government of his native country ; although his continued residence in the country in time of war gives the right to the enemies of that country to consider and treat him as an enemy. That although such residence may clothe him with certain rights of citizenship and involve certain liabilities, it does not divest him of his original national character. That the practice and usage of nations sanction the interference of a government on behalf of its subjects or citizens resident abroad, as well as at liome. That consuls and diplomatic agents are specially instructed to watch over and protect the subjects of the countries of their respective goy- eiuments resident in the countries to which they may be accredited. That such being the usage and practice of nations, the words used in this treaty are to be interpreted in connexion with and by the aid of such usage and practice. That, consequently, it was the intention of the contracting parties to the convention of 1853, that the commissioners appointed under it should decide according to justice and equity upon the claims of individuals in the position of the Messrs. Laurent. U !■ Irl :i!l 'Si iii; vn t 1 ^ ■.■■ ;.■' -■■ ii ' f :.'.'ii 158 ADJUSTMENT OP CLAIMS UNDER THE ' 'i III II i V< 11' Bates, Umpire: The claim hy the Messrs. Laurent is for damages which, tlicy allege, they received in the year 1847, from the conduct of the United States General, Scott, who captured the city of Mexico in that year. The treaty of peace between the United States and Mexico settled all claims of Mexican citizens against the United States, The Messrs. Laurent present their claim as British subjects. It is (i[uite clear that none but British subjects or citizens of the United States can have any loctis standi before this commission. It is denied, (m behalf of the United .States, that the Messrs. Laurent can claim to be British subjects within the meaning of the words ** British subjects" as used in the convention by virtue of which this commission was appointed ; and this seems to me to be the correct view of the case, both on principle and with reference to the reported authorities on the subject. According to the municipal law of England, the Messrs, Laurent may be, for some purposes, still British subjects, but the language of the convention must be construed in accordance with the law of na- tions, and not according to the laws of any on nation in particular; and it is sufficiently clear that, by the rules of international law, and for the purposes of this commission, the Messrs. Laurent were, for the time being at least, Mexican citizens and not British subjects. There are many authorities which bear on this question. Lord Stowell, in giving judgment in the case of the " Matchless," (1 Hag- gard, page 97,) said : "Upon such a question it has certainly been laid ni 166 ADJUSTMENT OF CLAIMS UNDER THE WILLIAM COOK AND OTHERS. Where claim was presented by American citizens as next of kin and lieir of a deceased intestate in England, whose property had gone into custody of the crown, for want of heirs, held that it did not come within the jurisdiction of the commissioners, and was not within the class of cases designed to bo embraced in the convention. The fact that a case is brought within the letter of the convention is not conclusive as to the question of jurisdiction. The commissioners may go behind this to inquire whether it is within the class of cases that have been recognized and acted upon as matters of international adjudication. m This is a claim for £24,000 and upwards, alleged to be in the custody of her Majesty's government, it being the personal property, and effects of the late Frances Mary Shard, widow, formerly of Trenton, New Jersey. The claimants assert that they are the only surviving relations, end next of kin of Mrs. Shard, and as such, are entitled to the property of which she died possessed. That Frances Mary Shard was the relict of William Shard, esq., and was the daughter of Robert Rutherford, (an innkeeper,) and his wife Margaret, and was horn in Trenton, about the year 1758. That she left Trenton when about fifteen years of age, went to Europe, and married in London, in 1788, and at the time of her death, in 1811), had no surviving relatives, excepting the children of her father's sister, who, in 1743, married George Davis, a tailor, at Tren- ton, from whom the claimants are descended. The claimants allege that the property of Mrs. Shard has gone into the custody of the British government, to be holden in trust for her heirs, and that they now make their claim aa such, and as American citizens for its recovery from the British government. Exception was taken to the jurisdiction of the commissiouers, on grounds that will appear in the points taken by the counsel, and was fully argued, and submitted on this question. CONVENTION WITH GREAT BRITAIN. 167 Hannen, counsel and agent for Great Britain : Contended that the claim was not within the jurisdiction of the commissioners. The convention was entered into for the settlement of those claiming only upon either government^ which might properly have heen made the subject of diplomatic action or intervention. Had this case ever been presented to the notice of her Majesty's government by that of the United States, previous to this convention being entered into, the obvious answer would hn'e been, that it was a matter exclusively within the cognizance of the ordinary courts of law, and that the claimants must establish their rights there in the same way that English subjects would be bound to do under similar circumstances. The same answer must be given now, that the case is presented to the commissioners. It is not intended to invest them with a supreme power in all cases in which a citizen or subject of the one country ralglit assert a claim against the government of the other. Their commission docs not authorize them to assume the peculiar functions of the courts of either country. The universal doctrine now recognized by the common law is, that succession to personal property is governed, exclusively, by the law of the actual domicil of the iiitestate at the time of his death. (Story's Conflict of Laivs, sec. 451.) It is also well settled by the same authority, sec. 513, that an estate cannot be administered in the absence of a personal representatire, and such personal representative in England, must obtain his right to represent the estate from the ecclesiastical courts of the country. 2. It is further contended that the property of Mrs. Shard had never vested in the crown, but was holden by specific agents of the crown, as trustees, answerable in the courts of the country to any rightful administrator who might appear, and that the funds thus holden were, in no proper manner, the funds of the government. ' ' V^t\ ^ iiii^ f- *','«■'' ., ■ i 168 ADJUSTMENT OF CLAIMS UNDER THE Thomas, Agent and Counsel for tlie United States, and J. L. Clark, counsel for claimants, contended ; I. That the method of treating similar cases in the English courts was inconclusive, as to the question of jurisdiction, and that it was a well known principle that whenever treaties between nations come into collision with local regulations they entirely override and annul them. This case, is, in its terms, clearly within the provisions of the treaty of February 8, 1853, and any supposed inconvenience in adjudicating on that class of cases should not be permitted to oust the commission- ers of their jurisdiction over them. II. Her Majesty's government has an interest in the subject matter of dispute. The property of Mrs. K^hard is now in the hands of the government, and is claimed as the property of the government. Formerly the right of ultimate heirship was one of the personal rights of the crown, but this right, with various other rights, pertain- ing to the persona] t ocupant of the crown, has long since been trans- fered to and vested in, tlie gov'ornment, or crown, as distinct from the person. This surrender was made by George III, in consideration of a clear yearly revenue settled upon liim, to be paid out of the aggre- gate funds of the government, for the support of his Majesty's house- hold. (See act of 1 Geo. Ill, chap. 12.) Similar provisions have been made on each subsequent accession to the throne, as see 1 Geo. IF, chap. 1; 2 and 3 Wtlllam IV, chap. 116 ; 1 and 2 Victoria, chap. 2. In this case the Queen, in her private capacity, is wholly uninter- ested as to what is done with the property now claimed. Her personal income is, in no manner, increased, diminished, or effected by any disposition which has been, or may be hereafter made of it. W^'- CONVENTION WITH GREAT BRITAIN. 169 Upham, United Stuto8 Commissioner, delivered the opinion of the commission : This case has been ably argued on the question, what are the rights of the crown as to. this property, and whether it is a mere personal claim or a claim of tlie government. The laws settling on the personal representative of the crown, from time to time, a fixed yearly income, on the express relinquishment of the former uncertain and changeable revenues of the crown, seems to place them on the same basis as other revenues m The act of 39 and 40, Geo. Ill, also expressly declares that the representatives of the crown arre unable to dispose of, by will or other- wise, any property which comes to them with or in right of the crown. Tliis would seem to set at rest any claim to control over such revenufci' as personal property. There is a question, however, behind this which I regard as fully conclusive of our jurisdiction in this case. It may be conceded that the claim comes nominally within the letter of the convention. This, however, does not settle the question of jurisdiction. It is quite clear we may go beyond its terms to the con- sideration of the various classes of cases embraced in ordinary inter- national controversies ; and if any class of claims have not been lierctofore regarded as matters of international adjustment, we are not necessarily bound to regard them as included within the provisions of the convention. No instance can be found of the interference of government with the question of ordinary heirship and succession of estates in other juris- dictions. They are over left to local action and jurisdiction of the courts of tlic countries where situated. There is every reason why it should be so. The claim comes before us, then, in altogether an unwonted position ; and we are fully of the opinion that it is not of the class of cases «'?- signed to be embraced within the convention^ and that we have no jurisdiction over it. I :;!} m 170 ADJUSTMENT OF CLAIMS UNDER THE SCHOONER WASHINGTON. Constrvction of ihe treaty of 1818 relative to fisheries on the coasts of J^orth America. Tiio clause in said treaty in which the United States renounced the liberty "to take, dry, and cure iiah, on certain coasts, bays, harbors, and creeks of his Britannic Majesty's do- minions of North America," held not to include the Bay of Fundy . The Bay of Fundy held to be an open arm of the sea, so as not to be subject to the exclu- sive rigiit of Great Britain as to fisheries. if The schooner Washington, while employed in fishing in the Bay of Fundy, ten miles distant from the shore, was seized by her Britannic Majesty's cruiser, and taken to Yarmouth, in Nova Scotia, and con- demned, on the ground of being engaged in fishing in British waters, in violation of the provisions of the treaty relative to the fisheries, entered into between the United States and the British government on October 20, 1818. Claim of damage was made before the commission on the ground that the seizure was in violation of the provisions of that treaty and of the law of nations. Thomas, agent and counsel for the United States. Hannen, agent and counsel for Great Britain. [■' « CONVENTION WITH GREAT BRITAIN. 171 Upham, United States Commissioner : In 1843 the fishing schooner Washington was seized by her Britan- nic Majesty's cruiser, when fishing, broad, as it is termed, in what is called the Bay of Filndy, ten miles from the sliore. This seizure was justified on two grounds. 1. That the Bay of Fundy was an indentation of tlie sea, extend- ing up into the land, both shores of which belonged to Great Britain, and that for this reason she had, by virtue of the law of nations, the exclusive jurisdiction over this sheet of water, and the sole right of taking fish within it. 2. It was contended that, by a fair construction of the treaty of October 20, 1818, between Great Britain and the United States, the United States had renounced the liberty, heretofore enjoyed or claimed, to take fish on certain bays, creeks, or harbors, including, as was contended, the Bay of Fundy, and other similar waters within cer- tain limits described by the treaty. The article containing this renunciation has various other provi- sions, supposed to throw some light on the clause of renunciation re- ferred to. I therefore quote it entire, which is as follows: " Whereas differences have arisen respecting the liberty claimed by the United States to take, dry, and cure fish on certain coasts, hays, harbors, and creeks of his Britannic Majesty's dominions in America, it is agreed that the inhabitants of the United States shall have, in com- mon with the subjects of her Britannic Majesty, the liberty to take fish on certain portions of the southern, western, and northern coast of Newfoundland, and also on the coasts, hays, harbors, and creeks from Mount Joly on the southern coast of Labrador, to and through the Straits of Belle Isle, and thence northwardly indefinitely along the coast ; and that the American fishermen shall have liberty to dry and cure fish in any of the unsettled hays, harbors, and creeks of said described coasts, until the same become settled. And the United States renounce the liberty heretofore enjoyed or claimed by the inhab- itants thereof, to take, dry, or cure fish on or within three marine miles of any of the coasts, hays, creeks, or harbors of his Britannic Ma- jesty's dominions in America, not included within the above mentioned limits : provided, however, that the American fishermen shall be admitted to enter such hays or harbors for the purpose of shelter, 172 ADJUSTMENT OF CLAIMS UNDER THE ill w.f and of repairing damages (herein, of purchasing wood, and of obtain- ing luater, and for no other purpose whatever. But they shall bo under sudi restrictions us may be necessary to prevent their taking, drying, or curing fish therein, or in any other manner whatever abusing the privileges hereby reserved to them." The first gri)und that has been taken in the argument of this case is that, independent of this treaty, (rreat Britain had the exclusive jurisdiction over the Bay of Fundy as part of her own dominions, by tho law of nations. As this matter, ho vever, is settled by the treaty, the j)Osition seems to have no bearing on the case, except as it may tend to show that the United States wduld be more likely to renounce the right of fishing within limits thus secured to Great Britain by the law of nations, than if she had no such claim to jurisdiction. But on this point we are wholly at issue. The law of nations does not, as I believe, give exclusive jurisdiction over any such large arms of tho ocean. ' Rights over the ocean were originally common to all nations, and they can be relinquished only by common consent. For certain pur- poses of protection and proper supervision and collection of revenue, tho dominion of the land has been extended over small enclosed arms of the ocean, and portions of the open sea, immediately contiguous to th() shores. But beyond this, unless it has been expressly relinquished by treaty or other manifest assent, the original right of nations still exists of free navigation of the ocean, and a free right of each nation to avail itself of its common stores of wealth or subsistence. — {Grotius, Booh 2, ch. 2, sec. 3 ; Vattel, Book 1, ch. 20, sees. 282 and '3.) Reference has been made to the Chesapeake and Delaware bays, over which the United States have claimed jurisdiction, as cases militat- ing with this view ; but those bays are the natural outlets and enlarge- ments of large rivers, and are shut in by projecting headlands, leaving the entrance to the bays of such narrow capacity as to admit of their being commanded by forts, and they are wholly different in character from such a mass of the ocean-water as the Bay of Fundy. There is no principle of the law of nations that conntenancos the exclusive right of any nation in such an arm of the sea. Claims, in some instances, have been made of such rights, but they have been seldom enforced or acceded to. This is well known to be the prevailing doctrine on the subject in CONVENTION WITH GREAT BRITAIN. 178 America, and it would have been Hurprising if the United States negotiators had relinquished, voluntarily, the large portions of tho ocean now claimed by Great Britain as her exclusive right, under the provisions of this treaty, on the ground that it was sanctioned by the law of nations. It would have been still more purprising if it had ]>een thus relin- quished, after its long enjoyment by the iniiabitants of America in common, from the time of their first settlement down to the revolution, and from that time by the United States and British j)rovinces, from the treaty of 1783 to that of 1818. I see therefore no argIlnlcI!^ in the view which has been suggestec^ to sustain the right of excliisi iurisdicti m claimed l»y Kngland. 2. I come now to the couh' 'on of the second point taken in the argument before us, whicli is, that by the treaty of 1818 the United States renounced the right of taking fish within the limits now in con- troversy. This depends on the construction to be given to the article of the treaty which I have already cited. In the construction of a treaty, admitting of controversy on account of its supposed ambiguity or uncertainty, there are various aids we may avail ourselves of in determining its interpretation. " It is an established rule," says Chancellor Kent, "in the exposi- tion of statutes," and the same rule, I may add, applies to treaties, "that the intention of the lawgiver is to bo deduced from a view of the whole and of every part of a statute, taken and compared together, and the real intention, when accurately ascertained, will always prevail over the literal sense of the terms." He further says, " when the words are not explicit, the intention is to be collected from the occasion and necessity of the law, from the mischief felt, and the remedy in view ; and the intention is to be taken or presumed, according to what is consonant to reason and good discretion. — (1 Kent's Com. 462.) Now there are various circumstances to be considered in connexion with the treaty, that will aid us in coming to a correct conclusion as to its intent and meaning. These circumstances are the entire history of the fisheries ; the views expressed by the negotiators of the treaty of 1818, as to the object to be effected by it ; the subsequent practical construction of the treaty for many years ; the construction given to a similar article . ■: H ^, IMAGE EVALUATION TEST TARGET (MT-3) h // // >..-^ .^ /. 4^ ^o ■%. 1.0 I.I ■^ 121 125 m ■40 Hi u 2.0 IL25 un 1.4 1.6 Hmtographic .Sciences Corporation 23 WEST MAIN STRiiT WnSTIR.N.Y. UStO (716) •72-4S03 •17 V -\ M 174 ADJUSTMENT OF CLAIMS UNDEB THE in the treaty of 1783 ; the evident meaning to he gained from the whole article taken together ; and from the term ^'coasts," as used in the treaty of 1818, and other treaties in reference to this suhject. All these combine, as I believe, to sustain the construction of the provisions of the treaty as contended for by the United States. It will not be contested that the inhabitants of the territory now included within the United States, as a matter of history, have had generally the common and undisturbed right of fishery, as now claimed by them, from the first settlement of the continent down to the time of the revolution, and that it was subsequently enjoyed in the same manner, in common by the United States and the British provinces, from the treaty of 1783 down to the treaty of 1818. This right was based originally on what Dr. Paley well regards, in his discussion of this subject, ''as a general right of mankind;" and the long and undisturbed enjoyment of it furnishes just ground for the belief that the United States negotiators would be slow in relinquishing it. They certainly would not be likely to relinquish more than was asked for, or what the United States negotiators a few years before contended was held by the same tenure as the national independence of the United States, and by a perpetual right. In the negotiation of the treaty of peac- of 1814 no provision was inserted as to the fisheries. Messrs. Adams and Gallatin notified the British commissioners that '*the United States claimed to hold the right of the fisheries by the same tenure as she held her independence ; that it was a perpetual right appurtenant to her as a nation, and that no new stipulation was necessary to secure it. " The negotiators on the part of the British government did not answer this declaration, or contest the validity of the ground taken. Afterwards, in 1815, the consultations had between Lord Bathnrst ^nd Mr. Adams, the then Secretary of State, relative to the fisheries, show on what grounds negotiations were proposed, which were per- fected by the treaty of 1818; and that the renunciation desired, from the treaty of 1783, consisted of the shore or boat fisheries, which are prosecuted within a marine league of the shore, and of no others. At the first interview of the commissioners, liord Bathurst used this distinct and emphatic language: *'As, on the one hand, Great Britain cannot permit the vessels of the United States to fish within the creeks and close upon the shores of the British territories, so, on CONVENTION WITH GREAT BRITAIN. 176 the other hand^ it is by no means her intention to interrupt them in fishing anywhere in the open sea, or without the territorial jurisdistion, a marine league from the shore." ' -• > . ,- . Again ; he said, on a subsequent occasion : '' It is not of fair com- petition that his Majesty's government has reason to complain, but of the preoccupation of British harbors and creeks. ' ' — (Sabine's lieport on Fisheries, p. 282.) , --^ It is clear that it was only within these narrow limits the British government designed to restrict the fisheries by the citizens of the United States. The views of Messrs. Gallatin and Bush, the American negotiators of the treaty of 1818, appear from their communication made to the Secretary of State, Mr. Adams, immediately after the signature of the treaty. In this communication they say: ** The renunciation in the treaty expressly states that it is to extend only to the distance of three miles from the coast; and this point was the more important, as, with the exception of the fisheries in open boats in certain harbors, it appeared that the fishing-ground on the lohole coast of Nova Scotia was more than three miles from the shore." * It thus appears that the negotiators of both governments concurred, at the time of making the treaty, in giving to it the intent and mean- ing now contended for by the United States. It further appears that such was the intent and effect of the treaty of 1818, from the fact that the construction practically given to it for more than twenty years, and indeed down to the year 1842, conformed to the views of the negotiators as thus expressed. — (See Sabine's JReporty p. 294.) There are certain circumstances also appearing in the case, which show the evident reluctance of the British government to assert the exclusive pretensions ultimately put forth by them, and that they had been goaded to it, against their better sense, as to the construction of the treaty, by jealousies and laws of the colonists of a very unusual character, and which Great Britain was slow to sanction. And when she ultimately concluded to assert this claim, she tendered with it propositions for new negotiations, by which all matters connected with the colonies should be amicably a(^u8ted. ^,.! ' ■-) ■ .,%•.■'♦•»/ 176 ADJUSTMENT OF CLAIMS UNDB& THE I shall now consider the construction given to similar words of the treaty of 1783. It will not be denied that the words used in the treaty of 1783 and the treaty of 1818, where they are identical, and where express refer- ence is made to the provisions of the former treaty, mean the same thing. When the United States are said, in the treaty of 1818, to renounce the liberty heretofore enjoyed and claimed, it means the liberty heretofore enjoyed under the treaty of 1783 ; and the liberty then enjoyed was to take fish "on certian bays and creeks," without any limitations as to distance from them. ,««.*- .i ■ « ,.i.MiH!.i. Now, what were those bays and creeks on which — that is, ahng the line of which, drawn from headland to hea^and, the citizens of the United States were allowed to take fish under the treaty of 1783? It cannot be pretended that the bays and creeks there intended were any other than small indentations from the great arms of the sea. They certainly did not include the Bay of Fundy and other large waters. Because, if fishing was allowed merely on that bay, as is now contended — that is, on and along the line of the bay from headland to headland — then all fishing within the Bay of Fundy would be excluded. But it is a well-known fact that the suggestion never was made, or a surmise raised, that the expressions used in the treaty of 1783 permitted the fishermen of the United States to go merely to the line of the Bay of Fundy, and restricted them from fishing within it. A practice, therefore, for thirty-five years under this treaty of 1783 had determined tvhat clnsses of bays and creeks were meant by the ex- pressions there used. -.,.,-,: ,. ;^ li ^JtJJ. ,**iai:l** The treaty of 1818 renounced the liberty heretofore enjoyed of fish- ing on these identical bays and creeks — that is, immediately on the line of them — and also further renounced the liberty of fishing within a 8][)ace of three miles of them. But the bays and creeks here referred to were the same as those referred to in the treaty of 1783, and neither of them ever included tlie Bay of Fundy. *-£*^ v -^^ The express connexion between these two treaties is apparent from the face of them. Reference is made to the treaty of 1783 in a man- ner that cannot be mistaken ; the subject matter is the same, and the language, as to the point in question, identical. I contend, therefore, that the governments, in adopting the language of the treaty of 1783, in the treaty of 1818, received the words with CONVENTION WITH GREAT BRITAIN. 177 Is of the 1783 and ess refer- the same 1818, to le liberty n enjoyed mitations %g the line lie United It cannot any other certainly Because, ded — that ind — then But it is a a surmise litted the he Bay of ;y of 1783 y the ex- jd of fish- ily on the Ing tvithin re referred id neither Irent from In a man- I, and the I language )rd8 Mfith the construction and application given to them up to that time, and that neither party can now deny such construction and application, but is irrevocably bound by it. There are other portions of the article in question that aid in giving a construction to the clause under consideration, and that irresistibly sustain the view I have adopted. Thus it is provided, in another portion of the same article in refer- ence to these same creeks and hays, that the fishermen of the United States shall be admitted to enter " sucii hays," for the pmyose of shelter, and to obtain loood and ivater; thus clearly implying that such bays are small indentations extending into the land to which fishing craft would naturally resort for shelter, and to obtain tvood and water, and not large open seas like the Bay of Fundy. There are numerous bays of this character, along the coast, within tlie Bay of Fundy ; such as the Bay of Passamaquoddy, Annapolis, St. Mary's, Chignecto, Mines Bay, and other well known bays extend- ing up into the land. There is a further argument to sustain the American construction given to the treaty, derived from the meaning affixed to the term '^coasts," as applied by the usage of the country, and which was adopted and embodied in the various treaties between France and England from a very early period, and has been continued down to tlie present time. I have not seen this argument adverted to ; but it seems to me im- portant, and indeed of itself quite conclusive as to the matter in ques- tion, and I shall now consider it. The term ^'coasts," in all these prior treaties, is applied to all the borders and shores of the eastern waters, not only alono; the mainland, but in and about the Gulf of St. Lawrence, and arouml all the larger and smaller islands where fisheries were carried on. Tiiese coasts are thus defined and specified in the treaty of Utrecht between Great Britain and France in 1713, of Paris in 17r>3,and other treaties to the present time. In the treaty of Utrecht betwen France and England, the liberty of taking and drying fish is allowed "on the coasts oi' Newfoundland ;" provision is also made as to the fisheries on the coasts, in the mouth, and in the Gulf (f St. Lawrence. Reference is made to these 'U^oasts" in the same manner in the treaty of Paris, which took place after the conquest of Canada. The 12 111 liM: 178 ADJUSTMENT OF CLAIMS UNDER THE French are permitted by this treaty to fish in the Gulf of St. Lawrence at a given distance from all ^'the coasts" belonging to Great Britain, as well those "of the contiuent" as those of the is?anc?s situated in the Gulf of St. Lawrence." The fishery also "on the coasts" of the comparatively small island " of Cape Breton out of said Gulf" is regu- lated and provided for; and further it is provided "that the fishery on the coasts of Nova Scotia, or Acadia, and everywhere else, out of the said Gulf, shall remain on the footing of former treaties." Now I regard it as utterly impossible for any one looking at these treaties, with the map of the islands and waters in the Gulf or Bay of •St. Lawrence, and in and around Nova Scotia, referred to in these treaties, to doubt for a moment that the term " coasts" was designed to apply, and did, in terms, apply to the whole contour of the main- land and the islands referred to, including the entire circuit of Nova Scotia on the Bay of Fundy. These expressions are continued in the same manner in the treaty of 1783. The United States are there allowed to take fish in the Gulf of St. Lawrence, "on the coast of Newfoundland," and also "on the coasts, bays, and creeks of all other of his Britannic Majesty's dominions in America." Again, in the preamble to the treaty of 1818, which we are now con- sidering, it is said to have been caused by differences as to the liberty claimed to take fish on certain coasts, bays, harbors, and creeks of his Britannic Majesty's dominions in America, and by the treaty provision is made as to the fisheries on the coasts of Newfoundland, and on "the coasts, bays, harbors, and creeks from Mount Joly, on the southern coast of Labrador, to and through the straits of Belle Isle, and thence northwardly indefinitely along the coast;" and then follows the renun- ciation from the right before enjoyed by the United States "to take, dry or cure fish on or within three marine miles of any of the coasts, bays, creeks, or harbors of his Majesty's dominions in America." It seems to me undeniable that the term coasts in all these treaties was well defined and known. The outlet of the St. Lawrence is equally well known by the terra bay or gulf. The shores on that bay or gulf, and on the islands within it, are uniformly spoken of as "coasts;" and the same mode of designating the shores along this entire country is used in all these treaties in reference to the various waters where fishe- ries were carried on. ifi CONVENTION WITH GREAT BRITAIN. 179 a now con- ' ' The coasts ' ' uamed in these treaties were not only the coasts of the Bay or Gulf of St. Lawrence, and of the island of Cape Breton, but extended from the head of the Bay of Fundy along the bay entirely around Nova Scotia to the Gulf or Bay of St. Lawrence. There never had been any misunderstanding as to the application of this term, or denial of the right to fish on these coasts, as I have named them, under all these treaties down to 1818. The Lerm coasts, as applied to Nova Scotia during this long period, was as well known and understood as the term " coasts" applied to England or Ireland ; and it included the coasts on the Bay of Fundy as fully and certainly as the term coasts of England applies to the coasts of the English channel. It was a fixed locality, known and established, and the right of taking fish had always been " enjoyed there." When, therefore, the treaty of 1818 '4-enounced the liberty, hereto- fore enjoyed, of taking fish within three marine miles of any of the COASTS, bays, creeks, etc., of his Britannic Majesty's dominions," the renunciation was, for this distance from a fixed locality, as fully settled and established as language, accompanied by a long and uninterrupted usage, could make it. " The coasts " named are those of 1783, and of prior treaties, and the renunciation of three miles was to be reckoned from these coasts. The Bay of Fundy was therefore not excluded from the fishing grounds of the United States. The annexed sketch of the Gulf or Bay of St. Lawrence, with the adjoining waters and coasts, will show how the term coasts was prac- tically applied under all the treaties referred to prior to 1818. I am not aware of any reply to the points here taken that I think can at all invalidate them. From the papers filed in the case, it appears that in 1841 , the province of Nova Scotia caused a case stated to be drawn up and forwarded to England, with certain questions to be proposed to the law officers of the crown. One inquiry was, whether the fishermen of the United States have any authority to enter any of the bays of that province to take fish. These officers, Messrs. Dodson and Wilde, reply that no right exists to enter the bays of Nova Scotia to take fish, " as they are of opinion the term headland is used in the treaty to express the part of the land excluding the interior of the bays and inlets of the coasts." It t 180 ADJUSTMENT OF CLAIMS UNDER THE CONVENTION WITH GREAT BRITAIN. 181 to * i < 111 o o -^ Now it so happens that no sucli term is used in the treaty, and their decision, based on it, falls to the ground. They were also specifically asked to define what is to be considered a headland. This they did not attempt to do. The headlands of the Bay of Fundy have never been defined or located, and, from the con- tour of tho bay, no such headlands properly exist. These officers held that the American fishierman, for the reason named, could not enter the bays and harbors of Nova Scotia. But the Bay of Fundy is not a bay or harbor of the province of Nova Scotia, and was never included in its limits. The Bay of Fundy is bounded on one side by Nova Scotia, and on the other by New Bruns- wick, and it is not clear that either the question proposed, or answer given, was designed to include this large arm of the sea. It is also said, that Mr. Webster has conceded the point in issue in a notice given to American fishermen. The claims, now asserted were not put forth till many years after the treaty of 1818; and it was not until 1852 the British government gave notice that seizures would be made of fishermen taking fish in violation of the construc- tion of the treaty of 1818, as then claimed by them, when Mr. Web- ster, to avoid the collisions that might arise, issued a notice setting forth the claims put forth by England. In one part of his notice he says: "It was an oversight to make so large a concession to England," but closes by saying: "Not agreeing that the construction put upon the treaty by the English government is conformable to the intentions of the contracting par- ties, this information is given that those concerred in the fisheries may understand how the concern stands at present, and be upon their guard." Mr. Webster subsequently denied relinquishing, in Any manner, by this notice, the rights of the United States, as claimed under this treaty. Detached expressions quoted from it, to sustain a different opinion, can hardly be regarded, under such circumstances, as an authority. I have seen no other argument or suggestions tending, as I think, to sustain the grounds taken by the British government. On the other hand, I have adverted, briefly, as I proposed, to the history of the fisheries ; the views expressed by the negotiators of the treaty of 1818, as to the object to be effected by it ; the subsequent 182 ADJUSTMENT OF CLAIMS UNDER THE practical construction of it for many years ; the construction given to a similar article in the treaty of 1783 ; the evident meaning to be gained from the entire article of the treaty taken together.; and from the term ''coasts" as used in the treaty of 1818, and other treaties in reference to tlnn subject ; and tlie whole combine, as I believe, to sustain the construction contended for by the United States. I am therefore of opinion, the owners of the Washington should receive compensation for the unlawful seizure of that vessel by the British government, when fishing more than three miles from the shore or coast of the Bay of Fundy. GOMyBMTION WITH GREAT BBITAIN. 183 Hornby, British Commissioner : An opinion was delivered by Hornby conflicting with the views and conclusion of the United States commissioner, and sustaining the position taken by his government, on the ground that Great Britain, by virtue of her ownership of both shores of the Bay of Fuudy, had exclusive jurisdiction over the waters of the bay, by virtue of the law of nations, applicable to such sheets of water, and cited various claims that had been put forth to a similar jurisdiction. He also held that the provision in the treaty by which the United States '' renounced the liberty previously enjoyed to take, dry, or cure fish on, or within three marine miles of any of the coasts, bays, creeks, or harbors of his Britannic Majesty's dominions in North America," excluded by its terms, andby a just construction of the treaty, fisheries of the United States citizens in the Bay of Fundy. NoTB. — The opinion of the British commiisioner in this, and some other cases, was to hav been drawn up at length, and furnished, to be placed on file. It is to be regretted that these opinions have not been received, and that, after this length of time, they probably will notbe. 184 ADJUSTMENT OF CLAIMS UNDER THE Bates, Unii)iro: The schooner Washington was Hcized hy thurtenances, out- fits and damages, $2,483, and for cloven 3'ears interest, $1 ,038, amount- ing together to $4,121. By tho recent reciprocity treaty, happily concluded between tho United States and Great Britain, there seems no chance for any future disputes in regard to the fisheries. It is to bo regretted, that in thot treaty, provision was not made for settling a few small claims of no importance in a pecuniary sense, which were then existing, but as they have not been settled, they are now brought before this commission. The Washington fishing schooner was seized, as before stated, in the Bay of Fundy, ten miles from the shore, off Annapolis, Nova Scotia. It will be seen by the treaty of 1783, between Great Britain and the United States, that the citizens of the latter, in common with the subjects of tho former, enjoyed the right to ^ai'e and c?»'e fish on the shores of all parts of her Majesty's dominions in America, used by British fisher- men ; but not to dry fish on the island of Newfoundland, which latter privilege was confined to the shores of Nova Scotia in the following words : "And American fishermen shall have liberty to dry and cure fish on any of the unsettled bays, harbors, and creeks of Nova Scotia, but as soon as said shores shall become settled, it shall not bo lawful to dry or cure fish at such settlement, without a previous agreement for that purpose with the inhabitants, proprietors, or possessors of the ground." The treaty of 1818 contains the following stipulations in relation to the fishery : * ' Whereas, differences have arisen respecting the liberty claimed by the United States to take, dry, and cure Jish on certain coasts, hays, harbors, and creeks of his Britannic Majesty's dominions in America, it is agreed that the inhabitants of the United States shall have, in common with the subjects of his Britannic Majesty, the liberty to fish on certan portions of the southern, western, and northern CONVENTION WITH GREAT BRITAIN. 185 coast of Nowfoiindlaml ; and, also, on tho coastH, Imy.H, linrliorH, and crcokH, from Mount Joly, on tho southern toast of Labrador, to and through tho straits of Bello Isle ; and thence northwardly indefinitely along tho coast, and that Amoriean Hshermen shall have liberty to dry and cure fish in any of tho unsettled bays, harbors, atid creeks of said described coasts, until tho same become settled, and the I'nited States renounco the liberty heretofore enjoyed or claimed by the inhabitants thereof, to take, dry, or cure fish, on or unthin thrvr marine mlhs of any of the coasts, bays, creeks, or harbors of his Britannic Majesty's dominions in America, not included in the above mentioned limits : provided, however, that tho American nshormen shall bo admitted to enter such bays or harbors, for the purpose of shelter, and of repairing damages therein, of purchasing wood, and of obtaining water, and for no other purpose whatever. But they shall be under such restrictions as may be necessary to prevent their taking, drying, or curing fish therein, or in any other manner whatever abusing the privileges hereby reserved to them." The question turns, so far as relates to the treaty stipulations on tho meaning given to the word "bays" in tho treaty of 1783. By that treaty the Americans had no right to dry and cure fish on the shores and bays of Newfoundland, but they had that right on the coasts, hays, harfnyrs, and creeks of Nova Scotia ; and as they must land to cure fish on the shores, bays, and creeks, they were evidently admitted to the shores of the bays, do. By tho treaty of 1818, the same right is granted to cure fish on the coasts, bays, &c. , of Newfoundland, but the Americans relinquished that right, and the right to fish ivithin three miles of the coasts, bays, dc, of Nova Scotia. Taking it for granted that the framers of the treaty intended that tho word "bay or bays" should have the same meaning in all cases, and no mention being made of headlands, there appears no doubt that the Washington, in fishing ten miles from the shore, violated no stipulations of the treaty. It was urged on behalf of the British government, that by coasts, bays, &c., is understood an imaginary line, drawn along the coast from headland to headland, and that the jurisdiction of her Majesty extends three marine miles outside of this line ; thus closing all the bays on the coast or shore, and that great body of water called the Bay of Fundy against Americans and others, making the latter a British bay. This doctrine of headlands is new, and has received a proper ^ J ^'1 186 ADJUSTMENT OF CLAIMS UNDER THE limit in the convention between France and Great Britain of 2d August, 1839, in which " it is agreed that the distance of three miles fixed as the general limit for the exclusive right of fishery upon the coasts of the two countries shall, with respect to bays, the mouths of which do not exceed ten miles in width, be neasured from a straight line drawn from headland to headland." The Bay of Fundy is from 65 to 75 miles wide, and 130 to 140 miles long, it has several bays on its coasts ; thus the word bay, as applied to this great body of water, has tlie same meaning as that applied to the Bay of Biscay, the Bay of Bengal, over which no nation can have the right to assume the sovereignty. One of the headlands of the Bay of Fundy is in the United States, and ships bound to Passamaquoddy must sail through a large space of it. The island of Grand Menan (British) and Little Menan (American) are situated nearly on a line from headland to lieadl and . These islands, as represented in all Geographies, are situate in the Atlantic ocean. The conclusion' is, therefore, in my mind irresistible, that the Bay of Fundy is not a British bay, nor a bay within the meaning of the word, as used in the treaties of 1*783 and 1818. . The owners of the Washington, or their legal representatives, are therefore entitled to compensation, and are hereby awarded not the amount of their claim, which is excessive, but the sum of three thousand dollars, due on the 15th January, 1865. CONVENTION WITH GREAT BRITAIN. 187 THE BRIG ENTERPRIZE. Every country is entitled to the free and absolute right to navigate the ocean, as the com- mon highway of nations; and, while in the enjoyment of this right, retains over its vessels the exclusive jurisdiction. A vessel, compelled by stress of weather, or other unavoidable necessity, has a right to seek temporary shelter in any harbor, as incident to her right to navigate the ocean, until the danger is past, and she can proceed in safety. When a vessel, engaged in a lawful voyage by the law of nations, is compelled, by stress of weather, or other inevitable cause, to enter a harbor of a friendly nation for temporary shelter, the enjoyment of such shelter, being incident to the right to navigate the ocean, car- ries with it, over the vessel and personal relations of those on board, the rights of the ocean, so far as to extend over it, for the time being, the protection of the laws of its country. The act of 3 and 4 William IV., ch, 73, abolishing slavery in Great Britain and her dominions, could not overrule the rights of nations, as sustained by these propositions. The brig Enterprize sailed from A.lexandria, in the District of Co- lumbia, on the 22d of January, 1835, for Charleston, South Carolina. She had on board seventy-three slaves, besides the owners of the ves- sel. She encountered severe weather on her passage, was driven from her course, and was ultimately compelled, by stress of weather, and her leaky condition, after beingthree weeks at sea, to putinto Port Hamilton, in Bermuda, to refit, in order to enable her to proceed on her voyage. While in port, the vessel was entered by person* claiming authority under the government, and the slaves were liberated. Claim was early made for indemnity for such liberation, under the circumstances in which the vessel entered into port ; and after much correspondence between the governments in reference to it, the claim was still pending at the time the convention was entered into, and it was then presented for adjustment by the commission. Hannen, agent and counsel for Great Britain, resisted the claim on the several grounds following, viz : 1. That laws have no force in themselves beyond the territory of the country by which they are made. ^i fif l\ 188 ADJUSTMENT OF CLAIMS UNDER THE 2. That, while by the comity of nations, the laws of one country are, in some cases, allowed by another to have operation within its territory when it is so permitted, the foreign law has its authority in the other country from the sanction given to it there, and not from its original institution. 3. Tliat every nation is the sole judge of the extent and the occasions on which it will permit such operation, and is not bound to give such permission when the foreign law is contrary to its interests or its moral sentiments. 4. That England does not admit within its territory the applica- tion of any foreign law establishing slavery, having abolished the •s/a 5. He contended that the condition of apprenticeship, as permitted to remain in the West India islands, formed no exception to the aboli- tion of slavery throughout the British dominions, as it was a system entirely different from slavery, and would not justify sustaining any other description of slavery. 6. That the liberty of any individual in British territory could not be restrained without some law to justify such restraint, and that neither the apprentice law nor any other law could be appealed to to justify the detention of these negroes. 7. That slavery was not a relation which the British government, by the comity of nations, was bound to respect. I CONVENTION WITH GREAT BRITAIN. 189 Thomas, agent and counsel for tlie United States : The transaction out of which this claim arose took place in the year 1835. On the 22d of January in that year, the brig Enterprize sailed from Alexandria, in the District of Coluhibia, bound for Charles- ton, South Carolina, having a number of negro slaves on board. Her I)apers were regular, and the voyage in all respects lawful. She en- countered tempestuous weather and was driven from her couisc, and after having been three weeks at sea, she was unavoidably compelled, l)y stress of weather, to enter into Port Hamilton, Bermuda Island, where the negroes were forcibly seized on board and liberated by the local authorities of Great Britain. It will be remembered that the slaves on board the Comet, in 1830, and the Encomium, in 1834, were liberated by the British authorities under circumstances entirely similar in principle. The owners of the negroes in all these cases, after applying, without success, to the au- thorities in Bermuda for their surrender, brought the matter before tlie United States government for the redress of the injury, and many years were consumed in negotiation ; the British government, how- ever, finally agreed to compensate the owners of the Comet and En- comium, on the ground that these cases occurred while slavery existed by British law, but refused compensation in the case of the Enterprize, for the alleged reason that at the time this vessel arrived at Bermuda, slavery had, by the emancipation act of 1833, been abolished through- out the British empire. These are the important facts in this case, and I propose to show first that the principle which grants compensation in the cases of the Comet and Encomium, applies in all its Ibrce to the case of the En- terprize. Compensation was not granted in the cases of the Comet and En- comium, because the owners were entitled to it by the laws of Great i'ritain. This is evident from the act of Parliament of 5 Geo. 4, c. 113, consolidating the laws for the abolition of the slave trade, and which received the royal sanction in 1824. The third and tenth sec- tion of that act provides " that any person who sliall import or bring into any place wliatever in the British possessions, slaves or other persons, in order to their being dealt with as slaves, shall be declared guilty of felony, and may be transported for a term of fourteen years." 190 ADJUSTMENT OF CLAIMS UNDER THE iii ! !f:| This law was in force when both the Comet and Encomium arrived in Bermuda. It abolished slavery in regard to all persons imported, or brought into Bermuda, as effectually as did the act of the 28th Au- gust^ 1833, abolish slavery in those persons who were already within the British empire. Yet the British secretary for foreign affairs ad- mits that, notwithstanding the law forbidding the bringing in of slaves, the owners of those slaves on board the Comet and Encomium were lawfully in possession of them Avithin British jurisdiction. It is, therefore, evident that the right to them did not depend upon British law, but must have rested upon the laws of their own country. The question then arises, how the laws of the United States could have force within British territory, and especially when contrary to the laws there existing ? The answer to this question will be found in the code which regulates the intercourse of nations. These vessels, when on the high seas, were under the protection of the law of nations, and when driven by necessity into a foreign jurisdiction, they were surrounded by that law and shielded from any control of the local au- thorities. The overruling power of international law isolated the distressed vessel and the persons and property on board, and with- drew them from the operation of a municipal law to which they had not voluntarily submitted themselves, and preserved in force that of their own country. The British secretary for foreign affairs has admitted that there is no difference between the cases ox tiie Comet and Encomium and that of the Enterprize, except that the two former occurred before, and the latter one after the act of Parliament for the abolition of slavery in the British islands had taken effect. The act putting an end to the slave trade, to which I have referred, prohibited slaves from being brought in under any circumstances ; but it did not over- rule the law of nations. When slaves were found in Bermuda on board the Comet and Encomium, the American citizens, notwith- standing this law, kept possession of their slaves. Why, then, should the act of Parliament for the abolition of slavery in those negroes already in Bermuda have the effect to liberate slaves not brought in, but forced into British jurisdiction by necessity? The law emanated from the same authority ; and if the slaves on board the Comet and Encomium were lawfully in possession of their owners within British territory, as Lord Palmerston says they were, for the same reason tlio arrived in )orted, or 28th Au- ly within ifFairs ad- ng in of Incomium ction. It jnd upon I country, ites could jntrary to e found in le vessels, >f nations, they were e local au- )lated the and witli- 1 they had [■ce that of that there nium and red before, .bolition of )utting an ited slaves not over- ermuda on notwith- en, should >se negroes rought in, emanated Coniet and \\n British reason the CONVENTION WITH GREAT BRITAIN. 191 conclusion is irresistible that the slaves on board the Enterprize were in like manner lawfully held there by their masters. But the chief argument in support of the position of the British minister, in justification of his r fasal to grant compensation in the case of the Enterprize, and which has been strongly urged here, is, that "before the time this vessel arrived at Bermuda, slavery had been abolished throughout the British empire. Is this true? Had Grreat Britain done what the title of the act of Parliament imports ? I propose to sliow that this so called philanthropic law did not abolish slavery throughout the empire ; that it had in it a proviso which ex- empted a large part of tlie British possessions from its operation ; and, consequently, that Lord Palmerston's argument entirely fails. I have before me the act of Parliament, dated the 28th of August, 1833, and which is entitled, *' An act for the abolition of slavery throughout the British colonies." It partly took eflfect on the 1st day of August, 1834, and the twelfth section declares, *'that from and after the said first day of August, 1834, slavery shall be, and is hereby, utterly and forever abolished and declared unlawful throughout the British colo- nies, plantations, and possessions abroad." If there was no reserving clause in this act, it would certainly mean that slavery had been abolished throughout the British colonies ; but when we look at the forty-fourth section, it appears that no such interpretation can be given to it. That section is in these words : "And he it further enacted, That nothing in this act contained doth or shall extend to any of the territories in the possession of the East India Company, or to the Island of Ceylon, or to the Island of St. He- lena." I have repeatedly called the attention of the British agent to this section of the law, which re-established slavery in these possessions, if the twelfth section abolished it, but he has been unable to make any explanation. I have asked him to show me when and how Parlia- ment abolished slavery in these possessions of her Majesty in the east, and he has been unable to give me any answer. He has reposed en- tirely upon the assertion of the British minister, that slavery had been everywhere abolished in her Majesty's dominions, which we have seen is not sustained by the act of Parliament. The law for the ex- tension of the Eaot India Company's charter, passed on the very same day, proves even more clearly that the so-called emancipation act was ii 192 ADJUSTMENT OF CLAIMS UNDER THE !, i; not designed to abolish slavery beyond the Cape of Good Hope, as it has been alleged it did. It will be seen by the eighty-eighth section of that act, that only a prospective abolition of slavery was designed in the parts of the empire under the East India Company. This act requires the governor general of India, in council, **to take into con- sideration the means of mitigating the state of slavery, and of extin- guishing it throughout the said territories so soon as such extinction shall be practicable and safe ;" and it further requires that "all the measures adopted for this purpose should every year be laid before both houses of Parliament.' If it was true that slavery had been abolished before the time when these slaves on the Enterprize were liberated, the British agent could very easily give the i)roof by laying before the commission the documents submitted to Parliament by the governor general of India, but he lias produced none ; and I now repeat the call upon him, to show whether it ceased in the parts of the empire exempted by the act of 1833, before the time when these transactions took place. This he cannot do ; for it will be found, by reference to Campbell's History of India, that the British com-ts in that colony took cognizance of the institution of slavery, as existing under English law, during Lord Ellenborough's governor-generalship. He entered on his duties in 1841 . This was after all the slaves were liberated for which Ave claim comitensation. So that slavery was recognized and existed by force of British law during the whole period of these transactions. The laws so recognizing it were on the statute book, yet, in the face of these acts of Parliament, the British minister formally maintained that slavery had been abolished throughout the British empire. If the existence of slavery, which these facts so incontrovertibly establish, was known to the British minister when he made the asser- tion that it had been abolished throughout the British empire, then his declaration needs no comment from me; but if, on the contrary, he was ignorant of any such provision of the law, the government, or the British agent on its behalf, should hasten to retract this state- ment, and admit the justice of our claim. In the argument of Lord Palmerston, which has been so much relied upon, he says: "If a ship containing animals were driven by stress of weather into a ioreign port, it would be unjust to deprive the owner of his property by the operation of any particular law in force in that port." This is true, and because it is unjust the law of nations inter- GOMYBNTION WITH OBEAT BRITAIN. 193 poses its authority, and takes the individual and his property under its protection. A different doctrine is, however, held hy his lordship in regard to a vessel so driven into a foreign port, having slaves on board. It is alleged that "there are then three partiq^ to the transaction — the owner, the local authority, and the alleged slave;" and it is said that ''the latter has an e the individual member of society. He sur- renders to the state the righl^to redress his wrongs and protect him from injury ; but when he is attacked on the highway and his life put in imminent danger, his original rights revert to him, and he may lawfully put the assassin to death. If this same doctrine be applied to the division of portions of the high seas among nations, it will exempt the "Enterprize " from molestation in British waters. The ocean is the common property of all nations, and their vessels have the equal right to navigate it. But, by consent, nations have appropriated the bavs and harbors and exercise a control over the distance of a marine league from the shore. When a vessel in distress comes into these waters where the nation ordinarily exercises jurisdiction, the nation's authority does not attach to the necessitous vessel. She has a right to enter the port, and may do so even in opposition to the authorities of the place. This doctrine does not rest alone on general reasoning, but it is fully supported by Vattel. In remarking upon the duty of a nation to allow vessels the use of their waters, even when they are not in distress, and when it may be done without damage or danger^ he admits, that in that case it may be refused, and makes the nation claiming the waters the judge in each particular case. But he says "it is otherwise in cases of necessity, as for instance, when a vessel is obliged to enter a road which belongs to you in order to shelter herself from a tem- pest.*' "In this case the right of entering wherever we can, provided we cause no damage, or that we repay any damage done, is, as we shall show more at large, a remnant of the primitive freedom of ivhich no man can he supposed to have divested himself, and the vessel may laiofully enter in spite of you, if you unjustly refuse Iter permission." If the vessel can enter under these circumstances, it is the law of nations which enables her to do it, and exempts her from the local law, and secures her in the enjoyment of the laws of the country to which she belongs, till the distress be relieved, and she is enabled to depart with her cargo. The argument of Lord Pahnerston continues thus : " If, indeed, a municipal law be made, which violates the law of nations, a question of another kind may arise, but the municipal law which forbids CONVENTION WITH GREAT BRITAIN. 195 sighbor's t an end, . A like He 8ur- )tect him is life put I he may- applied to ill exempt le ocean is the equal )riated the ' a marine into these le nation's a right to bhorities of t it is fully on to allow istress, aiul ts, that in the waters lerwise in to enter a oni a tem- n, provided e, is, as we nn of tvhkh vessel may nission." the law r some pur- poses considered as real property, but I apprehend that, where the con- trary is not shown, the general character and description of them is that they are personal property, and I see no reason in the present case for saying that they are not within the general rule, and, consequently, that they are not to be considered as 'goods or merchandize,' They are liable to be transferred by purchase and sale; and, although the owner a& CONVENTION WITH GREAT BRITAIN. 201 may choose to employ them on his own works instead of transferring them for a valuahle consideration, they are not, I apprehend, the less ' goods or merchandise ' on that account." Now suppose there was a law prohibiting the introduction of horses into England, and a vessel containing a cargo of these animals should be compelled to seek shel- ter in an English port, the British minister says this property would be returned to the owner because the animal may be made property. But we have seen by the case of Demerara and its dependencies, that by the English law slaves are considered as " goods or merchandise," and the right of property is as complete in a slave as it is in the horse. It seems to me, therefore, that upon the British doctrine they cannot refuse to restore our slaves on the ground that they are not property. . ■> ( ■i ji^t m m ,1:; M tm ' ^^T-*!!^"' 202 ADJUSTMENT OF CLAIMS UNDBR THE Upham, United States Commissioner : The Enterprize sailed from Alexandria, in the District of Columbia, on ilie 22d of January, 1835, for Charleston, South Carolina. She had on board a cargo of merchandise and seventy-three slaves, with their owners. She was driven from her course^ and, after being at sea three weeks, was comi)elled, through stress of weather and her leaky condition, to put in to Port Hamilton, in the island of Bermuda, until she could refit, and proceed on her voyage. While there, the slaves on board were seized and liberated by the authorities of the island. Claim for compensation was made on the British government for the value of these slaves, and various communications have passed between the two governments on the subject. In March, 1840, resolutions were submitted to the United States Senate relative to this claim, by Mr. Calhoun, which were adopted by that body, and which briefly set forth the principles on which the claim is based. • ' ' . These principles ^e: "That a vessel on the high seas, in time of peace, engaged in a lawful voyage, is, according to the law of nations, under the exclusive jurisdiction of the State to which she belongs ; and that, if such vessel is forced, by stress of weather or other un- avoidable circumstance, into the port of a friendly power, her country, in such case, loses none of the rights aj)pertaining to her on the high seas, either over the vessel or the personal relations of those on board." It Avas contended that the Enterprize came within these principles, and that the seizure and liberation of the negroes on board of her, by the authorities of Bermuda, was a violation of these principles and of the law of nations. On the other hand, it was contended by the British government that slavery had been abolished in the islands of Bermuda by the statute of 3 d- 4 JFm. IV, ch. 73, passed August 28, 1833; and that the Enterprize, being locally within the jurisdiction of that colony, the slaves on board of her were rightfully liberated by virtue of such law. . ' This statement of facts raises the question as to tlie proper juris- diction of tlie laws of either country over the Enterprize, under tlie circumstances in wliich she was forced into the harbor of Bermuda , CONVENTION WITH GREAT BRITAIN. 208 The same question had previously arisen in the cases of the Comet and Encomium. These vessels had been thrown, by stress of weather, on the Bahama Islands, with slaves on board, which were liberated by the local authorities. A claim of compensation was made for these slaves, which was allowed and paid. It is conceded in the correspondence with the British government, that the only difference between tlio cases referred to and the present is, that the act 3 (fc 4 Wm. IV, cJi. tS, abolishing slavery throughout the British dominions, had not been passed at tlio time the slaves of the Comet and Encomium were liberated, but was in force when the claim under the Enterprize arose. Various other claims for compen- sation, under like circumstances with this case, have occurred ; and they are constantly liable to occu/, from the nearness of the British islands, es'pecially the Bahamas, to the United States, and from the vast number of vessels constantly passing from one section of the Union to another between these islands and the mainland, engaged in the American coasting trade. Mr. Webster, in his letter to Lord Ashburton of August, 1842, urged the adjustment of this question by the British government ; and thus describes the Bahama Islands and the trade passing along their borders : "The Bahama Islands," he says, "approach the coast of Florida within a few leagues, and, with the coast, form a long and narrow channel, filled with innumerable small islands and banks of sand. On this account, and from the violence of the winds, and the variable nature of the currents, the navigation is difficult and dangerous. Accidents are therefore frequent, and necessity often compels vessels of the United States, in attempting to double Cape Florida, to seek shelter among these islands." "Along this passage," he says (which is not less than two hundred miles in length, and on an average not more than fifty miles wide,) "the Atlantic States hold intercourse with the States situated on the Gulf of Mexico and the Mississippi river; and through this channel the product of regions, vast in extent and boundless in fertility, find their main outlets to the markets of the world." During the few years since Mr. Webster's letter was written, the population of the United States has increased fifty percent., with a i I Si 1 i:s .; I ■ } Uh t ■A f m i m m\ k i 204 ADJUSTMENT OF CLAIMS UNDER THE corresponding increase in the business of the section of country to which he refers. The question before us, then, is one of great practical importance, and should be permanently settled, so as to avoid all grounds of col- lision between the two governments. Our province is to settle this case merely. It can be done, liowever, only by applying to it those broad and acknowledged principles of international law Avhich furnish a general rule of conduct between nations. I shall endeavour to ascertain what this law is. Before proceeding, however, to give my views fully on this subject, I shall advert briefly to the various points taken in the argument addressed to us by the learned consul for the British government. * ' • These points are : . ^ * 1. " That laws have no force, in themselves, beyond the'territory of the country by which they are made." My reply is, that this is usually the case ; but it is subject to the important addition that the laws of a country are uniformly in force, beyond the limits of its territory, over its vessels on the high seas, and continue in forjce in various respects within foreign ports, as we shall hereafter show. 2. It is contended 'Hhat, by the comity of nations, the laws of one country are, in some cases, allowed by another to have operation within its territory; but, when it is so permitted, the foreign law has its authortiy in the other country, from the sanction given to it there, and not from its origin^,! institution." 3. ''That every nation is the sole judge of the exteni: and the occasions on which it will permit such operation, and is not bound to give such permission where the foreign law is contrary to its interests or its moral sentiments." As to these points, I concede that there are many laws of a foreign country, in reference to its own citizens or their obligations, that another nation may enforce or not, where the citizens of such a country voluntarily come within its borders, in order to place themselves under its jurisdiction. But there are cases where persons are forced by the disasters of the sea upon a foreign coast, where, as I contend, a nation has fundamental and essential rights, within the ordinary local limits of another country, of which it cannot be deprived, and CONVENTION WITH GREAT BRITAIN. 205 that are operative and binding by a sanction that is wholly above and beyond the mere assent of any such state or community. ' ' Such rights are defined by jurists as the absolute international rights of states. I might also add, it is not now a question whether the doctrines of international law shall prevail either in England or America. "International law," says Blackstone, 'Mias been adopted in its full extent by the common law of England; and whenever any ques- tion arises which is properly the subject of its jurisdiction, it is held to be part of the law of the land.' — (Black. Go)i^. vol. 4, p. 67) International law is also recognized by the Constitution of the United States, and it is made the duty of Congress to punish offences against it. 4. It is contended "that England does not admit within its territory the application of any foreign laws establishing slavery, having abolished the status of slavery throughout its dominions." ' This position is open to the exception taken to the second and third propositions, and is subject to the same reply. 5. It is contended "that the condition of apprenticeship, as per- mitted to remain in the West India Islands by the act of 3 rf* 4 Wm. IV, ck. 73, is no exception to the abolition of slavery throughout the British dominions ; because, it is said, the system is entirely different from slavery in point of fact, and because, however near a resemblance it may bear to it, it could aftbrd no justification for an English court to hold that anotber sort of slavery was valid." Our reply to this is, that slavery docs not necessarily depend on the length of time the bondage exists, but on its character. The apprenticeship system continued, as to a portion of those to whom it was applicable, for twenty-one years ; and few persons can calculate on a lease of life for a longer time. Apprentices also were liable to be bought and sold, or attached for debt. The system therefore had all the worst characteristics of slavery. Further, the net abolishing slavery acknowledged the legality and validity of slavery as an institution, as it rendered compensation for the liberation of slaves according to their resjjective valuations, and also gave to the owners of slaves the benefit of a term of intermediate service. If it was not considered right to lib(u-ate British slaves except i i ?' H' i:[ ! I i I* I I ♦ 1* 206 ADJUSTMENT OF CLAIMS UNDER THE f on these conditions, how can it be right to compel the liberation of American slaves, casually thrown within the country, when no such compensation has been made, or term of service secured to their owners? This forced liberation of the slaves of another government, without compensation, is placed on the ground of the universal "abolition of slavery thi'oughout the British dominions." Such abolition, however, was not effected by this act, as the 64th section provides, "that nothing in the act contained doth or shall extend to any of the territories in tlie possession of the East India Company, or to the island of Ceylon, or to the island of St. Helena. ' ' It was merely enjoined on the East India Company, by Parliament at the same sessi*. a, "that they should forthwith take into consideration the means of mitigating slavery in their possessions, and of extinguishing it as soon as it should be practicable and safe," and slavery was not abolished in those provinces for some years subsequent to that period. It is also said "that the provincial government of Bermudas, aftw the passage of the general act abolishing slavery, abolished the appren- ticeship system prior to the liberation of the slaves on board the Enter- prize;" but such abolition was not made till, under the general law, they had received compensation for their slaves. C. "The principle on wliich the right of every man to personal liberty within British territory is attached is, that some law must be appealed to to justify the restraint of liberty ; and that neither the apprentice law nor any other law can be appealed to to justify the restraint of these negroes." To this we reply that the law of the country from which the vessel comes, as sustained and enforced by the law of nations, can as well be appealed to on this subject as on any other. It is expressly ad- mitted in the argument, that the law of nations may be ait[>ealed to, as exempting property, other than slaves, in cases of 8hij)wreck and disaster, and exempting vessels of war from ordinary municipal juris- diction ; and this is done by giving to the law of nations, in such case, the force and effect of municipal law, which is all tliat is asked to bo done in this case. 7. It is contended "that slavery is not a relation which the British government, by the comity of nations, is bound to respect." But such is not the doctrine of the British courts. They hold them- CONVENTION WITH GREAT BRITAIN. 207 selves bound, by the comity of nations, to respect both slavery and the slave trade; and they uphold and sustain it, in their decisions, where the rights of other nations are concerned. In 3 Barn. <€• Aid. 353, Maddrazzo v. Willes, Chief Justice Abbott says, "it is impossible to say that the slave trade is contrary to the law of nations;" and Lord Stowell says, in Le Louts, 2 Dodsons Admiralty Reports, 210, "that the slave trade is not piracy or crime by the law of nations, and is therefore not a criminal traffic by such law; and every nation, independent of treaty relations, retains a legal right to carry it on." Other grounds and arguments have been presented by counsel, but they are substantially included in those already named. These points have been accompanied by numerous citations of authorities. These citations, however, consist of decisions applicable to English citizens, or to persons voluntarily subjecting themselves to English jurisdiction, and therefore are not applicable to the case under consideration. In- ' deed, the argument admits the distinction we take, and concedes that vessels, driven into harbor by distress or disaster, are exempted from the ordinary jurisdiction of municipal law. It denies, however, that slaves on board such vessels are included in such exemption, on account of the passage of tlie act of 3 \i ■,!i I 1!: i i f Hi '4 ? ' * 1 210 ADJUSTMENT OF CLAIMS UNDER THE I', carry a flag, and to have on board ship's papers, indicating to what nation it belongs, whence it sailed, and whither it is bound, under the penalty of being treated as a pirate." — (1 Phill. Internat. Law, 216.) A vessel, wherever she is borne on the high seas, is bound therefore to hjive a national character, and is part and ]>arcel of a recognized government. It is contended — II. That a vessel compelled by stress of weather, or other unavoi- dable necessity, has a right to seek shelter in any harbor, as incident to her right to navigate the ocean, until the danger is past, and she can proceed again in safety . This position I propose to sustain on three grounds : By authority ; by the concession of the British government in similar cases ; and by its evident necessity, as parcel of the free right to navigate the ocean, aiid therefore a necessary incident of such right. 1. The effect of stress of weather in exempting vess ^'is from liabilities to local law, when they are driven by it within th«.i ordinary jurisdic- tion of another country, is well settled by authority In various classes of cases, viz ; in reference to the blockade of harbors and coasts ; of prohibited intercourse of vessels between certain jjorts that are subject to quarantine regulations ; intcl-course between certain countries, or sections of countries, which is interdicted from motives of mercantile policy ; and in cases of liability to general c istoms duties. — (Authorities on these points will be found in The Frederick Molke, 1 Eoh. Hep. 87 ; The Columbia, do. 156 ; The Juffrotv Maria Schroeder, 3 Hob. 153 ; The Hofnung, 6 do. 116 ; The Mary, 1 Gall. 206 ; Prince v. U. S.,2 Gall. 204 ; Peisch v. Ware, 4 Cranch, 347 ; Lord liaymond, 388, 501; Reeves's Law of Shipping, 203 ; The Francis and Eliza, 8 Wheaton, 398 ; Sea Laics, Arts. 29, 30 (& 31 ; and The Gertrude, 3 Story's Rep. 68.) In the last named case, the learned judge remarks, "that it can only be a people who have made l)Ut little i)rogress in civilization, that would not permit foreign vessels to seek safety in tlieir i)orts, wliou driven there by stress of weatlier, excejjt under the charge of paying impost duties on tlieir cargoes, or on penalty of confiscation, where the cargo consisted of i)rolnbitcd goods. ' ' (See also Kent's Commentaries 145, and authorities there cited.) The authority of writers on international law is also directly in point. Vattel holds to the free right of all nations to the use of the C( til er g to what under the mo, 216.) , therefore •ecognized er II n avoi- ds incident id she can authority ; !8 ; and by the ocean, I liabilities y jurisdic- 0U8 classes coasts ; of are subject untries, or Imercantile uthorities Hep. 87 ; \liob, 153 ; . U.S., 2 388, 501; Wheafo'n , 3 Slori/'s Ihat it can Ition, that [rts, wlion )f paying )n, where \menfaries CONVENTION WITH GREAT BMITi 211 irectly in ise of the ocean, with the exception that a portion of the «^n, imn liately contiguous to the land, is subject to each government ior the puipoHi essential to its protection. Even here, however, ho says : Other iia tions have a right of passage through such ])ortions of the sea when not liable to suspidon, and in cases of necessity the entire right ot the government ceases ; as, for instance, where a vessel is obliged to enter a road, in order to shelter herself from a tempest. In such case she may enter wherever she can, provided she cause no damage or repair any damage done. This is a remnant of his primitive freedom, of which no man can be supposed to have divested himself; and the vessel may lawfully enter, in spite of such foreign government, if she IS unjustly refused admission." — {Vattel, Book 1, ch. 23, sec. 288.) Again, he says, in another section, "a vessel driven by stress of weather, has a right to enter, even by force, into a foreign port." — {Vattel, Book 2, ch. 9, sec. 123 ; Pufendorf, Book 3, ch. 3, sen. 8.) Vattel thus considers this an absolute right, that may be asserted at any hazard ; and not a right resting in comity, or dependent on license, tliat may be modified or revoked. In the resort to force for the preser- vation of such rights, he is sustained by Phillimore and other modern writers on international law, who hold that the violation of rights, sfricti Juris, or the absolute rights of nations, "may be redressed by forcible means. ' ' — (PhiU. International Laio, sec. 143.) Grotius, Puffen- (lorf, and other writers lay down as a general principle the rule which is applicable to this case : " That, in extreme necessity, the primitive right of using things revives, as if they had remained in common ; and that such necessity in all laws is excepted." — (Grotius, Book 2, ch. 2, sec. 6 ; Pufendorf, Book 2, ch. 6, sees. 5 and 6; Vattel, Book, 2, ch. 9, sees. 119 and 120; Bowyer's Commentaries on Public Law, p. 357.) 2. The principles of law laid down by these various writers are also sustained by admissions of the British government, and by the allow- ance and adjustment of claims of precisely the same character as the one before us. In the correspondence between the two governments in reference to this claim, it is admitted by Lord Palmerstou, "that where a ship, containing irrational animals or things, is driven by stress of weather into a foreign port, it would be highly unjust that the owner should be stripped of what belongs to him, through the application of the municipal law of the State to which ho had not voluntarily submitted himself." !j ' a n m m m n m 212 ADJUSTMENT OF CLAIMS UNDER THK This 18 an tulmission of tho luRh injuHtice of noi/in}? nil pioperty, except inopeity in Hlnves ; but the British government have in other cases conceded tho application of tho same principle to slaves. This was done in tho case of the Cotnet, to which T have heforo alluded, which was similar, m all essential particulars to this case. Tho Comet sailed from the District of (Jolumbia in 1830, for New Orleans, having a number (»f slaves on board ; she was stranded on one of the false keys of the Bahamas, and the crew and persons on board were taken by the wreckers into the port of Nassau, where tlip slaves were seized by tho authorities of the island and liberated. The case of the Kncomiiuu is of the same description. »Sho sailed from Charleston in 1834, for New Orleans, with slaves on board; was stranded in the same place, and tho crew and persons on l)oard were taken into the same port, where the slaves wore seized and libe- rated by tho authorities. Claim was presented for redress for these injuries, and after full dis- cussion of tho subject, compensation was made by the British govern- ment for tho slaves thus liberated ; and this compensation was rendered solely on tho principle now contended for, that where a vessel is forced by stress of weather into a foreign port, she carries with her her rights, existing on the high seas, as to the vessel, property, and personal rela- tions of those on board, as sustained by the laws of her own country. That such was the ground on which these claims were allowed and paid is manifest, because they were slaves of a foreign country, brought within the limits of the British government, but not held there in bondage by any British law. So far was this from being the case, that the statute of 5 Geo. IV, d>. 1.13, then in force, expressly prohibited bringing slaves from other countries into places within British jurisdiction, or retaining them there, under heavy jtenaltios : and all persons offending against this law were declared to be felons, and were liable to be transported be- yond sea, or to be confined and kept at hard labor for a term of not less than three, nor more than five years. There was, then, no British law in existence by which these slaves could be holden ; and the claim to compensation rested solely on the laws of the United States, which were holden to be rightfully opera- tive, and in force against tho persons claimed as slaves, under the pircumstances in which the vessel was driven into port. \ % til t(| T ail till ul CONVENTION WITU ORKAT BRITAIN. 213 roperty, in other before Ill's CftNC. for New indod oil rsons oil rhero tlio ed. ho sailed 1 board ; on hoard anil libe- r full dis- h govern - 5 rendered 1 is forced ler rights, onul rela- i country, wed and , brought there in n. IV, v/>. loni other ing them linst this liorted be- rni of not [.se slaves ly on the lly opera- Inder the This result it is impossible to avoid, and the principle asserted is fully sustained by those cases. I am aware that the ilaim of the En- ti'rprizc, which was pending at the same time, was disallowed, on the ground of a subsetjiient change In the local law in reference to slavery. The slaves of the (5omet and Kncomiiini, however, were not holden by any of the local laws of the island, but wore there in violation of them. The repeal of such local law, therefore, can in no manner ad'ect tiio principle of the decision. ;{. A further reason assigned for the point now under consideration is its evident necessity as a part of the free right of each nation to navigate the ocean, and as a necessary incident of such right. Writers on public law, we have seen, assert a right to enter a for- eign port, when driven there by stress of weather, on the ground of necessity. This necessity arises from jierils on the deep, to which all navigation on the ocean is subject ; and if such i)erils from this cau.se •X^VQ the right of refuge, it becomes necessarily what I claim for it — an incidental right to the navigation of the ocean. It is a necessity essential to the enjoyment of a clear and undeniable 1 ight ; and whatever is essential to the enjoyment of a right, or is a necessary means of its use, is, ex vi termini, a necessary incident of such right. This connexion I have not seen adverted to ; and it is not laid down ))y the writers cited, as it was not essential to their purpose to follow out the origin, or causes from which the necessity arose. It is clearly embraced, however, in their propositions, and is important in this case, as it determines the true character of the rights arising from this necessity in a manner that admits of no question or controversy. The claim is thus an incident to an absolute and essential right of nations^ and is not a claim to the mere favor of any people, which tliey may give or deny at pleasure, out of any supposed exclusive jurisdiction of their own. All incidental rights are based on necessities arising from the prior and original right. A right to the end uniformly carries with it a right to the means requisite to attain that end, or, as is stated by Mr. Wheaton, " draws after it the incidental right of using all the means Avhich are necessary to the secure enjoyment of the thing itself." — (Wheat., Part 2, ch. 4, sees. 13 d 18.) Further, incidental rights, of a similar character and attended with precisely the same result, as to entry within the territorial jurisdiction 214 ADJUSTMENT OP CLAIMS UNDER THE of another government have heen asserted in connexion w'th the right to navigate the ocean, and are holden as undoubted law. Thus the right to navigate the ocean is holden to give the right, as incidental to it, to persons inhabiting the upper sections of navigable rivers to pass by such rivers through the territory of other governments in order to reach the ocean, and thus participate in the commerce of the world. Great Britain claimed and exercised this right with all its incidents against Spain in the navigation of the Mississippi; and when a Spanish governor undertook at one time to forbid it, and cut loose vessels fastened to the shores, it is asserted by Mr. Wheaton that a British vessel moored itself opposite New Orleans, and set out guards, with orders to fire on persons who disturbed her moorings. The gov- ernor acquiesced in the right claimed, and it was afterwards exercised without interruption. — {Wheaton, Part 2, ch. 4, sec. 18; Grotius, Bool: 2, ch. 2, sees. 12 er8onal disqualifications, not arising from the law of nations, but from the principles of the customary or positive law of a foreign country, are not regarded in other countries," he emphatically says : "So the state of slavery will be recognized in any country whose institutions and policy prohibit slavery." In the case also of Polydor V. Prince, Mr. Judge Ware held that a slave might maintain an action for a tort done him on the high seas, where all nations can and do claim an exclusive jurisdiction over their own vessels, in a vessel be- longing to a slave State, on the arrival of that vessel, under any cir- cumstances, within the jurisdiction of the non-slaveholding State, observing that " it was supposed at the argument that the capacity of the libellant to maintain this action in the courts of the United States may stand on grounds somewhat different from what it would in the States courts ; that slavery existing in some of the individual Sta tea CONVENTION WITH GREAT BRITAIN. 225 lie laws i; opora- le other inction, his sub- to form what it ; and of er it can he duty > compel it of the T, citing of Laws, ed upon, territory itiments. > yield up f another own in- a moral ippiness, after ob- le law of law of a latically ry whose Polydor an action and do essel be- any cir- ig State, pacity of ed States Id in the 1 States and not being prohibited by the Constitution and laws of the United States, the national courts might be bound by the principles of the ju8 (jentium to recognize the incapacities of slaves having a foreign domicil, even where it would not be done by the slave courts, and that the national tribunals are under the same obligation in this respect, whether sitting in a State where slavery is admitted or where it is prohibited. If this were conceded — and in the view which I take of the case I do not think it necessary to give an opinion on the question — the answer is, that a court sitting in Louisiana is no more bound than one sitting in Maine to recognize, as to any acts or rights acquired within the exclusive jurisdiction of the United States, the artificial incapacities of persons resulting from a foreign law. The question in both cases would be, whether the party could, by the laws of the United States, have a standing in court. The court certainly is not bound to enforce against him a personal incapacity derived from the law of his domicil, because that lato can have no force in this coun- try any further than our law, on the principle of comity, chooses to adopt it ; and every nation will judge for itself how far it is consistent with its own interest and policy to extend its comity in this respect. * * If the incapacity alleged were slavery^ it is not for me to say what would be the judgment of a court sitting within a jurisdiction where slavery is allowed ; but sitting as this court does in a place where slavery by the local law is prohibited, I do not feel myself called upon to allow that disqualification when it is alleged by a wrongdoer, as attaching to the libellant by the laws of a foreign power, for the pur- pose of withdrawing himself from responsibility for his own wrong. ' ' — See also Prigg v. the Commonwealth of Pennsylvania, 16 Peters 539. The language of Chanceller Kent* is equally emphatic on this sub- ject ; he says " there is no doubt of the truth of the general proposi- tion, that the laws of a country have no binding force beyond its territorial limits ; and their authority is admitted in other States, not ex proprio vigore, but ex comitate ; or, in the language of Huberus, 'quatenus sine praejudicio indulgentium fieri potest.' Every indepen- dent State will judge of itself how far the comitas inter communitates is to be permitted to interfere with its domestic interests and policy." The general and most beneficial rule of international law contributing to the safety and convenience of mankind is : ^'Statuta suo dauduntur * 2 Kent's Comm., p. 457, 4th edit. 16 ii 'i! a iii'i I V m 226 ADJUSTMENT OF CLAIMS UNDER THE territorio, nee ulti'a territonum disponunt." Neither is comity to be exercised in doubtful cases ; and whenever a doubt exists, the court which decides will prefer the law of its own country to that of the stranger. Sard (Ma Creditora) 17 ; Martin, 596. The question of what is or what is not within the comity of nations is for eac'i particular nation to decide; and whether it will be bound by it, or waive in favor of another nation its private laws, is equally a matter for the consid- eration of each individual country. Now, in tlio case of slavery, Great Britain has declared that under no circumstances will she tol- erate, acknowledge, or admit slavery within her dominions. This, as Mr. Webster admits, is now "the well known and clear promulga- tion of the will of the sovereign power, and the well known rule of English law." The question then resolves itself into this : In what cases and to what extent does the law of nations require that the local law shall admit the application of the rules of the foreign law instead of its own ? It is conceded that the foreign law must be admitted to regu- late the rights of property (properly so called) concerning chattels on board the vessel, and for some other purposes ; but the question we have now to determine is, whether the law of nations requires that the local law, which ignores and forbids slavery, shall admit within its jurisdiction the foreign, which maintains slavery. Now, the two fallacies which appear to me to pervade the whole of the argument in support of the claim, and deprive it of its whole force, are these : first, that slaves are property in the ordinary sense of the word ; and secondly, that international law requires that the right of the master to the person of his slave, derived from local law, shall be recognized everywhere. It is true that by the municipal law of particular countries slaves may be treated as, and may even be declared to be, property, and this has, in past times, been the case in some portions of the English do- minions ; but there is an essential difference between the rights of owners in their slave and ordinary property. This difference is clearly laid down by an eminent American judge in the case of the Comnion- toealth vs. Aves, 18 ; Pickering's lieports, 216. Chief Justice Shaw there says, " that it is not speaking with strict accuracy to say that a property can be acquired in human beings by local laws. Each State may, for its own convenience, declare that slaves shall be deemed pro- CONVENTION WITH GREAT BRITAIN. 227 perty, and that the relations and laws uf personal chattels shall be deemed to apply to them ; but it would be a perversion of terms to say that such local laws do in fad make them personal property generally; they can only determine that the same rules of law shall apply to them as are applicable to i)roperty, and this effect will follow only as far as such laws p'oprio vigore can operate. ' ' Mr. Webster, however, does not hesitate to place the relation of slavery on the same footing with that of marriage and parental au- thority ; but the answer to this attempted comparison consists in this, that all nations and societies acknowledge marriage and parental au- thority. They ore, indeed, the very foundation of society ; they may vory in form, but the essence remains the same ; they cannot so much be said to be in conformity with the law of nature as to be themselves natural laws. This is not the case with slavery, which is contrary to the law of nature, and, so far from being acknowledged by all nations^ is now repudiated by almost all. Property in things, however, being recognized in all countries, it follows that in case of shipwreck " the local law would not operate to make the goods of one man to become the fijoods of another." But to make this dictum an authority for the principle contended for, it must first bo established that there is no distinction between property in man and property in beasts or things. In the case of Jones vs. Yanzandt, (2 McLean, 596,) it was held that no action could be maintained at common law for assisting a slave to escape, or harboring him after his escape into a free State, and that damages were only recoverable in such a case by virtue of the Consti- tution of the United States. In giving judgment in that case, Mr. Justice McLean observed: ''The traffic in slaves does not come under the constitutional power of Congress to regulate commerce among the several States. In this vieio the Constitution does not consider slaves as merchandise. This was held in the case of Grooves and Slaughter, (IS Peters.) The Constitution nowhere speaks of slaves as property. * * * The Constitution treats of slaves as persons." " The view of Mr. Madison, who thought it wrong to admit in the Constitution the idea that there could be property in man, seems to have been car- ried out in this most important instrument. Whether slaves are referred to in it as the basis of representation, as migrating, or being imported, or as fugitives from labor, they are spoken of as persons." "What have we to do with slavery in the abstract? It is admitted 228 ADJUSTMENT OF CLAIMS UNDER THE by almost all who have examined into the subject to be founded in wrong, in oppression, in power against right." > . . ;■ There is yet another case which affords a further striking illustration of the fact that American law recognizes an essential difference between property in slaves and property in things, so as to affect the rights of the owner independently of his will. The second section of the fourth article of the Constitution protects every slave owr er from loss of his slaves by means of their flying into a free State ; it gives him a right to follow the slave, and seize him wherever he may find him. Yet, in the case of The Commonwealth vs. HoUoway , (2 Sergt. and Rawle, 304,) it was held that where a female slave flying into Pennsylvania, and there giving birth to a child, though she herself might be reclaimed by her owner, her child could not but remain free by virtue of the law of the State, which declared that " no man or woman of any nation shall at any time hereafter be deemed, adjudged, or holden within the territories of this commonwealth, as slaves or servants for life, but as free men and women." Now it is obvious that if the property in the female slave were regarded in the same light as property in an animal, the ordinary rule of law, ^'partm sequitur ventrem," referred to by the learned agent of the British government, would have been applicable. In that case, as in the present, the slave owner might have said, as he now says: " It was not by my consent that that which by the laws of my country I am entitled to claim as my property has been brought within the operation of your laws. My slave and her increase are mine ; am I to be deprived of that increase because it has been by misadventure cast away upon your soil?" By the American law, as in the case before me, the English law answers : "It may be that in your own State you would have had the right you claim ; but we do not acknowledge that you have a right of property in this human being as you could have in a horse or a dog ; if you had, your consent alone would be considered in the matter ; but as it is, here is an intelligent being who is entitled to be dealt with by our law, which we sit here to administer, anl not yours, as a man, and by that law it is declared that no man shall be a slave." In the case also of Prigg vs. The Commonwealth of Pennsylvania, (16 Peters, 608,) it was again held that the offspring of a fugitive slave could not be reclaimed by the owner. On the authority, then, of these cases, it may be considered as settled that by the law of the United States the presence or absence of CONVENTION WITH GREAT BRITAIN. 229 inded in ustration I between rights of lie fourth )ss of his n a right Yet, in vie, 304,) mia, and eclaimed f the law ly nation ithin the fe, but as ty in the 1 animal, to by the pplieable. lid, as he B laws of brought 'ease are been by I law, as e that in ut we do Ein being nt alone telligent t here to declared vs. The lin held by the dered as mence of consent or voluntariness on the part of the owner has nothing whatever to do with the question of whether his slave, when tvithin the territory of a State, no matter how brought, which does not acknowledge slavery, shall be free or not. The answer that must be given by the local tribunals, when called upon, must depend on the positive law of the place.* In the United States, the Constitution has provided an answer in the fourth article ; but when the circumstances are such that the letter of that enactment or some other is not applicable, the American law declares, like the English law, that it does not recognize property in man, but regards them all alike, whether black or white, as entitled to be free. Mr. Justice Story thus distinctly explains the general principle of public law on this subject, and the modifications which have been in- troduced by the United States Constitution : "By the general law of nations no nation is hound to recognize the state of slavery, as to foreign slaves found within its territorial dominions, when it is in opposition to its own policy and institutions, in favor of the subjects of other nations where slavery is recognized. If it does, it is a matter of comity, and not a matter of international right. The state of slavery is deemed to be a municipal regulation, founded upon and limited to the range of the territorial laws. This was fully recognized in Somersett's case. It is manifest, then, from this consideration of the law, that if the Con- stitution had not contained this clause, every non-slaveholding State in the Union would have been at liberty to have dedared free all slaves coming within its limits, and to have given them entire immunity and protection against the claims of their masters." And again he says: " The duty to deliver up fugitive slaves, in whatever State of the Union they may be found, and of course the corresponding power in Congress to use the appropriate means to enforce the duty, derive their sole validity and obligation exclusively from the Constitution of the United States, and are there for the first time recognized and estab- lished in that peculiar character." — (See also id. ch. iv, sec. 96, p. 165-6 of 3d edit.) That foreign nations, then, are not bound by any rule of international law to recognize slaves as property, and award to their owners the immunity which, by the comity of nations, is usually granted in respect of ordinary chattels, is clear from the course of legislation * See judgment of Judge Ware, ante, p. 10. ■ I 230 ADJUSTMENT OF CLAIMS UNDER THE pursued by the United States ; for if they could be so bound, no law or action of the United States would have been necessary to compel one State denying the right and existence of property in a slave to deliver up a fugitive to another State admitting and maintaining the right ; and for this reason, that the law of nations; being as binding between State and State as between the United States and foreign countries, would have been sufficient for the purpose, and no special law would have been necessary. By what right, then, or by force of what argument, can the United States insist that Great Britain is to be bound by the law of nations to do that which, by its own legisla- tion, it has proved beyond all question the separate States were not and could not be bound to do? It is evident, therefore, from a view of the American authorities alone, that the institution of slavery depends solely upon the laws of each indi- vidual State in which it is allowed, and that from its very nature it is only coextensive with the territorial limits of such laws. An American writer thus describes it: " It is an institution," says he, " in which the slave has no voice. It operates in invitum. The slave is no party, either practically or theoretically, to the law under which he lives in servitude. It is, moreover, an exceptional law ; one which depends solely for its observance on the continuance of the power who made it. The moment that potver ceases, the objects of it are free to exercise their natural rights, tohich revive to them, because they were hdd only in sub- jection or abeyance by superior force, but which could not be disturbed, alienated, or forfeited, except for some crime, springing as they do from the immutable and eternal principles of nature and justice." It appears to me then to be clearly established by all the authori- ties on the subject, that nations or states are not bound to recognize the relation of master and slave which may be enacted by foreign law. In the case of Forbes v. Cochrane (2 B. and C. 448) Mr. Justice Holroyd says : " A man cannot found his claim to slaves upon any general right, because by the English law such right cannot be con- sidered as warranted by the general law of nations ; and if he can claim at all, it must be by virtue of some right which he had acquired by the law of the country where he was domiciled ; that when auch rights are recognized by law, they must be considered as founded not upon the law of nature, but upon the particular law of that country, and must be coextensive, and only and strictly coextensive, with the CONVENTION WITH GREAT BRITAIN. 231 territories of that State ; but when the party gets out of the territory where it prevails, no matter under what circumstances, and under the protection of another potoer, without any wrongful act done by the party giving the protection, the right of the master, which is founded on the municipal law of the place only, does not continue. ' ' The fallacy contained in the argument in opposition to this view of the law consists in ignoring the slave as a man, and in supposing him to be possessed of no rights, as against the individual endeavoring to keep him in slavery, which a foreign nation is justified in taking into consideration. As a man, the slave is as much entitled to appeal to the protection of our laws as his owner, and his claim must be adjudicated upon in conformity with the same principles. In the country whence he came, his voice could not be heard in the local courts, to assert the rights which he derived from nature, as against the municipal laws of the place where he was domiciled. When he is driven, together with his so-called owner, to the shores of this country or its colonies, those rights of his master which are founded on natural law, such as property, marriage, &c., «fec., are respected. Why then are we to be leaf to the appeal of the slave, when he also asks to have his rights, which are equally founded on natural law, respected ? We have to choose between the natural law, supported by our own law, and foreign municipal law in direct opposition to both. The choice is none of our seeking, it is cast upon us by chance. It would be to make international law a partial tyrant, rather than an equal arbitrator between nations — to hold that one country can be bound under any circumstances, without fault of its own, to re- ject the law of nature and its own law, in favor of a foreign local law in opposition to both. " The law of nations," says an American writer, with reference to this subject, " does not deal with the fictions and conventional rules which particular societies of men may have adopted as suitable to their own interests and government. It does not establish any geo- graphical lines, and declare that any object on one side of that line is one thing, and that when it is moved to the other side it loses or changes its nature and becomes another thing. This law of nature recognizes only manifest natural and universal truths, whether they are of a moral or a physical natv re, and from these truths it deduces il 232 ADJUSTMENT OF CLAIMS UNDER THE its rules. One of these moral truths is, that every man has a right to he protected in the enjoyment of his property, and, therefore, the duty of protecting property is enjoined on all nations. " One of these physical truths is, that all inanimate ohjects and ir- rational animals are capahle of becoming propeity whenever appro- priated. The quality is inherent in, and inseparable from them. They have no personality. They can have no rights while they exist ; it is impossible that this character should be taken from them. A nation may declare that a particular article shall not be property, or may claim it to be contraband, or may prohibit its importation. But these laws, so far as they attempt to change the intrinsic nature of the object, are mere fictions, which are obligatory on the nation that enacts them. " The law of nature and of nations is not affected by the local law with regard to these objects. Consequently, when the forbidden or contraband article is thrown by accident within the jurisdiction of the nation that has denounced it, the humanity and truth of the law of nature interpose with paramount authority to mitigate or suspend the harshness or fiction of the local law, and the property is protected for its owner, until, acting in good faith, he can remove it beyond the local jurisdiction. " Let us now apply this law to the case of the slave. Man has a twofold nature. He has a material, tangible body ; and, consequently, if any nation is so unjust as to declare any particular class of men within its territory to be property, this class, by means of the coercion which may be exercised over the bodies by individuals that impose it,, is obliged to submit to what is a mere fiction of the local law, and, unless palliated by dire necessity, a most wicked and injurious one. " This local rule, declaring a man to be property, is altogether un- true in fact and morals. Not all the legislation in the world can change the decrees of Providence, or reconcile the material nature of property with the spiritual nature of man. The law of nature and of nations, dealing solely in actual truths, dees not recognize this local fiction; and although it refrains from interference within the limits of the nation establishing it, yet it takes every opportunity beyond these limits of asserting or vindicating its own principles. '-■>■■ " It is one of these first principles^ that man has an immortal soul, and (I CONVENTION WITH GREAT BRITAIN. 233 and it will not recognize or protect any human institution that is at war, as slavery is, with this catholic and immutable truth. " When, therefore, a man, either by force or not (and it may be added, by accident) on the part of his owner, escapes beyond the limits of the local law that fastens slavery upon him, he falls under the be- nign protection of the law of nature, which steps in and sets bounds to the local fiction, and declares that it shall only be respected within the jurisdiction of the community that promulgated it. The law of nature did not make a man a slave, and therefoie that law will not keep him one." Lord Palmerstou, in eftect, states the principle thus announced when, with the concurrence of those eminent men who now fill the highest judicial seats in the country, viz : the present lord chancellor, the lord chief justice of England, and the judge of the admiralty court, he declares that a distinction exists between laws bearing upon the personal liberty of man, and laws bearing upon the property which man may claim in irrational animals or in inanimate things. " If a ship," says his lordship in a despatch upon this subject, " containing such animals or things, were driven by stress of weather into a foreign port, the owner of the cargo would not be justly de- prived of his property by the operation of any particular law which might be in existence in that port, because in such a case there would be but two parties interested in the transaction — the foreign owner and the local authority ; and it would be highly unjust that the former should be stripped of what belongs to him through the lorcible appli- cation of the municipal law of a State to which he had not voluntarily submitted himself. ** But in a case in which a ship so driven into a foreign port by stress of weather contains men over whose personal liberty another man claims to have an acquired right, there are three parties to the transaction — the owner of the cargo, the local authority, and the al- leged slave ; and the third party is no less entitled than the first to appeal to the local authority for such protection as the law of the land may afford him. But if men who have been held in slavery are brought into a country where the condition of slavery is unknown and forbidden, they are necessarily, and by the very nature of things, placed at once in the situation of aliens who have at all times from their birth been free. m li I ■'e before the passi. .. the act abolishing slavery. There was, therefore, no importation within the meaning of the act (5 Geo. IV, ch. 113) which declared it illegal to import slaves, and made it a felony to do so, and consequently there was no breach of the Engliiu law. Being then in an English port, the only question was whether there was any law which prevented their owners retaining possession of them. At that time there was not. Slavery was then in ftill force in the Bahamas, and of the same kind as that to which the American slaves were subject. The possession of the slaves was not therefore unlawful, nor was the relation between them and their masters liable to be dissolved by the mere accidental arrival of both in the colony. But at the time when the " Enterprize" was brought into the port of Hamilton, Great Britain had utterly and forever abol- ished the status of slavery throughout the British colonies and planta- tions abroad; (see act of 3 arid 4, Wm. IV, ch. IS, sec. 9.) And by an act of the colonial legislature, the apprenticeship system^ created by the act of William IV, was dispensed with. Slavery, therefore, in no form whatever, was known in the Bermudas at the time the "Enterprize" entered the port. It was impossible therefore that any judge called upon to administer the law within these islands could, for any purpose, or under any circumstances, recognize the relation of master and slave as subsisting within the reach of his authority. Under these circumstances, I am clearly of opinion that the claim of the owners of the slaves on board the " Enterprize" at the time she put into Port Hamilton, cannot be sustained, and that it ought, upon every principle of law, to be rejected. ii iii 1 ,11 ' \' i it 236 ADJUSTMENT OF CLAIMS UNDER THE Bates, Umpire : This claim is presented on behalf of the Charleston Marine Insur- ance Company of South Carolina, and of the Augusta Insurance Com- pany in Georgia, for the recc /ery of the value of seventy-two slaves, forcibly taken from the brig Enterprize, Elliot Smith, master, on the 20th of February, 1835, in the harbor of Hamilton, Bermuda. The following are the facts and circumstances cT the case : The American brig Enterprize, Smith, maste , sailed from Alexandria, in the Dis- trict of Columbia, in the United States, on the 22d January, 1835, bound for Charleston, South Carolina, after encountering head winds and gales, and finding their provisions and water running short, it was deemed best by the master to put into Hamilton, in the island of Bermuda, for supplies. She arrived there on the 11th of February, having taken in the supplies required, and having completed the re- pair of the sails, she was ready for sea on the 19th with the pilot on board. During the repairs, no one from the shore was allowed to communicate with the slaves. The vessel was kept at anchor in the harbor and was not brought to the wharf. Being thus ready for sea, Captain Smith proceeded, with his agent,[to the custom-house to clear his vessel outward. The collector stated that he had received a verbal order from the council to ' *ain the brig's papers until the governor's pleasure could be known. The comptroller, and a Mr. Tucker, then went to the other public offices, and on their return to the custom-house, the comptroller, after consulting for a few minutes with the collector, declared that he would not give up the papers that evening, but would report the vessel out the next morning, as early as the captain might choose to call for the papers. In consequence of this decision, the captain immediately noted his protest in the secretary's office against the collector and comptroller for the detention of his ship's papers, and informed the officer of the customs he should hold them responsible ; that he (the captain) feared the colored people of Hamilton would come on board his vessel at night and rescue the slaves, as they had threatened to do. The collector then replied there was no danger to be apprehended, that the colored people would not do anything without the advice of the whites, and they knew the laws too well to disturb Captain Smith. CONVENTION WITH GREAT BRITAIN. 287 At 20 minutes to 6 o clock, p. m., the chief justice sent a writ of habeas corpus on board, and afterwards, a file of black soldiers armed, ordering the captain to bring all the slaves before him, the Chief Jus- tice, which Captain Smith was obliged to do. On the slaves being informed bj the chief justice that they were free persons, seventy- two of them declared they would remain on shore, which they did, and only six of them returned on board to proceed on the voyage. This is believed to be a faithful sketch of the case, from which it appears, that the American brig Enterprise was bound on a voyage, from one port in the United States to another port of the same country, which was lawful according to the laws of her country and the law of nations. She entered the port of Hamilton in distress for provisions and water. No offence was committed against the municipal laws of Great Britain or her colonies, and there was no attempt to land or to establish slavery in Bermuda in violation of the laws. It was well known that slavery had been conditionally abolished in nearly all the British dominions about six months before, and that the owners of slaves had received compensation, and that six years apprenticeship was to precede the complete emancipation; during which time apprentices were to be bought and sold as property, and were to be liable to attachment for debt. No one can deny that slavery is contrary to the principles of justice and humanity, and can only be established in any country by law. At the time of the transaction on which this claim is iV'inded, slavery existed by law in several countries, and was not wholly abolished in the British dominions ; it could not then be contrary to the law of nations, and the Enterprize was as much entitled to protection as though her cargo consisted of any other description of property. The conduct of the authorities at Bermuda, was a violation of the laws of nations, and of those laws of hospitality which should prompt every nation to afford protection and succor to the vessels of a friendly neighbor that may enter their ports in distress. The owners of the slaves on board the Enterprize are therefore entitled to compensation ; and I award to the Augusta Insurance and Banking Company, or their legal representatives, the sum of sixteen thousand dollars, and to the Charleston Marine Insurance Company, or their legal representatives, the sum of thirty-three thousand dol- lars, on the fifteenth of January, 1855. m 288 ADJUSTMENT OF CLAIMS UNDER THE (f .'•,■ (>.-■'»• V u -^ ;v;'ji. rt '«?' o.";.«»f ■'•j* THE HERMOSA. f: •f ' y»" B T The Hermosa, witli thirty-eight slaves, bound from Richmond, Virginia, to New Orleani, was wrecked on the Spanish key, Abaco, and was relieved by wreckers, who took off the officers, crew, and persons on board, and took them to Nassau, in the Bahamas, to procure a vessel to continue the voyage. Held, that having entered the port of Nassau in distress, from shipwreck, she was entitled to protection for the purpose under which she entered. The several cases of the Enterprize, Hermosa, and Creole were sup- posed to involve substantially the same principles, and were embraced in one argument by counsel, and submitted together. The commissioners drew up their opinions in full in the Enterprize, and having disagreed in that case, referred that and the other cases to the umpire, without a further expression of their opinions. The particular facts in the case of the Hermosa arc fully set forth in the decision of the umpire, and need not be here stated. Thomas, agent and counsel for the United States. Hannen, agent and counsel for Great Britain. GONVBNTIOM WITH OREAT BRITAIN. 239 V Orleans, ok off the procure a u entitled 5re sup- ubraced jrprize, ases to orth in Bates, Umpire : The umpire appointed agreeably to the provisions of the convention entered into between Great Britain and the United States, on the 8th of February, 1853, for the adjustment of claims by a mixed commis- sion^ having been duly notified by the commissioners under the said convention, that they had been unable to agree upon the decision to be given with reference to the claim of H. N. Templeman against the gov- ernment of Great Britain ; and having carefully examined and con- sidered the papers and evidence produced on the hearing of the said claim ; and having conferred with the said commissioners thereon, hereby reports that the schooner "Hermosa," Chattin, master, bound from Richmond, in Virginia, to New Orleans, having thirty-eight slaves on board, belonging to H. N. Templeman, was wrecked on the 19th October, 1840, on the Spanish key, Abaco. Wreckers came alongside, and took off the captain and crew, and the thirty-eight slaves, and contrary to the wishes of the master of the Hermosa, who urged the captain of the wrecker to conduct the crew, passengers, and slaves to a port in the United States, they were taken to Nassau, New Providence where Captain Chattin carefully abstained from causing or permitting said slaves to be landed, or to be put in communication with any person on shore, while he proceeded to con- sult with the American consul, and to make arrangements for pro- curing a vessel to take the crew and passengers and the slaves to some port in the United States. While the vessel in which they were brought to Nassau was lying at a distance from the wharves, in the harbor, certain magistrates wearing uniform, who stated themselves to be officers of the British government, and acting under the orders of the civil and military authorities of the island, supported by soldiery wearing the British uniform, and carrying muskets and bayonets, took forcible possession of said vessels and the slaves were transported in boats from said vessel to the shore, and thence under guard of a file of soldiers, marched to the office of said magistrates, where, after some judicial proceedings, they were set free, against the urgent remonstrances of the master of the Hermosa and of the American consul. In this case there was no attempt to violate the municipal laws of the British colonies. All that the master of the Hermosa required was 240 ADJUSTMBNT OF CLAIMS UNDER THE that aid and assistance which was due from one friendly nation to the citizens or subjects of another friendly nation, engaged in a business lawful in their own country, and not contrary to the law of nations. Making allowance, therefore, for a reasonable salvage to the wreckers, had a proper conduct on the part of the authorities at Nassau been observed, I award to the Louisiana State Marine and Fire Insurance Company^ and the New Orleans Insurance Company, (to which insti- tutions this claim has been transferred by H. N. Templeman,) or their legal representatives, the sum of sixteen thousand dollars, on the fifteenth January, 1866, viz: eight thousand dollars to each company. •» (:■:» CONVENTION WITH GREAT BSITAIN. 241 THE CRF.OLE. The Creole lailed from Hampton RoodH, in Virginia, fur New Uriean*, witli aiuven on board. The alavcs on the poRiiago roBo on the otKcrrH and ciuw, 8ovorely wounded the captain, the chief iiiuto, und two of tlio crew, ami murdered one of the puMengera. The mate waa then compelled to navigate the vnonel to the Balmmua. On her arrival ahe waa taken poaaeiHion of by the American con«iil, authority wna rcxtored, nnd meaaurea were taken to send the vobbcI to the United States, in trder that those sk oa charged with mutiny and murder on the high seas might be tried. The Britiih ai'*horities interfered and liberated the ilaves. Held that tiie circumstances under which the Creole was i jinpellei' to enter harbor entitled her to protection, and that the interference, by liritisi. authorit < , to libera'- the sL'.oa in such case, or to prevent their being remanded to the United States for trial, r - ledged for their payment. Through misfortunes of the times and mismanagement of these institutions, the companies failed, for the most part, to pay the bonds CONVENTION WITH GREAT BRITAIN. 247 and certificates issued to tlicm by the Territory, or the interest that lias fallen due upon them ; and up to the present time payment has not been made either by the Territory or the State of Florida. A portion of the bonds and certificates issued to these companies were negotiated in Europe, and in default of their payment by Florida a claim is now made before this commission for their payment by the United States government. The following articles in the constitution of Florida have been adverted to in the remarks of counsel or in the opinions of the com- missioners : " Artiolr I. " Declaration of Rights. " Clause 19. That no law impairing the obligation of contracts shall ever be passed. " Articlk VIII. " Taxation and Revenue. " Clause 2. No other or greater amount of tax or revenue shall, at any time, be levied, than may be required for the necessary expenses of the government. "Article XVII. " Sec, 1. Nothing in this constitution shall impair the obligation of contracts, or violate vested rights either of individuals or of associa- tions claiming to exercise cor])orate privileges in this State." Mr. Kolt, Queen's counsel, and Mr. Cairns argued the case for the claimants, assisted by Mr. Hannen, the special agent and counsel to her Majesty's government ; Mr. Thomas, agent and counsel for the United States. The following points were taken by Mr. Rolt : 1. The principles of equity, reason, and public morals require the United States to pay this debt of Florida, contracted while a Territory. 2. The treaty of cession, act 2 and 6. 3. The debt from its origin was a debt of the United States as well as of the Territory. 4. In any event, the United States government confirmed and took upon itself this debt when Florida was admitted into the Union. h 248 ADJUSTMENT OF CLAIMS UNDER THE TiioM.AS, agent ami counsel for the United States : ,, This is a claimnow presented for thefirsttimeagainst the government of the United States for the payment of the interest, and ultimately the principal, of certain honds issued by the territorial government of Florida, and also for tlie payment of other bonds issued by banking corporations, and guarantied by that government. In the minds of disinterested Americans but one opinion exists on this subject. The conviction is universal that there can be no consti- tutional or legal obligation on the part of the United States to pay the debts of a Territory, and it would be a work of supererogation to attempt to prove this proposition before an American judge; but as the question seems not to be so evident to Englishmen, and as much importance has been given to it here by the two leai".!'^l and distin- guished counsel who have been heard lor the bondholders and her Majesty's government, I deem it respectful to submit the reason for this conviction of the American people. As this question is more important, from the constitutional prin- ciples involved, than perhaps any other that aviU come before the commissioners^ I desire, in the first place, to state the manner in which it is brought before them. The British government has never presented it to the government of the United States, and it has at no time been a subject of discussion between them, either before or at the signing of the convention. And when it is considered that England never refuses to urge upon the governments of other countries the just and lawful demands of her subjects, it will not be difficult for the commissioners to perceive why she never presented this claim to the government of the United States. Under these circumstances, it is fair to conclude that her Majesty's government did not consider it a claim against the United States ; but it has, nevertheless, been pre- sented as such, at the instance of the claimants. It may be that persons interested in these bonds are now present, and I therefore wish to observe that it is matter of very great regret to me, as I doubt not it is to a large majority of my countrymen, that these bondholders should be in the situation in which they now find themselves. I am acquainted with some of these persons, and enter- tain sentiments of respect for their talent and character ; yet I cannot refrain from expressing my astonishment that men, ordinarily so CONVENTION WITH GREAT BRITAIN. 249 eruraent timately iiraent of banking (xists on 10 consti- s to pay ;ation to ; but as as niucb id distin- and her aason for aal prin- efore the anner in las never as at no or at the England s the just for the m to the ices, it is lider it a 3een pre- present, at regret ncn, that now find nd enter- I cannot aarily so sagacious as they are in mercantile operations, sliould have been enticed into purchasing the bonds of the Territory of Florida as obli- gations of the Uniteil States, and still more that this transaction should have been closed, and years passed by without one single reference having been made to tlic liabilitv of the i'oderal government. How this is to be accounted for — whether they simply failed to exer- cise that caution which is to be expected of any one when investing his money, or whether they were induced, by the temptation of high interest, to accept bad security — it is not for me to inquire ; I am to show that, wliatever be the cause of their misfortune, they have no claim on the United States for relief. Although the learned counsel for the bondholders lias stated the case to the commissioners, I must beg leave also to submit my view of the manner in which the claim, if there bo one, is supposed to arise. Florida was ceded by Spain to the United States the 22d of Feb- ruary, 1815), in full property and sovereignty; and it was agreed that the inhabitants thereof should be incorporated into the Union as soon as consistent with the principles of the federal Constitution, and admitted to the enjoyment of all the rights, privileges, and immunities of citizens of the United States. The authority by which Congress proceeded to organize a territorial government will be found in the 3d section of the 4th article of the Constitution, and is in the following words : ' ' Congress shall have power to dispose of and make all needful rules and regulations respecting the territory or other property belonging to the United States." By virtue of the cession and this provision of the Constitution, Con- gress authorized the President to take possession of the Territory, and provide for its government, until that body should otherwise order. In 1822 a law was passed by Congress establishing the territorial government of Florida, which was, in fact, a constitution for the people of the Territory ; and, as it is important the commissioners should fully understand the nature of that constitutional charter, I must beg leave to refer to its details. It provides for the appointment by the President of a governor, in whom the executive power is vested ; and he is clothed with the usual executive powers possessed by the governor of a State. A secretary of the Territory was also appointed by the President. The legislative power was vested in the governer and thirteen discreet persons, inhab- . I . i a 4i' :'l f } 250 ADJUSTMENT OP CLAIMS UNDER THE itants of the Territory, called the legislative council, who were ap- pointed annually by the President. This ])ody had power to alter or repeal the laws in force at the commencement of this act, and pos- sessed, besides, tlie broad and comprehensive power " to legislate mi all rightful subjects of legislation . ' ' The governor was required to publish throughout the Territory all the laws passed by this legislature, and on or before the first day of December, in each year, to report the same to the President of the United States, to be laid before Congress, which laws, " if disaj^roved of y Congress, should theuaforth he of no force. ' ' This is tlie provision of the charter on which the learned counsel for the bondholders and the British government has founded the liability of the United States ; but before considering the validity of his argument based upon it, I wish further to state certain provisions of the laws of Congress rela- ting to the government of the Territory. In this, as in all previous territorial governments, the legislature had no power over the primary disposal of the soil, nor to tax the lands of the United States, nor to interfere with the claims to lands within the Territory. The judicial power was vested in two superior courts, one for East and one for West Florida, and such inferior courts as the legislative council might from time to time establish. The judges were under the control of the territorial government, and were required to take jurisdiction of all cases, civil and criminal, arising under the laws of the territory then in force, or thereafter to be enacted, and of all cases arising under the Constitution and laws of the United States. The laws of the United States were extended to the Territory, and its existing laws declared in force till repealed or altered by its legislative council ; and, like all former territories, Florida was authorized to send a delegate to Congress. An important change was made in the mode of appointing the legis- lative council in the year 1826, which appears to have been wholly overlooked by Mr. Gilpin, the American counsel for the bondholders, whose printed argument has been ])resented to the commission. At that period, which was long anterior to the passage of the territorial laws out of which this debt originated, Congress amended the constitutional charter, so as to give to the people the annual election of the legisla- l '• re re ftp- alter or nd pofl- te on all itory all it day of t of the pprovsd »rovi8ion ilers and . States ; pon it, I ess rela- Qjislature the lands Is within for East gislative re under to take laws of all cases es. The and its gislative orized to the legis- n wholly iholders, ion. At )rial laws itutional e legisla- CONVENTION WITH GREAT BRITAIN. 251 I •! tivc council. This secured to tliein the means of governing themselves in the most complete manner, and of changing any memher of tlie C(mncil who did not act conformahly to tlieir wishes. These are tlie CNsential provisions of the laws of Congress iiii[)()rtant to he stated in this connexion. We have thus seen that Congress created for the people of the terri- tory, not an agency, as Mr. Gilpin asserts in his airgunient in hehalf of the bondholders, a government, by which the i)eople could execute their purposes. The extent and nature of the powers embraced in the organic law show that it was a government. All the poM'ers were conferred which are usually exercised by the government of a State. Process ran in the name of the Territory, and it had complete civil as as well criminal jurisdiction. There was not a State of the Union more completely sovereign within its sphere, for it possessed the express power '' to legislate on all rightful subjects of legislation,'" and both in the States and Territories, the practice of fifty years had settled that the power of granting charters of incorj)oration is included within this legislative authority. No one, before the discovery was made by Mr. Gilpin, ever heard of an agent possessing the i)ower of life, and liberty, and taxation without limit. It is an abuse of language to call the organization exercising such powers an agency. All the writers agree in calling that which performs these functions a government. In pursuance of the authority derived frpm the constitutional char- ter — the important provisions of which I have recited — the legislative council, soon after its organization, commenced to grant charters of incorporation to academies, turnpike road companies, and other neces- sary corporations under a duly organized government. This continued to be done for more than ten years, during which period upwards of sixty acts of incorporation were passed. The acts under Avhicli the present claim is said to arise were passed at the session of the legisla- tive council held in 1835 ; and I shall give briefly the essential provi- sions of these laws, in order to show the nature of the obligations created by them. In that year the legislative council enacted a law to incorporate the subscribers to the " Union Bank of Florida," with a capital of one million of dollars, and giving the privilege of increasing it to three millions, which capital was to be raised by means of a loan^ on the faith of the Territory. The owners of real estate situated in the Territory of Florida, and 262 ADJUSTMENT OF CLAIMS UNDER THE wlio wcreiltizcnN thorcot', wore the only jjcrsons entitled to nubscribe to the stock. To Hocine the payment of the interoHt and principal of the bonds to be issued l)y the Territory, and to raise the capitnl, the sub- Horibcrs to the stock were bound to give bonds and mortgages on land andnegroes,a( leaste(|ual in value tothearnountof thestock taken. The eliarter furtlier stated, that, in order to facilitate the negotiations of the said loan by the bank, the faith of tlie Territo- • was thereby pledged for these^Mirityof the interest and ]>iiiici]>al of the bonds, so authorized to be is'^ued, payable in 2'l, 20, 28, and ;{() years, respectively, and bearing an interest of six per cent. ])er annum. In these bonds the Territory acknowledges its in(lebtedne^s to the Union Mank of Flor- ida, and promises to pay to the order of the jjresident and directors thereof The bonds were duly executed by the governor and treasurer of the Territory, and delivered to the bank to be negotiated. The surplus })rofits of the bank were, after paying the interest and exijcnses of its Tnanagenient, to be retained and used as additional cai)ital, until the amount equalled the bonds issued to procure the original capital. Thereafter the legislature might direct dividends to be paid ; one moiety to the Territory of Florida, in consideration of the aid afforded in rais- ing the cajtital of the bank, and the other moiety to be divided among the stockholders. About the same time, another act of the territorial legislature of Florida incorporated the "Southern Life Insurance and Trust Com- pany," with a capital of two millions of dollars, and having power to increase it to four millions. This corporation possessed very extensive trust powers^ together with those of l)anking. In order to enable this company to make loans and discounts beyond the amount of its capital, it was authorized to issue certificates of one thousand dollars each, bearing not more than six per cent, interest, and redeemable within the limits of the charter, which was for fifty years, at such time as the governor and company might agree upon. It was made the duty of the governor, by this law, to endorse on these cer- tificates the words, '' guarantied by the Territory of Florida," and sign his name and title of office thereto, and return them to the company ; and the faith of the Territory was thereby pledged for the faithful pay- ment of said certificates. Mortgages were to be taken on personal and real estate, as a security for the payment of the interest and principal of the Territory's liabilities ; and in case of the default of the company CONVENTION WITH GREAT BRITAIN. 263 ibsci'ibo to pal of the , the sub- }8 on land ken. The tidtions of ly pledged lutliorized Ivelv. and bonds the : of Flor- directors eaHnrerof le surphiK I SOS of its until the I capital, ne moiety L'd in raifi- 3d among lature of list Corn- power to Bxtensive 8 beyond es of one rest, and ty years, It was lese cer- and sign )mpany ; iful pay- onal and )rincipal 3ompany f to pay interest or principal, the court of appeals in that Territory could issue process and sell property or choses in action of the company suf- ficient to indemnify the Territory against loss. The company had the ordinary power of corporations of suing and being sued, and was in all respects rendered by the laws of the Territory legally responsible. Under these territorial laws, both the Bank and the Trust Company sold a portion of these obligations in the United States and in Europe, and commenced business. It is not necessary to inijuire how long it was carried on ; it will be sufficient for my present purpose to state that, after the lapse of a few years, the Trust Company could not pay the interest on the certificates, nor t' ■ bank the interest on the bonds, and the holders of them applied to the territorial government to redeem its pledge, but, under various pretexts, it also refused to pay it. The State of Florida has, it is alleged, acted in the same manner in regard to these obligations ; and as that State has been admitted into the Union without any provision for their payment, the British government has brought the matter before this commission, and asks it to decide that the government of the United States is bound to pay these debts of Florida. I shall now endeavor to show that no such obligation exists. In England it is not generally understood that the government of the United States is one of limited powers, not simply restrained by the theoretical checks and balances of one branch of the government upon another, but its boundaries are defined by a written instrument, which every member of it is sworn to support. I never yet have met with any one educated under the governments of the Old World who could fully appreciate the obligations of a written constitution, and I do not find that the learned counsel who opened this dis- cussion is an exception to tlie rule. The Constitution is supposed by them to be a creature of the legislature, which may be varied to suit expediency. Englishmen, when referring to the Constitution of the United States, invariably regard it as having the same adaptiveness to suit the opinions of the hour as the British Constitution, which is a mere form of government, existing in the traditions and history of the country, in no two minds possessing the same attributes, and under which any power may be exercised. In the United States this omnipotent political power exists nowhere in an organized form. It is retained by the people. When we speak of the Constitution we mean a writing, a great fundamental law, which 264 ADJUSTMENT OF CLAIMS UNDER THE i prcscribi'8 tho raunncr in which the public autlio >y flhall he adininis- tered ; a statute paMsed by the people thenveiv . ' — that true s nirce of all political power — and wherein they ay the Britisl) Parliament. That sovereignty is alone to be found in the i)eople, and 1 desire this distinction to l)okept in view during this discussion. This being the true exposition of the government of the United States, let us examine the Constitution and see what powers it contains, whether there is in it any authority to pay the debts of Florida. In the eighth section of the first acticle of the Constitution, the powers of Congress are enumerated, and, with the permission of the commissioners, I will read them. *' 1. Congress shall have power to lay and collect taxes, duties, im- posts, and excises, to pay the debts and provide for the common d(;- fence and general welfare of the United States. * * * ad in in 18- s >uicc of ornmeiit ■ttrumcnt ritten in dtTHtand [iinont of ds of the ion, that nsciously tt'8 is pos- ital error. In Eng- 1 time to tea it has lent, they le United ey const i- : and the separate rnments. gn within authority any legis- exercised found in liring this 10 United contains, ida. itiou, tlie on of the uties, ini- ainon de- CONVENTION WITH GREAT BRITAIN. 265 *• 2. To borrow money on the cre. CONVENTION WITH GREAT BRITAIN. 259 sane- ;over- ion of proba- legis- 3 limit in'tia- y Con- wever, action e exer- iiission exer- assume 1 of the ;st have 3rs and lose for er case, ir char- t, when lUed by- laws, 10 rely ;ranted instance before no good urc that ■ovision people lat this es It world le Icgis- ,'ith the power to contract debts, and it was not imagined that these were acts of the federal government till Mr. Gilpin, the American attorney for the bondholders, announced the discovery. But, if these bonds are obligations created by officers of the United States, so are the debts of turnpike-road companies, and academies, and every corporation char- tered by the people of Florida. And, in this case, which does not differ in principle from them, it was entirely an after-thought, and totally unworthy the people of that territory to attempt to i^hift the responsi- bility of the debt which they had deliberately contracted upon the United States. Besides its own faith, it is now contended on the part of the claimants that the territory also pledged the faith of the federal government. This was not the opinion of Governor Eaton, when the act to incorporate the "Southern Life Insurance and Trust Company" was before him for his approval. His language is so clear and conclu- sive on this point that I must beg to cite a portion of his message to the legislature, returning this bill, and suggesting certain alterations. He says: " The guaranty of a State or Territory is nolhing more than a mere promise to do a particular act. There is no compulsorn authority xcherehy the fulfilment of the promise can he enforced; it is hut the assu- rance of plighted faith, though it is that which the sovereignty making it will always be careful to redeem. If, then, from any unforseeu ca- sualty this chartered company shall fail or omit to discharge its incurred obligations, a liability on the part of this Territory will arise ; and hence does prudence dictate to the representatives that an off'^^ed guaranty of the public faith shall n5t be carrio-' beyond a point of safety to those whoso interests are here repre-ented." No reference is here made to tha ptightcd faith of the United States. Governor Eaton knew that there vras no power in Congress or the ter- ritorial legislature to pledge tic United States to any such debt ; and he publicly warned the legislature and the people oi' the territory, if this corporation should fail to discharge its obligations, a liability on the part of the territory would arise. With this solemn warning be- fore the purchasers of these securities, it is idle for them to contend that they invested their money in them under the expectation that the national government was in any way responsible for their payment. If, however, other ])roof be wanting on this pc-int, we have only to look back to the price of United States stock in iiOndon and the price of Florida bonv"^ at that time. The l*onds of the Union Bank of Flo- 1;; i m T"'!-*-!'-"-"- i^l 260 ADJUSTMENT OF CLAIMS UNDER THE rida were sold at ten per cent, below par, while the United States stock was selling much above it. In the face of this notorious fact it seems to me extraordinary to maintain that the purchasers of these Florida bonds believed they were guarantied by the United States. A complete confirmation of this view of the subject is afforded by the action of Great Britain in regard to her colonies. Over these pos- sessions Parliament has much more control than Congress exercises over the territories of the United States. The colonists contract debts and make loans ; and although these acts are directly approved by her Majesty's government, with the sanction of Parliament, yet the Bri- tish empire is not bound for their payment. On this point I desire to submit to the commissioners a bond of the province of New Brunswick, Avhich I have before me. It will be seen that the form of the bond runs thus: " PROVINCE OF NEW BRUNSWICK. ^^ Under the authority of the legislature of Neiv Brunswick. " The lieutenant governor, on behalf of said province and by virtue of the authority vested in him by an act of the general assembly of the same, entitled ' An act to facilitate tlie construction of a railway from St. Andrews to Quebec,' which act has been approved and allowed by her Majesty, has hereunto set his hand and affixed hi^ seal of office." This bond, as wc shall hereafter show, is similar to those issued by the Territory of Florida ; and when the reUition of the colony to the imperial government is considered, it certainly ought to have etiual excint of obligation. Every act that i.s passed by the colonies is g^ssented to by the British government ; and in this case the world is notified of this assent by its being expressed in tlie bond. Besides, the law was i)assed by a legislature, two branches of which — namely, the governor and council — were appointed l>y the crown ; neverthe- less, it is nowhere contended in England that the debt created under this law by the issue of these New Brunswick bonds is .M;uarantied by the British government, and their low price in the market, in com- parison with a loan really guarantied, is conclusive on this point. This case being within the knowledge of the claimants, it is remark- able that they should come before an intelligent tribunal and ask it to say that the United States guarantied the territorial bonds of Florida. CONVENTION WITH GREAT BRITAIN. 261 ; stock seems 'lorida led by se po8- lercises zt debts . by ber be Bri- esire to n!>wick, le bond )y virtue jmbly of railway ved auel ixed bis ssued by y to tbe ve equal onies is world is Besides, namely, levertbe- ed under antied by in com- lis point. romark- md ask it bondfc of In order to make this comparison between the colonial and Florida bonds still more clear to the commissioners, I will read the bond from the law of Florida incorporating the Union Bank. It is in these words : . . ' ' ONE THOUSAND DOLLARS. ^^Know all men hij these presents, That the Territory of Florida acknowledges to be indebted to the 'Union Bank of Florida' in tbe sum of one thousand dollars ; which sum the said Territory of Florida promises to pay, in lawful money of the United States, to the order of the president, directors, antl cbmi)any of the said bank, on the day of , in the year one thousand eight hundred and , with interest at the rate of per centum per annum, payable half yearly at the place named in the indorsement hereon, viz : on the day of , and on the day of every year, until the payment of said principal sum. "In testimony whereof, the governor of the Territory of Florida hath signed, and the treasurer countersigned, these presents, and caused the seal of the Territory to be affixed thereto at Tallahassee, ti.is day of , in the year of our Lord . "A. B., Governor "C. D., Treasurer." There is not in this bond any pledge or guaranty by the United States, and no intimation that it has ever been approved by their gov- ernment. Is it not plain, according to the British construction in the case of the New Brunswick loan, and for a much stronger reason, too, that there can be no liability of the United States to pay this bond ? But I have before me another bond, issued by the government of Canada, to which I would call attention : "PROVINCE OF CANADA. ''Under the authority of the parliament of the province of Canada. ' ' The government of Canada Promises to pay the bearer The sum of one hundred pounds sterling, "Twenty-five years from and after the first day of August, one thousand eight linndred and forty-nine ; likewise the ' iterest thereon, I \\ uu -i 1 I- .-I I ; ! 262 ADJUSTMENT OF CLAIMS UNDER THE from same date, at the rate of six per cent, per annum, to be paid half yearly on presentation of the proper coupons for the same, as hove unto annexed, on the first day of August and the first day of February in each year, at the ofiice of the Messrs. Baring Brothers &Co., London. ''Signed and dated at Montreal this fifteenth day of , one thousand eight hundred, &c. [sEAii.] '' , Iteceiver General. a , Inspector General." This bond does not bind the imperial government, although the law for its creation was, under the authority of Parliament, approved by the crown. The British, like every other government, contracts by express stipulation ; and I shall now show, by reference to another Canada loan, what it deems necessary \\\ order to bind the government to pay the debt of the colony. It ivili then be readily seen that no such act or guaranty was given by the United iStates in the case of the Florida bonds. Here is the bond to wliich I refer. It is in the following words : "PROVINPt; OF CANADA. " Guarantied Loan, ' ' Under the authority of an act of the imperial Parliament of the United . Kingdom of Great Britain and Ireland, passed in the sixth year of her Majesty's reign, entitled, ' An act for guarantying the payment of the interest on a loan of one million five hundred thousand pounds, to be raised by the province of Canada,' and of an act of the legislature of the province of Canada, passed in the same year, entitled, ' An act to authorize the raising, by way of loan in England, the sum of one million five hundred thousand pounds sterling, for the con- struction of certain public works in Canada,' this debenture entitles the bearer, vv, ontv years after the date hereof, to the sum of five hun- dred pounus, lawful money of Great Britain; likewise to interest thereon, at fhe rate of £4 percent, per annum, payable half yearly in London, at the Bank of England, on presentation of the proper coupon for the same, uamely, £2 per cent, on the 1st of July, and £2 per cent, en the 1st of January, iu each year ; the same being charged on the consolidated revenue fund of the said province of Canada, next after the cliarges made thereon by law at the time of the passing of t \x C30NVENTI0N WITH GREAT BRITAIN. 263 said act of the piovince of Canada, and, imtil the said principal sum be repaid, the said interest is guarantied by her JIajesty on the con- solidated fund of the United Kingdom of Great Britain and Ireland under the authority of the said act of the imperial Parliament. "Dated Treasury Chambers, Whitehall, this 2d day of January, 1853. ''HENRY GOULBURN, "A. PRINGLE, ''HENRY BARING, "Being three of the commissioners of the treasury, duly appointed by her Majesty to raise the said loan." This is an obligation which binds the British government. It is so expressed on its face, and, in consequence, it was negotiated on mucli better terms than the unguarantied bond of Canada. The guarantie .'li loan bears four per cent, interest, while that which is not bears an interest of six per cent. If the United States had guarantied the Florida bonds, they would have done it in a similar form bylaw, and the price of them would then have been at least equal to that of United States stock selling in London at the same time. But the federal government never in any way acted on or approved of the Florida loan, and the bonds of that Territory sold in London, con- sidering the interest allowed, at about ten per cent, below par, while the stock of the United States sold above it. Under no circumstances could clearer proof be given that the purchasers of the Florida bonds knew that the United States government was not liable for their pay- ment. It is alleged by Mr. Gilpin that Congress knew the nature of these charters before the bonds were sold and the money paid. Suppose this to be true ; did the United States become responsible by declining to interfere with the people of Florida in governing themselves ? Mr. Gilpin says that obligation arose, because "the action of the territo- rial legislature from first to last was the action of Congress. In no constitutional aspect had that legislature any autliority except as the agent or on behalf of Congress." If this be true, then not only the laws for the creation of the Union Bank of Florida, and the Southern Life Insurance and Trust Company, are laws of the United States, but c very other act of that Territory will have the same force and extent ' Hi 'Fi 4 1 u i i" M 264 ADJUSTMENT OF CLAIMS UNDER THE I ' of operation. If Congress can delegate its power to a Territory to enact laws for the whole Union, it may authorize these corporations or their presidents to do so ; and, instead of having a limited govern- ment in the United States, we should at once be launched into an un- defined region of power where no free government (.ould exist. Even in England, where the Parliament enjoys political omnipotence, what would be said if it should grant to the Bank of England power to pass laws for the British Empire? Who would not call it usurpation — a violation of the Constitution? yet this commission is asked to inter- polate this power into the free and written Constitution of the United Stat 18. Mr. Gilpin is a lawyer, and has been Attorney General of the United States, and it is the more surprising that he should have been induced to claim such a power for Congress. No one contends in America, nor do I suppose tlie learned counsel for her Majesty's government would maintain, that the law of a ter- ritorial government has any force beyond it.s boundaries. If he would not, then he surrenders the whole case, because this proves that the action of the territorial legislature is not the action of Con- gress. Every act passed by Congress is a law of the United States ; and if the acts of Florida were laws of the Union, thev would have force and effect beyond the boundaries of that Territory, anywhere within the limits of the federal jurisdiction. It is well settled that Congress cannot resolve itself into a legislature for particular localities. In the case of Cohens v. Virginia, it was held by the Supreme Court that a law for the District of Columbia, or any other place for which Congress could legislate, was a law for the whole country, and its obligations commensurate with it. Thi." will be found to be fully sus- tained in all the American courts, and has received special confirma- tion in fourth Gill and Johnson's Maryland Reports, page 135. Any act necessary to be done to carry the law of Congress into effect, may be performed in any part of the United States. In executing the laws of the territorial government this could not be done. Process ran in the nf;me of the people of the Territory, and was stojjped by the boun- daries thereof, and hence the law under which it issued could not be a law of the United States. But the Constitution .settles this ([uestion beyond all controversy, and I hasten to point out its provisions to the commissioners. The first section of the first article is perfectly conclusive, and is in these CONVENTION WITH GREAT BRITAIN. 265 ran in boun- ot be a words : ** All legislative powers herein granted shall be vested in a Congress of the United States, which shall consist of a Senate and House of Re} esentatives." The power to make laws is not vested in Congress and the Territory of Florida, but in a Congress composed in a particular manner, viz : of a Senate and a House of Representatives. Could the members of Congress^ after having sworn to support this Constitution^ undertake to vest the legislative power in a totally dis- tinct government ? If the suggestion of such a thing had come from one unaccustomed to the obligations of a written constitution, it would not have been so astonishing, for neither in England, nor anywhere else out of thp United States, does there seem to exist any correct ap- ])reciatioil» of the obligations of a written constitution ; but for it to be asserted by one who has held a high position in the government of the United States, I confess, amazes me, and 1 can only attribute it to over-wrought zeal in advocating the cause of his clients. The Constitution does not merely prescribe that the legislative power shall be vested in a Congress of the United States, consisting of a Senate and a House of Representatives, but it defines the manner in which each House .shall be constituted. ' ' The House of Representatives shall be composed of members cliosen every second year by the people of the several States," and it besides prescribes the qualifications of the representatives and electors. "The Senate of the United States shall be composed of two senators from each State, chosen by the legislature thereof. ' ' Each House is to determine the rules of its proceedings ; and among those rules it is required that every bill shall be read three times in each House, and on different days, unless otherwise ordered ; and the Constitution further requires that it shall afterwards be ap- proved by the President before taking efiect. What purpose can there be in limiting the powers of legislation to Congress, if it can vest that power in another body wholly unknown to the Constitution? If Con- gress may associate the territorial legislature as a co-ordinate branch of the law-making department, it may, as I have previously said, in- vest the Union Bank of Florida, or the British Parliament, with the same power; and we shall then find that, instead of being independent, we are still subjects of the British crown. But the learned counsel's position is, tliat this act of Florida was made a law of Congress by that body having declared that the acts of the legislative council should be laid before it. This would be doing ' '■ 266 ADJUSTMENT OF CLAIMS UNDER THE 1 If that indirectly which Congress cannot do directly. It cannot vest the legislative power in the territorial government ; nevertlielcss the coun- sel maintains that it may give to that Territory authority to pass laws which Congress can silently acfiuiesco in, and make them, by that mode, laws of the United States. Such a doctrine can never find favor in the mind of one accustomed to a written constitiri >n, and which the mem- bers of the government are sworn to support. J'iie United States gov- ernment expresses its will, as I have already shown, only by act of Congress or by treaty, both of which must l)e passed in proscribed forms. Tiiey can be bound in no other wav and none of these forms have been complied with in creating the debt of Florida. It is asked by Mr. Gilpin . " Where was the authority of«the Terri- tory of Florida to grant charters of incorporation ? " That question is answered by the law of Congress organizing the territorial govern- ment. By that law it was expressly authorized "to legislate on all rightful subjects of legislation," and to grant charters of incorporation was everywhere acknowledged to come within that power. The terri- torial government was in all respects similar to the government of a State, which, without any express authority, exercises this power; and surely^ under a specific grant " to legislate on all rightful subjects," the Territory may exercise it. The States of the Union have far more unlimited powers than those of the general government, though they are not kucIi that foreigners so often feel their operation. Since the uutliority of a Territory is analogous to that of a State, we have but to see what this is in order to determine that possessed by the territo- rial government. Congress can only exercise those powers expressly granted in the Constitution of the United States, or which may be necessary and proper to carry these powers into eiFect ; whereas a State may do everything which it is not forbidden to do by its own constitu- tion, or by that of the United States. A State is not prohibited from incorporating banks and granting other charters ; and hence, under the general right of sovereignty, this power has l)een exercised. The State derives the authority to create corporations from its inherent sovereignty. That sovereignty is embraced in the power ''to legislate on all rightful subjects of legislation," and which is expressly granted to tlie Territory. It may, therefore, by virtue of this grant, do that which the State claims the right to do without it. Fortunately, this question does not depend on any reasoning of [t cannot vest the rthelcss the coun- ority to pass lawt, 3m, by that mode, M- find favor in the d wliich the mem- Juitcd States gov- ,'n, only by act of sed in prescribed me of those forms rida. ority of«the Torri- " That question territorial govern- to legislate on all rs of incorporation power. The terri- e government of a es this power ; and rightful subjects," nion have far more inent, though they ration. Since the Itate, we have but ised by the territo- i powers expressly , or which may be ; whereas a State y its own constitu- lot prohibited from id hence, under the n exercised. The from its inherent )ower 'Ho legislate expressly granted this grant, do that any reasoning of CONVENTION WITH GREAT BRITAIN. 267 mine, however satisfactory to myself It has been settled by one of the liighest judicial trihiinals in the United States. In the case of Williams v. the Bank of Michigan, reported in 7 Wendell, p. 531), tlie court of errors in New York adjudj,'t(l that the j)uwer to incorpo- rate a bank was within tiic scope of the general powers of territorial legislation conferred by the act of Congresn, This was the unanimous opinion of the court, although there was not in the ortijanization of the Michigan legislature that expression of the pi'imlar will which Mr. (lilpin seems to regard as so essential to the viilidity of an act of incorporation. The governor and the members of that legislature were appointed by the Tresidcnt, and their acts laid licfurt Congress, as in the case of Florida. In giv'ng his opinion. Judge Deardsley ob.servi>'T on tliis case, "that the hiiuk is been cn^ated by an authority which to us may be regarded as an -nendent government. ' In anotlier case, reported in 5th Wendell, p. 481, ]\Ir. John C. Spencer, one of the most distinguished lawyers in America, said: "The territorial governments were alone to judge of tlie expediency of the laws to be adopted; and when adopted, until disajiproved, they are in force." It being established, then, that the legislative council had power to grant charters of incorporation, Mr. Uilpin admits in liis pamphlet, on page 3(5, that these banks were the agents of the Territory. Notwith- standing these judicial decisions were within the reach of Mr. Gilpin, and probably within his knowledge, he still asks by what expression of the popular will was this action of the territorial legislature sanc- tioned, as if that were necessary to render the act legal. This condi- tion which he requires was, however, fulfilled. It was approved of by the people's representatives, who were chosen annually, hy universal suffrage. The opportunity was thus afforded to express their disap- proval of any measure of the legislature at the ballot-box. This they did not do. It was not till long after the organization of these banking institutions — after the money had been borrowed and partly squand- ered — that the people objected to the measure. Then was sent forth that expression of the popular will that the debt is not to be paid by the people of Florida. I confess that I have not the same respect for this expression of the popular will that it seems to command in the mind of Mr. Gilpin. If the debt was legally contracted, the people of Florida ought to pay it. I am aware that it is contended on the part of Florida that at least a portion of the bonds were sold contrary TT1 i; ,i! M m m i ()*■?'■ ^r IMAGE EVALUATION TEST TARGET (MT-3) y A {/ ^ >. .** £; A -t^ ^ ^ 1.0 1.1 ■^ 122 122 u 124 ■■■ Z U& |2.0 IL25 muu u& 1.6 6" Photographic Sciences Corporation 23 WEST MAIN STREET WBtSTER.N.Y. 14SS0 (716) •72-4S03 ^\ •'^ \ :\ >51 i\ '4^ <, <^^ ;*:> ^ O^ 268 ADJUSTMENT OF CLAIMS UNDER THE to the provisions of the law ; on that point I do not intend to Express any opinion. For the purposes of this discussion I am willing to assume that the law was complied with, and then deny that the United States can be held responsible. But the objection raised on behalf of Florida certainly does not apply to the whole debt, and the repudiation of that which is just receives, I have no doubt, that condemnation of the American people which it deserves. Mr. Gilpin refers to the clause of the Constitution which authorizes Congress to make rules and regulations for the government of the Ter- ritories, and observes : ' ' The rules and regulations which Congress makes are constitutional, but not so are those of any other body. Con- gress may, and necessarily must, act through its agents; it may con- stitute the territorial legislature, or governor, or other functionary, such agent; but their acts are the acts of the principal, if the agent has not gone beyond the limits of the delegated powers. The creation of these was within the powers of the territorial legislature, as con- firmed by Congress ; it is, therefore, an act of the principal, even if not ratified by that principal." These words were, perhaps, never before arranged to violate such a well-known principle of government. I have shown, by judicial authority, entitled to the highest consideration, that the creation of these obligations was within the powers of the territorial legislature, without any confirmation by Congress. Not- withstanding this authority, Mr. Gilpin maintains that the legislature may create a corporation whose by-laws and all the acts for its inter- nal regulations and government are not constitutional nor valid, except as the agent of the legislature creating it ; and hence its acts become laws of the State. This egregious error results from misapprehending the nature of the territorial government. It was not the agent of Con- gress, but the agent of the people of Florida. It was appointed by them, annually, and received its instructions from them; and they are the principal, and not Congress. On the people of that Territory does the responsibility rest ; and although they may not have held their representatives to a very strict accountability, nevertheless it was the act of the people of Florida, by their chosen representatives, an inde- pendent society acting for itself, and those who purchased these obli- gations must look to Florida to fulfil them. If the territorial govern- ment was guilty of acts of imprudence and folly, persons investing their money should have looked to it. The rule of caveat emptor is generally CONVENTION WITH GREAT BRITAIN. 269 ;ss any issume , States Florida of that of tte horizes he Ter- ongress , Con- ay con- tionary, le agent creation as con- jn if not jr before lent. I eration, 8 of the I. Not- jislature ts inter- except become hending of Con- inted by they are ory does Id their was the an inde- ese obli- govern- ing their ;enerally present to the minds of capitalists ; and if they did not regard it in pur- chasing the bonds of Florida, I am unable to perceive what justice there is in shifting the consequences upon the government of the United States. The learned counsel who opened this discussion placed the claim *'upon the principles of equity, reason, and public morals." To what kind of equity does he refer? Certainly not to that which has been, or ever can be, administered by human tribunals. He has in his mind a transcendental equity which it belongs not to man to administer. If it be legal equity to which he alludes, why has not this claim been brought before the courts of the United States ? — for it is alleged that it arises under a law of the Territory which has become a law of Con- gress. The Constitution declares "the judicial power shall extend to all cases in law and equity arising under the Constitution and laws of the United States;" and if a question does so arise, the Supreme Court have held that they must, in some form, have jurisdiction, whoever may be the parties; yet in no way has this case been brought up for adjudication. The claimants admit in their memorial that the United States courts have no jurisdiction of the case. How, then, can it arise from a law of Congress, or be a case of equity in any sense known tc the English or American law? The claimants say, because they had a legal remedy, and that Congress has taken it away by the admission of Florida into the Union as a State. What remedy had the claimants against the territorial government which they have not against the State of Florida? They could not sue the Territory in its own courts, and there is no jurisdiction of such a suit given to the courts of the United States. This must have been understood by the claimants when they purchased the bonds. We have seen in the message of Governor Eaton, returning to the legislative council the "Southern Life and Trust Company's' ' charter for alteration, that he said : "The guaranty of a State or Territory is nothing more than a mere promise to do a particular act. There is no compulsory authority whereby the fulfilment of the promise can be enfm'ced; it is but the assurance of plighted faith." This view of the Territory's obligations, and the warning that no remedy existed against it, was before the world, and has not been controverted. The learned counsel himself has not even attempted to support the assertion of the memorial, that we have taken away the remedy of the claimants. The equity, then, demanded, -I" ^ 270 ADJUSTMENT OF CLAIMS UNDER THE i III '11 l\ is that which has heretofore been too subtle for courts of justice, and the case is brought before this commission under the supposition that it is endowed with superhuman power. The transcendental argument which the learned counsel constructed on the broad basis of equity, reason, and public morals, must, then, fall to the ground. The distinguished names of Chancellor Kent and Mr. Webster have been introduced into this discussion by the learned counsel for her Majesty's government. Their opinions are entitled to the highest consideration everywhere, and no one bows to them with more pro- found respect than I do ; but I confess that I cannot perceive the bear- ing of the opinions cited upon the matter before the commission. It appears that certain persons who were negotiating for the purchase of these bonds, or who were already interested in them, desired to know whether Congress could repeal the laws of the territorial government by which the debt was created, and the opinions of these distinguished jurists satisfied them that they run no risk on that score, though Mr. Webster said Congress had the power to annul them. If anything is to be built upon this dictum attributed to Mr. Webster, I must deny any such authority in Congress. The Constitution does not, in terms, prohibit Congress from passing any law impairing the obligation of contracts, though it does so in effect. It has been shown in the course of these observations that Congress can exercise no power which is not expressly delegated to it, or which is n ?t necessary and proper to carry into effect the granted powers. The power to impair the obligation of contracts is nowhere expressly granted, and it can never be neces- sary or proper to attain any end of government ; and hence it is alto- gether against the Constitution to claim for Congress either the power or right to impair the obligation of a contract, or, in other words, to do injustice. No such authority has ever been set up by it. It did require, in 1836, that all futtirc charters granted by the Territory should be ajiproved by Congress before taking effect; but tlitre was no intimation that the past action of the Territory could be undone. Mr. Gilpin says, ''that, with a full knowledge of the insolvency of the corporations, and the certainty that only by taxation could either the interest or the principal of these obligations be paid to the holders, a clause was introduced into the State constitution prohibiting taxation after Florida should become a State, except for the necessary expenses of the State government. To this prohibition of taxation Congress CONVENTION WITH GREAT BRITAIN. 271 igation neces- is alto- power )vds, to It did srritory was no le. ency of either olders, xfttion penses bngress assented, and further stipulated that for no purpose whatever should the puhlic lands within the State he taxed hy the State legislature." Therefore Mr. Gilpin would have the commissioners conclude that the United States ought to pay the debts of Florida. Does this follow from his premises ? The provision of the constitution of Florida, to which reference is here mad«, is in these words: "No greater amount of tax or revenue shall be levied than may be required for the necessary expenses of government." It is a most unwarrantable construction of this provision to assert that it authorizes the repudiation of the debts of the Territory. The principle is well settled that a territorial government may contract debts which shall bind its people when they arc admitted a|»j|t State into the Union. This was decided in the case of the New Orleans Navigation Company, reported in 11th Martin's, page 309. The doc- trine of the writers on international law is to the same effect. Chan- cellor Kent thus lays down the law in his clear and emphatic style: "A State neither loses any of its rights nor is discharged from any of its duties by a change in the form of its civil government. The body politic is still the same, though it may have a different organ of com- munication." So that whether it was so designed by the people in framing their Constitution or not, judicial decision and international law both declare that they are unable to rid themselves of their just obli- gations by any new form of government. But it was never so intended. It is a necessary expense of a government to pay its debts. It is so well understood by the tax-payers of Great Britain, that the payment of the interest on a debt is a necessary expense of government, that I (lid not expect to be called upon to prove the proposition. The prin- ciples which regulate the obligations of Florida towards licr creditors are fixed by universal law, and could not be affected by her admission as a State. Congress had no power to require the Territory to be out of debt before admitting it into the Union, and assumed for the United States no obligation by admitting it without such requirement. In regard to the exemption of the public lands from taxation, that was specially mentioned in the law organizing the territorial govern- ment. It was no new thing to re-enjoin it upon the State authorities. The same provision had been introduced by Congress into every terri- torial charter from the foundation of the federal Constitution, and continuedtwhen the Territory became a State. Why should Florida 272 ADJUSTMENT OF CLAIMS UNDER THE be an exception to the rule? It is well understood by every man of common intelligence in the United States that the public lands never were, in any State or Territory, subject to the control of either ; and if the claimants did not inquire into this when they purchased these bonds, there is no justice in making the people of the United States liable for the results of their negligence* Suppose a man who is in need of money should go to another and offer to mortgage ray house as security for a loan, and, without investigating the title, the lender should take a mortgage upon it. When it is afterwards shown that the mortgagor had no right whatever to my house, am I bound to pay the debt when it becomes due? According to Mr. Gilpin's doctrine, I am ;Ait according to universal law and justice, I am not. This is Mr. Gilpin's argument in favor of the liability of the United States derived from the public lands. ' In the course of these observations I have shown that the first position assumed by the learned counsel cannot be maintained, and that there is no liability of the United States upon the ground of equity and public morals. > His second point was, that from its origin this debt was a debt of the United States as well as of the Territory of Florida. I have shown that the United States can only contract debts by act of Con- gress passed according to prescribed forms, and that none of these forms were complied with in the supposed assent of Congress to the contraction of this debt. The United States government cannot con- tract a debt at all, except by law or by treaty, which is a supreme law ; und in neither mode did it assent to the Florida obligations. I huve moreover shown, by incontrovertible proof, that the purchasers of these bonds knew the United States government was not bound for their i)aynient from the price they bore in the market, it being far below that of the United States stock sold in London at the same time. • The learned counsel ears, whatever mav be the force of this last Argument, that it does not apply to his other ground, which is, " that in any event the United States government confirmed and took upon jtself this debt when Florida was admitted into the Union as a Stato." If the federal government took it upon itself by the admission of Florida, that was because the act of the Territory creating it thereby became a law of the United States. The same constitutional objection here arises that we have alreaely considered, namely, that tile law au- CONVENTION WITH GREAT BRITAIN. 273 thorizing the debt was never passed by Congress, nor approved by the President. But suppose the mere admission of Florida as a State adopted this law into the statutes of the Union, it will not be denied that it must have the same effect upon the other acts of the territory, and its laws have thus at once become laws of the United States. I understand the counsel to admit that this is a legitimate conclusion from the premises. If this is true of Florida, it is equally true of every other Territory which has been admitted as a State since the foundation of the government, and all their laws are statutes of the United States. Instead, then, of one government, in which all are represented, giving laws to the Union, we have besides had, at the same time, two or three different territorial legislatures in remote parts of the country enacting laws for the control of the whole iCmerican people — a hydra in government never before known to any nation, and this commission will not venture to assume that the people of the United States have lived under it for three-quarters of a century with- out having discovered its monstrosity. To my mind this is conclusive, that by the admission of Florida, the United States did not, in any form whatever, assume the obliga- tions of the territorial debts, and this commission cannot refuse to concur in this conclusion. 18 tri O 274 ADJUSTMENT OF CLAIMS UNDER THE Mr. Cairns for the bondholders, assisted by Hannen, agent and counsel for Great Britain, in reply, contended at length in behalf of the allowance of the claim. 1 . On the general ground of the subordinate power and position of the Territory under the general government. That the United States held the supreme power over her Territories originally, appointed her executive, had a large interest in the lands of the Territory, and in numerous respects held such a responsibility and chu^e over her, and control over her legislation, that in justice and equity the general government should be responsible for her debts. 2. That the article in her constitution, limiting the right of taxation to the necessary expenses of government, might be construed, and probably was designed to be construed, in a manner to prevent the State government from making the necessary appropriations for the payment of the debts of the Territory, and that Congress, by the ad- mission of the Territory with such a provision, became accessory to the wrong, and should be holden as pledging her own resources for the payment of the claims. 3. It was further contended that, under all the circumstances of the case, the United States was morally bound to pay these debts. That a moral obligation is as high a claim as can be set up against a sove- reign power, and is as fully obligatory against such a power as a legal obligation. That a moral obligation is the only claim that can exist against a sovereign State. ers. COKYEl^TIOM WITH ORBAT BBITAIN. 276 ■ ; ),■ ', . i;i»lM'.i> OBSERVATIONS OF MR. THOMAS, AGENT FOR THE UNITED STATES, ON . THE REHEARING BEFORE THE UMPIRE. The commissionera having disagreed in opinion as to the obligation oi Ihe United States to pay the debts of the Territory of Florida, the case was submitted to Mr. Bates, the umpire, for decision. At the request of the British commissioner and agent, the umpire had attended the argument of the case before the commissioners, and it was understood by the agent of the United States that the umpire's presence would render a re-argument unnecessary ; but Mr. Cairns, one of the counsel for her Majesty's government in this case, insisted upon his right to a special hearing by the umpire, and the case was accordingly re-argued before him and the commissioners. After her Majesty's counsel had closed his argument, Mr. Thomas, the agent for the United States, made the following observations in reply : Mr. Thomas: ' When the argument of this case took place before the commission- ers, I thought it was understood that the presence of the umpire, al- though unofficial, would render a re-argument unnecessary. In this, it appears, I was mistaken. I do not find, however, that, in the review of the subject, the learned counsel has flisoovered any new ground on which to rest the claim against the Tjiilted States. It is still alleged that the United States government confirmed and took upon itself the obligation of these debts by the admission of Florida into the Union. I have, in a previous discussion of this question, shown that no such legal consequence followed from the actioft of the general government. And, if it be not sufficiently manifest that the takers of these bonds expected the admission of Florida would occur precisely as it did, I shall be able to remove any doubt on that point by information which has recently come to my knowledge, and which I shall now present for the consideration of the umpire, V^ff^^ 276 ADJUSTMENT OF CLAIMS UNDER THE '!"»■ The prospectus, issued by authority of Florida, containing a full statement of the security offered, was made known to the purchasers of the bonds before they invested their money ; and in that prospectus no allusion whatever is made to the liability of the United States. It is entitled, " Florida six per cent, sterling bonds," and the very first sentence commences by declaring, '< these are the bonds of the Terri- tory of Florida;" then it sets forth, with great minuteness, the ad- vantages of the investment, and the safety of the security ofiered, and sums them up in the following specific manner : " The holders of the bonds have therefore a fourfold security for their payment : ''1. The capital of the bank, equal in amount to the bonds. " 2. The sinking fund, which will efiect its object in fourteen years. '' 3. The property of the stockholders, originally appraised at three millions, with its increased value. " 4. The faith and credit of the Territory and State of Florida." These are the terms of the contract proposed to and accepted by the purchasers of the Florida bonds. What is there here to warrant the inference that the government of the United States could directly or remotely be held liable for their payment ? It is amazing that, with this contract so explicit, and in the hands of the claimants, they should set up this claim ; and it is not less so that the learned coun- sel, who have appeared for her Majesty in this case, should advo- cate it before an intelligent tribunal. The faith of the Territory is pledged, which is, of course, the faith of the people of that Territory ; and they then pledge the faith of the same people when admitted as a State of the Union ; and the near approach of that event is held out as one of the advantages of the in- vestment. The prospectus proceeds to state that, "by direction of an act of Congress, a convention is now in session for the purpose of framing a constitution for Florida, and she will probably become a State this year." So that the purchasers of the bonds, in eflfect, ac- cepted as security for the debt the faith of the State, as well as that of the Territory. The purchasers of the bonds, therefore, perfectly un- derstood the nature and amount of the security which they received for their money ; and they moreover knew that the liability of the United States was not embraced in it ; and, unless it is the purpose of this commission to disregard contracts fairly made, and to declare the I t r M C< ll r( # OONVBNTION WITH OBEAT BBITAIK. 277 property of one person to belong to another, the umpire will be bound to decide that no sort of obligation devolves on the national govern- ment to pay these debts. If there were nothing else to be said on the flubjcct, the prospectus would be conclusive against the claim ; but besides this, I desire to call the attenfion of the umpire to the argument which I had the honor to deliver before the commissioners and umpire, and which will render further observations unnecessary. ;r 278 ADJUSTMENT OF CLAIMS UNDER THE Upham, United States Commiesioner : I have listened attentively to the arguments urged in this case, but haro been unable to see any just grounds on which the claim is based. To sustain the claim, one of two propositiouH must bo maintained — either that the act of the Territory of Florida pledging her credit, originally bound the United States ; or, that Congress subsequently approved and sanctioned the law of the Territory, so as to make it obligatory on the whole people of the Union. I. Could the Territory of Florida bind the United States originally by her acts? This depends entirely on the power vested in her as a government. Florida had been originally colonized by Spain, and had long been subject to her authority. It was ceded by that power to the United States, on the 22d of February, 1819, with a provision that it " should be incorporated into the Union as soon as should be consistent with the principles of the federal Constitution." The power of holding Territories is evidently given to the general government. The Constitution of the United States provides that Congress shall have power ''to make all needful rules and regulations respecting its Territories. ' ' The course of proceeding by Congress in such cases has been to constitute, within any given Territory, whenever the number of inhabitants will justify it, a territorial government, with power to establish its own laws, subject only to such reservations and restric- tions as are specifically named in the charter bestowed upon it. The governor of Territories has been uniformly appointed by the President of the United States ; and, in some instances, for a short time, a territorial council has been appointed in the same manner, having the usual powers and authority of a legislature. A council was appointed in this manner in Florida, until 1826, when it was provided that the inhabitants should elect their territorial conncil or, in other words, their legislature, annually. By the act constituting the Territory of Florida, the governor was invested with the powers of a chief executive magistrate ; and the council, or legislature, was authorized, in express terms, "to legislate on all rightful subjects of legislation," provided that its laws were CONVBNTION WITH QREAT BRITAIN. 279 to be reported to Congreg« annually, and "if they wore disapproved by Congress, they were thenceforth to be of no force." Under the authority thus conferred, courtB were establiHhed having the highest civil and criminal jurisdiction ; and her own laws, within her own jurisdiction, subject only to the Constitution of the United Htates and the negative of Congress, constituted the supremo laws of the Territory. Florida exercised under this charter all the ordinary powers of a government. She regulated her own policy, assessed her own taxes, granted numerous acts of incorporut'on, and established various insti- tutions deemed essential to her welfare and prosperity, until 1835, whc|||6he passed the acts under which the indebtedness of the Terri- tory was incurred. Can the United States be said to have enacted either of these laws, or to be holden, as a government, responsible for the payment of the obligations created by them? No evidence has been shown to sustain such a proposition, and no theory of government countenances it. Various suggestions have been thrown out as bearing on this point, to which we propose to advert. One suggestion which has been made is : That the Governor of Flo- rida was appointed by the President of the United States. In like manner the governors of every province of Great Britain aro appointed by the crown ; but it was never understood that such pro- vinces had not full power of enacting valid, binding laws, within their constituted sphere of action, to the same extent as other governments. It is wholly immaterial^ in this respect, how the chief executive mag- istrate of a province, or the other branches of its government, are ap- pointed. When constituted, they form the government of the province, with the ordinary rights, duties, and powers of a government. One of the very least of ^hese powers is the capacity to contract debts in aid of the functions for which it was constituted. Each government possesses this power as one of its attributes, in common with every other public or private corporation, except so far as it may be expressly restricted in its exercise by some organic or other law, and no such law is here intimated or pretended. Anotner suggestion made is : That the laws of Florida might he dis' a'pproved by the general government. But this does not make the laws of the Territory the laws of the 280 ADJUSTMENT OF CLAIMS UNDER THE Union, or bind the Union to the obligations they impose. Such laws, when approve(l_, only operate on the people of Florida. They have no power beyond her limits. If disapproved, they are a mere nullity. The power of approval of colonial laws before they take effect has al- ways existed in the crown of Great Brit.iiu from her earliest territo- rial acquisitions, and in every other government having colonies or subordinate possessions. The laws made by the colonies are, notwith- standing, their own laws, and havo never been liolden to bind the mother country. The capability of incurring debts tor certain objects ordinarily ex- ists in parishes, towns, cities, counties, &c.; and though they may be under the control of the general government, their contracts, aiid the debts incurred by them, are nevertheless their own. A different doc- trine would confound all principles of just and accurate responsibility, and would seriously impair the advantages devised, througti a variety of subordinate organizations, to secure the essential ends of good gov- ernment. ' Again it is said : That the lands belonging to the United States within the territory of Florida were not liable to be taxed. This is so. The public lands, however, of the United States are graduated at a price best calculated to insure their rapid settlement, and they become at once liable to taxation on their being sold and im- proved. The same policy exists in other governments. Public lands and public property are nowhere taxed ; but such an exemption was never construed to render the general government liable for the debts of any town, county, or province within which such lands or property might be situated. It has been also said, and numerous authorities have been cited to the point : That the original power of the general government over the pvhlic territory was absolute and unlimited. So the people of the United States had originally unlimited po^jer to adopt the form of govern- ment they preferred ; and they may still change and modify their Con- stitution at pleasure, but this does not alter the facts as to the binding character of the acts of the government when once established. The United States has chosen to extend to her Territories, in the outset, the right of self-government, and has intrusted them, as in the case of Florida, with powers "to act in all rightful subjects of CONVENIION WITH GREAT BRITAIN. 281 legislation." This power once granted is complete. From thirteen original States, the Union has thus extended to thirty-one States, formed mostly from new Territories, each of which is wholly indepen- dent of the other, as to the contracts and liabilities they may make, and the legislation they may adopt, saving only their obligation to the general Constitution of the Union. The government of a Terri- tory does not depend so fully and perfectly on the action of its own people as that of the individual States, but its laws, once enacted and not disapproved, have precisely the same binding power and efficacy, within its limits, as those of a State. No one of these suggestions to which we have adverted, or the whole combined, tend to show that the acts^ Florida are the acts of the general government, or that her responsibilities are the responsibilities of the American people. II. It remains to consider the second point raised, whether Congress subsequently approved and sanctioned the local law of Florida, so as to make it a provision binding generally on the people of the Union. It is not contended that this local law was adopted, or liability in- curred by any direct act of the general government assuming the debt. It is said, however, that the government has rendered itself liable for its payment, because she admitted Florida into the Union as a State without first compelling her to make payment of these debts. The argument proceeds on the ground, that the United States can- not admit a portion of its Territory into the Union while in debt, without becoming responsible for such indebtedness. It asserts, in substance, the principle that whenever the government has it in its power, by the conditional denial of any privilege, to compel a Terri- tory to make payment of a debt, it must insist on such compulsion, or it shall be holden to have assumed such debt. This is a new responsibility imposed on governments. It is quite clear to me, on the other hand^ that the United States might well assume the positioo that she had nothing to do with the contracts, between her Territories and individuals, and that it is not a part of her duty to constitute herself into a judicial tribunal to pass upon the pecuniary relations existing between them. Florida might well contend that this should not be done, and that she will not be dictated to, or interfered with, by the United States on the subject. But this point is put still stronger. It is said that a provision was inserted into the constitution of Florida^ preparatory to her admission * Jm 282 ADJUSTMENT OF CLAIMS UNDER THE as a State, ''that no other or greater amount of tax or revehue shall at any time be levied, than may be required for the necessary expenses of government," and it is contended that this provision expressly pro- hibits the payment of any prior existing debt ; and, that the United States, by admitting Florida into the Union, with such a clause in her constitution, became accessory to the wrong done, and should be holden responsible for it. But this is a far-fetched construction of the clause in question, and forms altogether too remote a claim to impose a legal pecuniary liability. The most necessary expenses of a govern- ment are the payment of its obligations as they fall due. It can hardly be pretended, if u tax should be assessed by the State of Florida upon its citizens to raise funds to meet such uoligatioH, that an individual could resist payment of such tax on the ground that it was unconstitutional. No court would give such a construction to this provision of the Constitution, and unless we hold that such would necessarily be the decision of the court, then the objection is without foundation^ and constitutes no ground for the assertion that the United States, by admitting Florida into the Union with this provision, should be held to have assumed the debts of the Territory. But whether such be the interpretation of the clause in the Consti- tution or not, the inference attempted to be drawn from it would not follow. If Florida has repudiated her debts for any cause, it was her act, and it was not incumbent on the United States to compel her, by any denial of the ordinary right of admission into the Union, to pay such debts. She had no more rightful control over the acts of a Ter- ritory so situated, than she had over a State. The creditors of the Territory had no power, either legal or moral, to interpose any such bar to her admission. It is not a remedy for coercing the payment of debts which was contemplated by any party to the contract when entered into. The United States, therefore, violated no principle of law, or equity, or moral obligation in admitting Florida into the Union, and is guilty of no laches for which she should be holden responsible in not disap- proving the acts passed by her as a Territory. The several States and Territories are independent sovereignties for the ordinary purposes of local government. They have the power over the liberty and lives of their citizens, and the formation of their own civil and social relations within their precinct. CONVENTION WITH GREAT BRITAIN. 283 They can incur obligations for all expenditures coming within their appropriate sphere as fully as the general government. Their delin- quencies in any matter, coming within the range of their powers, are their own ; and, however grievous a wrong they may inflict by such delinquencies on their creditors, the precedent of holding the general government responsible for such wrong, would be still more disas- trous. It would impose burdens on individuals having no immediate share or interest in the benefit received ; would constitute taxation without representation, and would confound the necessary and right- ful distinctions in the partition of responsibility and accountability essential for the maintenance of government. T^e wrong complained of is not one which can be charged against the United States ; she is not amenable for it, and a proper apprecia- tion of the distinct agencies of different organizations in government will fully exonerate the United States from the claim set up in this case. In my view, therefore, the claimants have shown no ground entitling them to recovery against the general government. . I i I i ^84 ADJUSTMENT OF CLAIMS UNDER THE Hornby, British Commissioner : This is a claim advanced by certain holders of bonds issued by the government of the Territory of Florida, in the year 1833, payment of which is now claimed against the United States government, under the convention of the 8th of February, 1853. It appears that Florida was ceded, under a treaty, by Spain to the United States, in the year 1819, and the United States assumed the sovereignty as the crown of Spain had held it, and also became pos- sessed of such part of the land as had belonged to the crown, not merely in sovereignty, but as the possessors in absolute ownership. By the sixth article of the treaty, it was arranged that the inhabitants of the Territory should be incorporated in the Union as soon as was consistentwibh the principles of the federal Constitution and admitted to all the privileges and rights of citizens of the United States. Pre- vious, however, to its admission as a State of the Union, the territorial government appointed by Congress incurred certain liabilities ; and the question we have now to consider is the position of the federal government, under the circumstances to which I shall presently allude, with regard to these debti. To do this effectually, it will be necessary, in the first place to ex- amine the nature of the government of the Territory of Florida, and its relation to the federal government of the United States. The vast tracts of country belonging to the United States not com- prised within the limits of the several States of the Union, are subject to the absolute government of Congress. An exclusive and unlimited power of legislation for these Territories is conferred upon Congress by the Constitution, and has been sanctioned by repeated decisions of the United States courts. So complete is dominion of Congress over the Territories, that it has even excited anxiety in the minds of eminent Americans, as being inconsistent in spirit with the republican insti- tutions of the country. Chancellor Kent has the following observa- tions on this subject. "It would seem from these various congressional regulations of the Territories belonging to the United States that Congress have supreme power in the government of them, depending on the exercise of their sound discretion. That discretion has hitherto been exercised in wis- dom and good faith, and with an anxious regard for the security of CONVENTION WITH GREAT BRITAIN. 286 the rights and privileges of the inhahitants, as defined and declared in the ordinance of July, 1*78*7, and in the Constitution of the United States. 'All admit,' said Chief Justice Marshall, * the constitution- ality of a territorial government.' But neither the District of Col- umbia nor a Territory is a State with "a the meaning of the Constitu- tion, nor entitled to claim the privileges secured to the members of the Union. This has been so adjudged by the Supreme Court. Nov will a writ of error or appeal lie from a territorial court to the Supreme Court, unless there be a special statute provision for the purpose. If, therefore, the government of the United States should carry into execution the project of colonizing the great valley of the Columbia, or Oregon river, to the west of the Rocky mountains, it would afford a subject of grave consideration what would be the future civil and political destiny of that country. It would be a long time before it would be populous enough to be created into one or more independent States ; and in the mean time, upon the doctrine taught by the acts of Congress, and even by the judicial decisions of the Supreme Court, the colonists would be in a state of the most complete subordination, and as dependent upon the will of Congress as the people of this country would have been upon the king and Parliament of Great Britain if they could have sustained their claim to bind in all cases what- soever. Such a state of absolute sovereignty on the one hand, and of absolute dependence on the other, is not congenial with the free and independent spirit of our native institutions ; and the establishment of distant territorial governments, ruled according to will and plea- sure, would have a very natural tendency, as all proconsular govern- ment have had, to abuse and oppression." Mr. Justice Story, in his "Commentaries on the Constitution," sec. 1328, says : " The power of Congress over the public territory is clearly exclu- sive and universal, and their legislation is subject to no control, but is absolute and unlimited, unless so far as it is affected by stipulations in the cessions, or by the ordinance of 178*7, under which any part of it has been settled." Not only, however, does the right oi government belong to Congress, but the United States also own the soil of the immense tracts of unsettled lands throughout the Territories, and the funds derived from the sale of these lands are at the absolute disposal of the national government, 286 ADJUSTMENT OF CLAIMS UNDER THE and are applied to national purposes. ''The Constitution," says Chancellor Kent,* " gave to Congress the power to dispose of and make all needful rules and regulations respecting the territory or other property belonging to the United States, and to admit new States into the Union. Since the Constitution was formed, the value and efficiency of this power have been magnified to an incalculable extent by the purchase of Louisiana and Florida ; and, under the doctrine con- tained in the cases I have referred to. Congress have a large and magnificent portion of territory under their absolute control and dis- posal. This immense property has become national and productive stock, and Congress, in the administration of this slock, have erected temporary governments under the provisions of the ordinance of Con- gress, under the confederation, and under the constitutional power." " On the other hand," says Mr. Justice Story,t " the public lands hold out, after the discharge of the national debt, ample revenues, to be devoted to the cause of education and sound learning, and to internal improvements, without trenching upon the property or embarrassing the pursuits of the people by burdensome taxation. The constitutional objection to the appropriation of the other revenues of the government to such objects has not been supposed to apply to an appropriation of the proceeds of the public lands. The cessions of territory were expressly made for the common benefit of the United States, and therefore constitute a fund which may be properly devoted to any objects with and for the common benefit of the Union." In a word, the Territories are declared, by the third section of the fourth article of the Constitution, to be the " property" of the United States, and as such are placed under the absolute disposal of Congress. | Congress might, if it so pleased, govern the various Territories directly and without the intervention of any local machinery ; and it does in fact so govern the District of Columbia, which is in the same situation as the Territories. In so governing Columbia, it has been held by judicial decision that Congress does not act merely as the gov- ernment of that District, but as the government of the whole Union ; and the same rule is applicable to the government of the Territories. § It is, however, impossible for Congress to govern all its many and •1 Kent, 376. I Const, art. iv % div. 2. t Story on the Constitution, sec. 1327. § State r. New Orleans Nav. Co., 11 Martin 313. * Atto t Seei { 7 La CONVENTION WITH GREAT BRITAIN. 287 distant Territories directly in the same way that it governs Columbia. It is, therefore, compelled to delegate its authority to officers appointed for the purpose ; it reserves to itself, however, the full power, not only of repealing, modifying, or altering the acts of the local and tempo- rary government which it may have erected, but it may " at any time abrogate and remodel the legislature itself, and all the other depart- ments of the territorial government."* I have thought it necessary to go thus fully into the nature of the relations of the Territories to the federal government, and to quote in extemo the language used by the most eminent American authori- ties on constitutional law with reference to this subject, because the learned United States agent has relied chiefly, in his argument, on the assertion (for which, however, he has given no authority) that the territorial government was "as sovereign within its sphere as the United States or any other State." It is evident, however, from the passages I have cited, supported by numerous judicial decisions, that the territorial government has no attribute of sovereignty, but is at all times, even when acting within the sphere of the powers conceded to it, subject to the authority and control of Congress. f In the exercise of the unlimited powers belonging to it. Congress established in 1822 a territorial government in Florida,| consisting of a governor, assisted by a legislative council, appointed by the Presi- dent of the United States. The powers of the governor and council extended to all rightful subjects of legislation ; but the condition was imposed that all laws should be submitted annually to Congress for its approval, and that, if disapproved, they should thenceforth be of no tbrce. In 1826 an alteration§ was made in tlie mode of appointing the legislative council, which was made elective, but in other respects the territorial government remained the same. From an early period in its existence the territorial government created a great number of corporations for various public purposes. The laws establishing these corporations were duly submitted to Con- gress ; some of them were disallowed, while others were permitted to pass, after having been the subject of discussion in that body. Amongst those acts of incorporation, which were the special subject * Attorney Oeneral Butler, Opinions of United States Attorneys General, p. 1006. t See the judgment of Mr. Senator Sharman, Williams v. Bank of Michigan, 7 Ward 554. I 7 Laws U. S. 16. § 7 Laws U. S. 470. -dfe 288 ADJUSTMENT OF GLAIHS UNDER THE of consideration in Congress, was the one establishing the "Union Bank of Florida," (1833.) This act, however, though declared hj a committee of the Senate to contain some objectionable provisions, was permitted to pass without amendment. It is not necessary to trace the action of Congress on this and the various other charters granted by the territorial legislature, because it is not, and could not be, denied that Congress has, in the most com- plete manner, authorized and ratified the various acts of the territo- rial legislature relating to the corporations whose bonds are now before us, and the discussion has entirely turned upon the extent to which Congress is affected by having given such authority and ratification. Let us now see what was done nnder the " Union Bank" charter. The object of this and the various other acts of incorporation appears to have been to obtain the introduction of capital into the Territory for the general public benefit. In the case qi the Pensacola Bank bonds, the object was to construct a railroad which, it >ias thought, would be advantageous to the Territory. For similar public purposes the " Union Bank" was empowered to raise a certain capital by meam of a loan on the faith of the Territory. The mode of carrying this out is thus prescribed by the act of incorporation : '' To facilitate the negotiation by said bank for the said loan of one millioa of dollars,* the faith of the Territory is hereby pledged for the security of the capital and interest, and that one thousand bonds of $1,000 each — viz: 250 bonds payable in twenty-six years ; 250 bonds payable in twenty-eight years, and 250 bonds payable in thirty years, «nd bearing interest at a rate not exceeding six per cent, per annum — shall bo furnished to the order of the 'Union Bank of Florida,' signed by the governor and countersigned by the treasurer, and under the seal of the Territory. Such bonds to be in the following words : ' One thou- sand dollars. Know all men by these presents, that the Territory of Florida acknowledges to be indebted to the Union Bank of Florida in the sum of $1,000, which sum the said Territory promises to pay in lawful money to the United States, to the order of the president, direc- tors, and company of said bank, on the day of , 18 — , with interest at the rate of per annum, payable half-yearly, at the place named in the endorsement hereon, viz : on the day of , and on the day of of every year until the repayment of the • Gilpin, 14. GONVBMTION WITH GREAT BRITAIN. 289 said principal sum. In testimony whereof, the governor of the Ter- •^'.tory of Florida hath signed, and the treasurer has countersigned, Lnese presents, and caused the seal of the Territory to he affixed thereto, at Tallahassee, this day of , in the year . , gover- nor ; , treasurer. (Seal.) The said honds may he transfer- able by the endorsement of the president and of the cashier of the said bank^ to the order of any person whomsoever or to the bearer, and the said endorsement shall fix the place where the said principal and interest shall be paid.' " Several series of bonds, in the form prescribed by the charter, wer» issued in America and elsewhere. The greater numl^r were negotiated in London, and the present claimants, amongst^hers, advanced their money on the security of the bonds which are now the subject of consideration. Up to the 1st July, 1841, the interest on the bonds was duly paid at the times and places appointed ; but from that date to the present time no payment whatever has been made on account of them, and the corporations have become completely insolvent. Upon this, payment of the interest on the bonds was sought to be obtained from the terri- torial government, in accordance with the terms of the bonds ; but the claim was refused, and in 1842 the territorial legislature passed reso- lutions declaring that the governor and counsel were " never invested with authority to pledge the faith of the Territory so as to render the citizens responsible for the debts or engagements of any corporation chartered by the territorial legislature." The revenue laws of the Territory were also suspended, " so far as they authorized the assess- ment and collection of a territorial revenue in future," Avith certain specific exceptions. These acts of the territorial legislature were sub- mitted to Congress, and were permitted to pass into law without dis- approval. ' From this time, then, until the admission of Florida into the Union as a State, the territorial legislature persisted in its repudiation of the engagments contracted on the bonds ; and although the subject WHS repeatedly brought before Congresj in various ways — in some cases by memorial of the bondholders praying for relief — no action of Congress took place, and the bondholders remained without redress. Let us pause for a moment to consider what the position of the 19 290 ADJUSTMENT OF CLAIMS UNDER THE bondholder^) and Congress would have been had the faetH already stated constituted the whole case. The bondholders advanced their money on an engagement entered into by the agents duly constituted by Congress for the government of the Territory, for the payment of money by the Territory ; such en- gagement being sanctioned by Congress^ its acquiescence in the passing of the bank act having induced the public, in the language of Mr. Chancellor Kent, to invest property and make contracts upon the faith and validity of the charter. The Territory acknowledged itself to be indebted in the amount of the bonds, and the ''faith of the Territory" was pledged for the repayment. Now, what is the meaning of a Ter- ritory or State acknowledging itself to owe a debt, and pledging its faith for the liquidation of it ? It plainly meatfli this — or it means nothing : that the governing power engages that the revenue, re- sources, and property of the Territory or State are pledged for the debt, and shall be applied to its discharge. In other words, an obligation was created on the part of Florida by the executive, as the agent of the sovereign power, and by the legislature, as the agent of the people, which was sanctioned by Congress, to pay the debt ; that obligation, in fact, operating on all the property of the Territory of Florida. It has been already shown that the government of the Territory "was at the absolute disposal of the United States, (represented by Con- gress,) in whom the right of eminent domain was vested, and that Congress assented in the fullest manner to the pledge which was given by the territorial government. There was, then, an engagement to apply the resources of the Territory for the payment of a debt incur- red with the assent of the sovereign power. Upon this state of facts it is obvious that, if those principles of equity which are binding on individuals be applicable to States, it became the duty of Congress to see that the funds which it had permitted to be pledged should be ap- plied to the discharge of the debts they were intended to secure, and the bondholders were entitled to call upon the United States govern- ment to cause those funds to be applied to their relief, or to indemnify them from loss arising from the failure to do so. The duty of thus protecting the interests of the bondholders was the more incumbent on Congress from the fact that, by reason of its being the owner of by far the greater portion of the soil of the Terri- CONVENTION WITH GREAT BRITAIN. 291 tory, it was the party most benefited by the introduction of the bond- holders' capital into the Territory. But if the position of the bondholders was such ns I have stated it to have been while Florida continued a Territory, it will be found that their claim assumed an entirely new form, and acquired immeasurably more force, from the moment that the Territory was admitted to the Union as an independent State. This admission took place on March 3, 1845. ,- By the second section of the eighth article of the constitution of the new State, which received the assent of Congress, it was declared that " no other or greater amount of tax or revenue shall at any time be levied than may be required for the necesssary expenses of govern- ment." ^' By the introduction of this clause into the constitution. Congress appears to have designed to lend efffjct to the repudiating resolutions of the territorial legislature, to which it had already given its assent. It has^ indeed, been denied, in the course of the argument, that this clause was intended to have, or had, the effect of preventing the State from raising revenue in order to pay the debts of the Territory ; but if any doubt could exist on this point, it must be removed by the fact that those best able to judge of the meaning of the constitution of Florida, and having the power to enforce its own interpretation — viz : the legislature of the State — have declared that they are precluded by the article of the constitution in question from levying any tax to provide for the payment of the interest or principal of these bonds, or from entering on any consideration of the question at all. It was then, when Congress admitted the insertion of this clause with a full knowledge of the injustice it would work, that the power to pay was taken away from, the State that was then being called into existence. But tfAs was not all ; for the power which had hitherto been vested in Congress by virtue of its very sovereignty, whenever it chose to exercise it, to compel a Territory to observe the obligation of a con- tract, or to do that which it was legally and morally bound to do, was also divested by the change thus effected in the form of the govern- ment of Florida. And by whom, if not by Congress, which, first, by its acquiescence in the law establishing the bank, and, secondly, by the permission granted to its agents to pledge the faith of the Terri- tory over which it had a sovereign and complete authority, had in- m III 292 ADJUSTMENT OF CLAI1I8 UNDER THE duccd these loans upon the proniise of repayment by the Territory, which repayment, with full knowledge of the insolvency of the cor- porations and the immediate pressing liability of the Territory, it has thus rendered impossible? The argument of the United States agent has been directed to show that the Territory alone was originally liable on these bonds, and that that liability has been transferred to the State. It is due to the learned counsel to say that nothing could be more candid and com- plete than his disavowal of those doctrines of repudiation which the territorial legislature i)ropoundcd, and he states a very confident hope that the public opinion of America will compel the State of Florida to do justice to the present claimants. But by whose act is it that the bondholders have only that prospective operation of public opinion to look to for their relief? It being conceded, then, that the Territory owed the debt, it follows that it was legally bound to pay it. The Territory in its corporate capacity was the debtor, and might have been sued before a competent tribunal. Whether any of the ordinary courts of law in the United States could have entertained the claim, I am not able to say. The opinion of an American jurist has indeed been produced, to the efiect that the Territory could have been sued in the United States courts ; but it is immaterial to consider this point, for whether it be so or not. Congress, the sovereign power, had undoubtedly the right and the means of compelling the Territory to discharge its obligations. There was, then, a competent tribunal before which the Territory could be summoned, and by which it might have been adjudged to pay its debts. It matters not, in principle, whether that tribunal was one of the ordinary judicial ones or not. All judicial authority is but the exercise of the sovereign power directed to tho object of securing that right be done within its jurisdiction. Where a direct appeal to the sovereign power is proper, it ought to be, and is, as efficient a means of obtaining the redress of a grievance as an appeal to the ordinary court of judicature. Such an appeal, under the name of a petition of right, is, in this country, the established mode of administering jus- tice where the crown is the party complained against. It cannot be presumed that an appeal to Congress, to compel its dependencies to perform the contracts it liad authorized them to enter into, would have been either inoperative or valueless. CONVENTION WITH GREAT BRITAIN. 293 While, then, Florida remained n Territory, the ineann exinted ol" compelling it to perform the contrnctH entered into in its name ; hnt from the moment that it became u State the creditors of the former Territory were depriv. 1 of all means whatever of enforcinj!, t' oir just demands. For the 8tat6 of Florida, to whotr it is said the del)ts of the Terri- tory have been truriHforred, cannot be sued by the creditors ; for the Constitution cxprcsslv oiiacts that no Htato can be sued in the United States courts, and of course u State cannot be sued in its own courts. Nor can Congress compel Florida to pay its debts ; for it is an inde- pendent State, and cannot be coerced by the others, either singly or collectively, into doing even that which is its duty. And, lastly, not only has Congress, by admitting Florida as a State, deprived the creditors of the means of enforcing their rights, but it has bestowed upon the State a Constitution which actually prevents it from paying its debts. It is a mockery, under these circumstances, to refer the bondholders to the State as their debtor. What difference is there in principle between confiscating a debt, and rendering it impossible that payment can be enforced on the one hand, or voluntarily conceded on the other ? It is not for individuals to pronounce an opinion on the policy of the United States in thus starting one of its children, in its political man- hood, incapacitated from discharging the debts which it had incurred during infancy for its own and its parent's benefit. There may have been better reasons than I am acquainted with for relieving the State of Florida from the burden of the obligations created by the Territory ; but it has long been a settled principle of legislation in all civilized nations, that no public advantage is to be attained by the destruction of private interests, without compensation being made to the individ- uals injured. If it was for the general good that the inhabitants of Florida should not be taxed alone for the payment of money advanced to their former government, justice imperatively requires that the re- payment of the money should be provided for from national sources. It has, indeed, been suggested that, as it is in the power of the State of Florida at some future time to change its constitution, so as to enable it to raise revenue for the payment of these bonds, it cannot be said that the bondholders are deprived of a remedy. But we have \ ! 0i m 294 ADJUSTMENT OF CLAIMS UNDER THE IJ^ to deal with the case upon existing facts, and not upon possible though highly improbable contingencies. Such an argument would equally apply, if the claim were a direct one upon the United States, and payment had been rendered impossible by a clause in the United States Constitution. Or sujipose that an article of the union between England and Ireland had been inserted prejudicial to the existing in- terests of an American citizen, would it be a valid answer for the gov- ernment of the United Kingdom to say that the imperial Parliament might possibly at a future period repeal the obnoxious clause, and restore the United States citizen to his former position ? The debt, then, is at present practically confiscated. This is the wrong which is complained of, and we have to determine whether it is one for which the United States is answerable. The possibility of a better state of public opinion inducing the inhabitants of Florida at some future time to remodel their constitution, so as to rescind the ex- isting confiscation, cannot aifect the rights and liabilities arising out of the present state of facts. The principal arguments advanced in opposition to the claim, which I have not already incidentally adverted to, are these : 1. That Congre&s, having only the powers enumerated by the Con- stitution, can do no more than is to be found within that document,^ and that the power to pay the debts of a Territory is not sjiecified or to be implied. 2. That Congress has not the power of rejecting the clause of the constitution of the proposed State of Florida which forbade the col- lecting of revenue for any other purpose than the necessary expenses of government, but that it was bound to admit the new State with this clause in its constitution, however objectionable it may be. The first of these objections tends to raise a discussion on a point which has long been definitively settled in the United States. In the first place, it assumes the whole question at issue in this case. If the United States have, by the acts of Congress, incurrec' an obligation to indemnify the present claimants, then a debt has arit.en^ acd Congress has express power to levy taxes in order to pay its debts. I presume that it is not necc^siry to show by argument that a tech- nical meaning is not to be attached to the word debts, but that it signifies any pecuniary claim, whether for a sum certain or for un- liquidated damages. But, secondly, the Constitution only prescribes t a CONVENTION WITH GREAT BRITAIN. 296 , point the purposes for which taxes, &c., are to be levied ; it is wliolly silent as to tlie appropriation of national funds arising from other sources, such as the sale of public lands ; and it has been shown that this is a source of revenue which is peculiarly proper to be applied to the relief of the present claimants. And , lastly, the Constitution has never been construed in the United States in the narrow spirit in which it is now sought to interpret it. It is fully established by Mr. Justice Story, in his "Commentaries on the Constitution," bookS, ch. 14, that Congress hp.s full i)ower to apply the funds of the nation, from whatever source derived, to all purposes which tliey may deem na- tional. That learned writer concludes his remarks with these words: "In regard to the practice of government^ it has been entirely in con- formity to these principles. Appropriations have never been limited by Congress to cases falling within the specific powers enumerated in the Constitution, whether those powers be construed in their broad or narrow sense. And in an especial manner appropriations have been made to aid internal improvements of various sorts, in our roads, our navigation, our streams, and other objects of a national character and importance. In some cases, not silently but upon discussion. Con- gress has gone the length of making appropriations to aid destitute foreigners and cities laboring under severe calamities, as in the relief of the St. Domingo refugees in 1794, and the citizens of Venezuela, who suffered from an earthquake in 1812. ' ' So also in the case of three cities in Columbia — Washington, Georgetown, and Alexandria — Con- gress assumed the debt which these cities had incurred, and for the liquidation of which their public faith had been pledged; and the Secretary of the Treasury wa3 ordered to pay it. It is a misapprehension of the power of Congress to suppose that it was bound to admit the Territory of Florida to the Union without any discretion as to the terms upon which the admission was to take place. The time and mode of admission were entirely for Congress to deter- mine. Mr. Justice Story, in his "Commentaries," sec. 1321, shows that precedents and judicial decisions " have established the rightful authority of Congress to impose restrictions upon the admission of new States." But, without citing authorities, it is obvious that Con- gress cannot be regarded as having merely administrative functions on such admission, to record the event without control over it. It ■ >i > ii at m > *! 206 ADJUSTMENT OF CLAIMS UNDER THE would be powerless to discharge the most important of its functions as the guardian of the national interests, if it were bound to admit every new State, with any constitution its inhabitants might think fit to propose for themselves, however inconsistent it might be with the general welfare of the Union, with private morality, or with public honor. It will not be necessary to examine the history of the "Pensacola Bank" and the *' Southern Life Assurance Company," whose obli- gations were also guarantied by the territorial government. As against that government, the claim of the holders of the Pensacola Bank bonds is strengthened by the circumstance that that company gave the territorial government very considerable security on real and personal property against the liability which was incurred by pledging the public faith. The claim, however, as against the United States government, is the same in each case. I am of opinion, therefore, upon these facts, that the United States government is bound to pay to the British subjects hereunder enume- rated the principal of the bonds of which they are the holders, when the same shall become due, and to pay to them forthwith the arrears of interest on such bonds, with interest at five per cent, on such arrears, up to the 14th September, 1854, amounting in the whole to the sum set opposite their names. L CONVENTION WITH GREAT BRITAIN. 297 Bates, Umpire: This claim has been brought before the commissioners by the hold- ers of bonds issued by the "Territory of Florida/' while it was under a territorial government, and before Florida was admitted into the Union as one of the States of the United States. At the time of the issue of the bonds in question, the Territory was governed by a legislative council chosen by the people, the governor being appointed by the President of the United States. All the acts or laws of the legislative council were required, by the law of the United States, to be laid before Congress, and if not disapproved of, they became law in Florida. For one portion of these bonds, the claimants contended that, by the right which Congress claimed to reject or veto any law passed by the legislative council of Florida, the United States government ren- dered itself liable to pay the interest and principal of these bonds, should Florida fail to do so. For another portion of the bonds, the claim on this ground was abandoned, and their claim rvas based on the fact, that the United States had, in the session of Congress of 1843-'44, admitted Florida into the Union with a constitution having the following clause in it : *'No greater amount of tax or revenue shall at any time be levied than may be required for the necessary expenses of government. ' ' — {Artide 8 of Florida constitution.) The first ground of claim need hardly be treated seriously ; it might as well be contended that the British government is responsible for all the Canada debentures, because all the acts passed by the Canadian parliament require the sanction of the home government before they became laws. It will be seen, however, that at the time these bonds were bought it was never imagined by the buyers that the United States were in any way liable. With regard to the second ground of claim— that the United States, by having admitted Florida into the Union as a State, with the article in her constitution above referred to, were rendered liable to pay the debts of Florida — it may be remarked, that Congress could not justly refuse to admit Florida into the Union with such a constitution; there was nothing in it contrary or in violation of the Constitution of the United States ; Congress had only the power to fix the time of tri V^ ,.; ■ Si 298 ADJUSTMENT OF CLAIMS UNDER THE admission, and reject any constitution that was contrary to the Consti- tution of the United States ; nor does it appear that the hondholders are in any way damaged by this article in the constitution of Florida. If the people of Florida refused to pay or neglected to pay, as a Territory, would they be more likely to pay as a State? There would be the same people to deal with ; the members of the convention that formed the constitution were chosen by the people ; and the legisla- ture, chosen by the people, would not bo likely to bo very different from the convention. It is by no moans clear that the eighth article of tlie constitution forbids any taxes for liquidating the liabilities of the State ; and if that be so, there is no difficulty in amending the constitution. Most of the States have amended their constitutions from time to time. The bondholders have the same remedy against the State as they had against the Territory ; they have a just claim. But they are under the well known disadvantage in both cases — they could not sue the Territory, they cannot sue the State. It has been urged that there is no way of getting at a State govern- ment except through the government of the United States ; this is a mistake. There is no difficulty in the way of individuals dealing with the separate States in any matters that concern the State alone ; nearly all the States have public works and contract loans with individuals, American and foreign, and any person aggrieved may petition the governor or legislature for relief. A State cannot deal with a foreign government ; the intercourse with foreign nations belongs to the gen- eral government. To show that the Florida bondholders never supposed the United States in any way responsible, attention is called to the prospectus issued by the agents for the sale of the bonds created for the ''Union Bank;" it is as follows : ' Florida six per cent, sterling bonds — Interest and principal payable at the house of Messrs. Palmers, MacKillop, Dent, & Co. ''These are the bonds of the Territory of Florida, payable to the order of the Union Bank of Florida, and endorsed by the bank. They are in sums of one thousand dollars each, bearing interest at the rate of six per cent, per annum, payable half yearly ; the interest and principal payable in London, at the rate of 4«. ^d. sterling per dollar. The bonds are payable on the 1st of January, 1862, 1864, 1866, and CONVENTION WITH GREAT BRITAIN. 299 1868. The proceeds of the sale of the bonds form an addition to the active capital of the Union Bank. The bank commenced business on the 16th of January, 1835, with a capital of one million of dollars, with a privilege of incieasing it to three millions ; and it is to com- plete that increase of capital that these bonds are to be sold. The profits of tlic bank, alter paying interest of bonds and expenses of management, are retained to accumulate as a sinking fund, until that fund shall be equal in amount to the bonds issued. " On the 1st January, 1839, upon a bank capital of one million of dollars, the amount of the sinking fund exceeded three hundred thou- sand dollars. Owing to peculiar circumstances the profits of the past year have been very large ; but previous experience has proved that, in ordinary years, (after paying the interest of its capital and the ex- pense of management,) the annual surplus profits of the bank (which will be adtlcd to the sinking fund) will exceed four per cent. ; which annuity, compounded at the bank interest at 8t per cent., will cause the sinking fund to effect its object in fourteen years. Indeed, the present amount of that fund, compounded at the bank interest, would pay off the whole $3,000,000 of bonds in twenty-eight years, without any aid from the future annual profits of the bank — the average ma- turity of the bonds being twenty-six years. "The capital of the bank, equal in amount to the bonds and the sinking fund, are l^o be retained and held as security for the repay- ment of the bonds. Another ample security for their payment is pro- vided by a mortgage of the property of the stockholders of the bank, to the extent of three millions of dollars. The value of the property mortgaged for that object was first ascertained by the appraisement, upon oath, of five commissioners in each county, appointed for that purpose by the governor and legislature of the Territory ; and these appraisements were again subjected to the revision of a board of twelve directors, of whom five are appointed by the governor and legislature. So great has been the rise in value of every kind of property in Forida, that the property mortgaged to the bank would, even now, sell for thrice the amount of the bonds, and each succeeding year necessarily enhances its value ; the holders of the bonds have therefore a fourfold security for their payment, viz : "1. The capital of the bank, equal in amount to the bonds. **2. The sinking fund, which will effect its object in fourteen years. i;i; 1;.' If 1. 1 300 ADJUSTMENT OF CLAIMS UNDEB THE "3. The property of the stockholders, originally appraised at three millions, with its increased value. ''4. The faith and credit of the Territory and State of Florida. " By the direction of an act of Congress a convention is now in session for the purpose of framing a constitution for Florida, and she will prohably become a State this year. " In extent of territory she will be the sixth State in the Union. Her soil and climate are adapted to the profitable productions of Sea Island and short staple cottons, sugar, rice, Cuba tobacco, indigo, cochineal, corn, and all the other agricultural staples of the southern States, as well as many of the productions of the West Indies. She is rapidly increasing in numbers and wealth. " Her export of cotton in the past year has exceeded 110,000 bags ; and, with her growth, is greatly extending. She possesses the only good harbors on a coast of near two thousand miles in the Gulf of Florida, which, with the contiguity of the West Indies, gives her great com- mercial advantages, and will insure her becoming a great commercial State." The securities enumerated in this document are four, and they were ample if honestly administered ; but not the slightest allusion is made to any liability of the United States, nor is there discoverable the smallest claim of the bondholders before this commission, which is constituted for the purpose of settling the claims of British subjects against the government of the United States, or of the citizens of the United States against the British government. The bondholders have a just claim on the State of Florida ; they have lent their money at a fair rate of interest, and the State is bound by every principle of honor to pay interest and principal ; and it is to be hoped that sooner or later the people of Florida will discover that honesty is the best policy ; and that no State can be called respectable that does not honorably fulfil its engagements. CONVENTION WITH GREAT BRITAIN. 301 GODFREY, PATTISON k CO. The second article of t)ie treaty of commerce of July 3« 1815, between the United States and Great Britain, provides " that no higher or other duties shall be imposed on the impor- tation into the United States of any articles, the growth, produce, or manufacture of his Brit- annic Majesty 's territories in Europe, than are, or shi^ll be, payable on the like articles, being the growth, produce, or manufacture of any other foreign country." The act of Congress, passed August 30, lti43, changed and modified the laws imposing duties on imports, so that the duties on cotton goods were nearly double those taxed by the prior statute. This act took effect two days after its passage, but provided, " that nothing in the act should apply to goods shipped in vessels bound to any port of the United States having actually left her last port of lading eastward of the Cape of Good Hope, or beyond Cape Horn, prior to the 1st of September, 1842." Held that the provision as to equality of duties on importations applied to the time of arrival of such goods for entry in the country, without reference to the time of shipment, and that so long as goods shipped from ports eastward of the Cape of Good Hope were received in this country at the former prescribed rate of duty, goods sliippcd from ports of other coun- tries, arriving within the same time, were entitled to enter at the same rate of duty. Where duties on goods were paid under protest, on the ground that a higher rate of duty was demanded than was authorized by the treaty of commerce t)etween the United States and Great Britain, the act itself having expressly provided " that nothing contained in it should conflict with that treaty ;" and immediate demand of repayment having been made through the minister of Great Britain at Washington, held that interest should be allowed on the amount wrongfully collected from the time of payment. The facts in the case will be found sufficiently set forth in the opin- ion delivered. HanneNj agent and counsel for Great Britain. Thomas, agent and counsel for the United States. * *. '■: !;■ S02 ADJUSTMENT OP CLAIMS UNDER THE The opinion of the board was delivered by Upiiam, United States Commissioner : This is a claim to recover back the amount of duties paid on certain cotton goods imported into New York and Boston, by the claimants, merchants of Glasgow, between the 29th of August, 1842, and the 13th of May, 1843, on the ground that the duties thus paid were as- sessed in violation of certain provisions in the treaty of commerce between the United States and Great Britain, of the 3d of July, 1815, and which has been subsequently renewed and continued in force to the present time. By the second article of that convention, it is provided "that no higher or other duties shall be imposed on the importation into the United States of any articles, the growth, produce, or manufacture of his Britannic Majesty's territories in Europe, than are or shall be payable on the like articles, being the growth, produce, or manufacture of any other foreign country." — (Latvs of the United States, vol. 8, p. 229, Peters's eel) It is contended that this provision of the treaty has been violated by the 25th section of the act of Congress, of the 30th of August, 1842, changing and modifying the laws imposing duties on imports. By that act, the duties on many articles were essentially changed, and those on cotton goods were very nearly doubled. It took effect, also, two days after its passage, so as to give no previous notice to those merchants who had shipments on the way, or had ordered goods for tliis i)urpose. It exempted, however, from its operation a certain class of shipments from remote places, apparently from the hardship of the case, without taking into consideration that it was equally im- possible to communicate with Liverpool within the short space prior to the act taking eifect, as with the remote countries named. The 25th section of the act provided "that nothing in the act should apply to goods shipped in vessels bound to any port of the United States, having actually left her last port of lading, eastward of the Cape of Good Hope, or beyond Cape Horn, prior to the 1st day of September, 1842." Objection was taken at once to the inequality created by this provi- sion. It was contended that shipments made from Liverpool and other British ports were entitled to the same exemption. The increased rate of duty was, however, demanded on importations from those ports, and payment was made under protest. OONVBMTION WITH GREAT BRITAIN. 303 goods Claims arising from sucli payment were early presented to the notice of the United States government, and were made a subject of corres- pondence. Such claims were adjusted, in part, so far as regarded ship- ments conceded to have been actually made prior to SeptemV 1, 1842. Other claims, where some controversy existed as to what coxistituted shipment prior to such time, were left I'udecided, and are now presented for consideration. A further claim is also presented for repayment of the excess of duties assessed on British cottons, to May 13, 1843, up to which time, it is alleged, vessels continued to arrive from ports eastward of the Cape of Good Hope with cotton goods, which were ad- mitted, subject to the rate of duty prescribed under the prior statute. Under the first claim, which is now presented for consideration, evi- dence was offered that shipments were made from Glasgow, prior to September 1, to be forwarded from Liverpool. It appears that the vessel in which they were imported did not leave Liverpool until the 3d or 4th of September. It is contended, however, that the shipment should date from Glasgow, where the goods were manufactured, and from whence they were forwarded ; and cases were cited where such a construction was allowed in reference to goods shipped from ports eastward of the Cape of Good Hope, under similar circumstances, where the prior rate of duty was charged. The evidence offered goes far to show that the shipment should date from the time contended for. It is unnecessary, however, to determine that question as, under the views we now entertain, the allowance of this claim will be included in the further claim for repayment of excess of duties on importations up to May 13, 1843. This claim is based on the provision in the convention of 1815, that the same duties shall be assessed on imports from Great Britain into the United States, as on like articles from any other country, and so long as goods continued to be received, from any other country, from any other cause whatsoever, under the reduced tariff, so long it is con- tended British goods should be received on like terms. It has been argued that an importation of goods may apply to the whole period of transit, commencing from the time of leaving a foreign country; and that if the rule of equality was established from such time, the provision of the treaty would be justly complied with. The commissioners, however, are not prepared to assent to such a construc- tion. Goods cannot be said to be imported until the term of transit .k |i II Iff! % 804 ADJUSTMENT OF CLAIMS UNDER THE is completed, and they have actually arrived at their destination ; and we are of opinion that as long as goods were received from the East Indies at the reduced rate of duty prescribed in the prior statute, they w ere entitled to be received from Great Britain charged at the same rate of duty. This is the only interpretation which it seems to us conforms to the just intent of the treaty. A construction, at least as favorable as that adopted by us, was given to this clause of the treaty by the British government on a claim in behalf of American citizens for re-payment of the duty charged on rough rice. That claim was for a long time under consid- eration, and was settled by directing the excess of duties exacted to be repaid^ as long as African rough rice had been allowed by law to be imported into England at a lower duty than was charged on Ameri- can rice. The commissioners are of opinion that the precedent established in that case was based on sound principle, and they direct that * le excess of duties exacted on cotton goods imported by the clairaaats prior to May 13, 1843, shall be refunded. ^ ^^ ^ A question of payment of interest has also been raised. It appears that at the time the duties were demanded the claimants formally protested to the collectors of New York and Boston against the rate of duty assessed, as contrary to treaty stipulations. They also claimed protection from Mr. Fox, her Majesty's minister, at Washing- ton. The United States government was, therefore, from the first, informed that the payment of the duty would be resisted. The act itself, also, of the 30th of August, 1842, should have placed them on their guard, as it expressly provides "that nothing contained in it shall be construed or permitted to operate so as to interfere with subsisting treaties with foreign countries." Under these circumstances, we are of opinion interest should be allowed on tlie claim from the time of payment. ■«^.- »• .V. 1 Gn exp des( T pro^ com frona thei T ous i opin adjuf T ordei pend Ti] Ha 'i'k/ '■p"yv-. CONVENTION WITH OBBAT BRITAIlf. jWf) tion ; n the itute, at the sms to s, was ; on a > duty jonsid- 1 to be f to be Ameri- shed in 3 excess ts prior appears brraally the rate ey also ashing- ,he first, fe placed mtained ire with loiild be DUTY ON WOOLEN GOODS-C. BARRY, AGENT. King and Gracib. This was a claim for a return of the excess of duty charged by Great Britain against citizens of the United States, on woolen goods exported to that country, over and above those charged on the same description of goods exported to other countries. This excess of duty was alleged to be in violation of reciprocal provisions entered into between the two countries, by the treaty of commerce of July ii, 1815, by which the exports and imports to and from either country to the other were placed on the basis of those of the most favored countries. The particular grounds of this description of claims, and the vari- ous proceedings had in reference to them, are fully set forth in the opinion of the commissioners, with the reasons of the delay of their adjustment to the present time. This claim is presented with a view to some general decision and order in reference to the large class of cases of the same character pending before the commission. Thomas, agent and counsel for the United States. H ANNEX. agent and counsel for Great Britain. 20 4}i 806 ADJUSTMENT OF CLAIMS UNDEB THE t 1 f-^. i The opinion of the commiesion was delivered by Upham, United States Commissioner: By the treaty of commerce entered into between the United States and Great Britain^ on the third day of July, 1815, it is provided, in article second, that " no other or higher duties shall be imposed on the exportation of any articles from the one country to the territory or dominions of the other than such as are, or may be, payable upon the exjwrtation of the like articles to any other foreign country." A similar provision is made as to importations: "That no higher duty on importations shall be imposed on articles being the growth, produce, or manufacture of either country than is imposed on like articles from any other foreign country." It is further provided that there shall be no prohibition of the importation of any article from either of the governments into the other which shall not equally extend to all other nations. — (Laws of the United States, vol. S,p. 228, Peters' s ed.) These provisions are essentially the same as those introduced into the treaty of amity and commerce between the two countries on the 19th of November, 1794, at least, as regards importations. The treaty of 1815 was to continue but four years. It has been, however, renewed from time to time, and is still continued as the existing treaty of commerce between the two countries. Similar stipulations are now uniformly introduced by the United States into her treaties with all governments, and the principle thus adopted has become a settled usage and common law among nations. Treaties containing similar provisions were subsequently made by Great Britain with the united provinces of Rio de la Plata and with Columbia and Mexico. It would naturally be supposed that articles of such iin})ortance, and dictated by such just grounds of intercourse between nations, would have been scrupulously maintained. They liave been violated, however, in some instances, tlirough inadvertence, by careless and hasty legislation, and, at other times, soeniingly from ignorance of the existence of such provisions. The first case tliat attracted attention, us a ground of complaint under these treaties, arose from an unequal assessment of duties on the exportation of British manufactured woolens to foreign countries. been CONVENTION WITH GREAT BRITAIN. 807 [ States idcd, in oscil on orritory »le upon •y." » higher growth, on like (led that clo from equally i,/). 228, need into ies on the IS. The however, > existing pulations r treaties become a made by and with iportance, 1 nations, violated, reless and [10 ranee of complaint duties on countries. On the exportation of these goods to the United States, and some other countries, an ad vahrcm duty of ten shillings per cent, was asnesNed, extending back to the date of the treaty, and was continued to May G, lH:t(> ; while, during a large portion of that time, the same tlescription of goods were exported free of such duty to China, Java, ManiUa, Valparaiso, Lima, California, Sec. American shiiis had commenced loading for these countries with cargoes consistiugprincipally of woolen goods; and, finding they were allowed to be shipped free of duty, on the 27th of December, 1826, application was made to the board of customs to permit the shipment of woolen goods to the United States with the same exemption. This privilege was refused. Afterwards, on the 20th of January, 1820, it was ordered by the commissioners of customs that the shipment of woolens should be made to the United States upon a deposit e(iual to the amount of duty claimed, until such time as the decision of the British government upon the subject could be had. Exceptions were at this time taken by British merchants engaged in trade with tl)e provinces of Rio de la Plata and Columbia, on account of a similar inequality of duties on goods shipped to those countries, and the excess of duties charged was directed to be refunded, by orders issued from the treasury in April and May, 1826. No measures having been taken in reference to the shipment of woolen goods to the United States, the attention of the privy council for trade was again called to the subject, and claim was made that such sums as had been levied on these goods contrary to the stipula- tions of the treaty should be refunded. On the 20th of August following, an order of the committee of the privy council was issued in reply to the memorials stating the opinion " that, as the duty in question was not payable upon woolens exjjorted to foreign places within the limits of the East India company's char- ter, the parties were entitled, under the terms of the treaty with the United States, to a like exemption, and requesting the commissioners of his Majesty's customs to discontinue levying that duty on woolens exported to the United States, and to other countries with which treaties containing a similar right of exemption had been concluded ; and that on due application from the parties, by whom such export duty had been paid, the same sliould be returned to them." \ I I \': t n. I: \r- 808 ADJUSTMENT OF CLAIMS UNDER THE n I : t r » n t*? The board of commissioners, notwithstanding the order, refused to refund the amount of duties paid, and procured an act of limitation, passed after the memorialist's application, that duties thus assessed should not be refunded for a time extending back beyond a term of three years. In the application for repayment of duties on woolens shipped to South America, an attempt had been made to apply the statute of limitations in bar of a portion of the claims. It was, however, settled by the legal advisers of the crown that it was not the practice to apply the statute of limitations to claims under treaties with foreign States. The memorialists at length succeeded, through various orders issued in 1830,* 1831, and 1832, in obtaining a return of duties for about four- teen months— from March, 1829, to May, 1830. Owing to the various difficulties interposed against the allowance of this claim, and in regard to the proper vouchers to be filed to sus- tain it, application was made to the American government in 1843 ; and in September of that year, Mr. Everett, then American minister at London, addressed a letter to the British government, urging pay- ment of the claim, and some modifications as to the requirements that had been made of the evidence to sustain it. The grounds on w^hich the payment of the claim was demanded were admitted to be unanswer- able. No action was had, however, in reference to the payment of the claim until December 3, 1845, when a further order was issued from the commissioners, requiring a repayment to the shippers of the duties assessed on woolens, running back to a period of three years prior to the 26th of January, 1826, at which time the practice had commenced of making payment of duties under protest or deposit. Within such period, the ordinary evidence, as practiced in previous cases, was to be admitted. The claims .were to be allowed and paid in the name of the shippers; but beyond that period it was ordered that return was to be made c»nly to the actual owner or proprietor of the goods at (lie time of shipment, or to the shipper, or consignee of the goods, on behalf of the owner or proprietor abroad, on production of a power of attorney, or other legal authority from such owner or proprietor, ac- companied by affidavit that he had authorized the shippers to apply for the return of the money. Under this order, the duties illegally assessed were ultimately re- fiinded, extending back to January 26, 1823. The claim for excess NoJ own forwal CONVENTION WITH GREAT BRITAIN. 309 Lised to itation, issessed term of pped to ;atute of , settled to apply Q States, rs issued out four- lUowance Bd to sus- in 1843 ; , minister ging pay- Qcnts that on which Linanswer- lent of the jsued from the duties ,rs prior to sommenced in previous 1 and paid dered that of the goods e goods, on a power of )prietor, ac- ers to apply timately re- n for excess i of duties charged still remains unadjusted from July 3, 1815, to Janu- ary 26, 1823, and the present application is made before us in order to obtain from the commission such order and direction thereon as may be applicable to these cases as a class. The first question ariging for the consideration of the commission is, whether any legal bar on account of lapse of time exists against sus- taining the claim for a return of duties. This seems now hardly to be contended for, where a treaty is made between two independent powers ; its stipulations cannot be deferred, modified, or impaired by the action of one party without the assent of the other. If the parties, by their joint act, have established no bar- rier in point of time to the prosecution of any claims under a treaty made by them, then neither country can interpose such limit. The case admits of no other judicial construction. The legal advisers of the crown concur in this view, and the commissioners have no doubt on the point. It is conceded, as a matter of fact, that an inequality in duties existed in violation of the provisions of the treaty ; and, there being no bar to the recovery of the claim from lapse of time, such duties should be refunded. We have only to determine, then, what evidence shall be required to sustain claims of this character before this commission. No persons can prosecute claims here but citizens of either country against the government of the other. Claims cannot be allowed to the shippers, as has heretofore been done, but to citizens of the United States, who are the actual owners and proprietors of the goods ex- ported, and evidence must be had from the custom-house records, or from the shippers, of the amount of duties paid by them on account of such persons, and the awards sustained must be made up in their names, with such claims of interest thereon, if any shall be allowed, as the commissioners may direct. With these instructions, as to the views of the commissioners, the case will stand continued to such time as may be convenient for the parties to appear before us with evidence in conformity to the opinion here expressed. Note. — The British shippers were in the habit of entering in their own name goods, in the gross, for the payment of duty, which were forwarded by any one vessel to their correspondents abroad. They f iU ■ "! '' ill ^1 f- ;, ; !,' 5r ,yf^'^^ff!m 310 ADJUSTMENT OP CLAIMS UNDER THE then charged the amount severally paid in their own books. The requisite evidence of the precise duty paid by the American importers, therefore, could not be had from the custom-house records in the shape that was necessary. The claims for the return of duty extended from July 3, 1815, to January 26, 1823, and owing to the length of time which had elapsed, and the deaths and changes in firms, great delay and difficulty was incurred in obtaining from the books of the shippers the proper evi- dence of the amounts severally paid by the American owners of the goods exported. The claims amounted to a large sum due to numerous importers. To obviate the many difficulties in sustaining these claims, Mr. Barry, the agent of the claimants, entered into an arrangement with the British government by which the shipper's accounts should be taken, waiving any claim to the allowance of interest on the same, and that time should be had to make the requisite apportionment to the several importers. The amount paid was to be placed to the order of the United States government, and paid out on the papers being filed. The following notice from Mr. Barry, the agent of the claimants, giving notice of this adjustment, was sent to the commission, which was ordered to be entered upon the docket, and the claims were with- drawn. London, January 15, 1855. To the mixed Commission under the Conventioti concluded between Great Britain and the United States of America. Gentlemen : Having in the months of March and June, last year, as agent, submitted to the mixed commission the claims of the parties for the return of the export duty of ten shillings per cent, ad valorem, still remaining due upon the shipment of woolens from this country to the United States, I now beg to state that, upon further considera- tion, being of opinion that, under the ciro-^mstances of the case, it would be advisable to adjust, if possible, a 'ement thereof, without having recourse to the adjudication of your >u>;drd, I have succeeded in effecting the same, and consequently beg to withdraw all such claims. I have the honor to be, gentlemen, your most obedient servant, CHARLES BARRY. ] no art 1 goo Goi fror L asg lishc sani( In that for ri be al CONVENTION WITH GREAT BRITAIN. 311 The lorters, 3 shape 815, to ilapsed, [ty was per evL- s of the porters. . Barry, vith the e taken, and that e several er of the filed, laimants, m, which ere with- , 1855. ;ee» Great DUTY ON COTTON GOODS, C. WIRGMAN, AGENT. By the treaty of commerce between the United States and Great Britain, of July 3, 1815| no other or higher duties were to be charged on the imports from cither country than on like articles from any other nation. The act of May 33, 1824, imposed an increased duty of five cents per square yard on cotton goods, but provided that it should not take effect as to goods from ports beyond the Cape of Good Hope or Cape Horn, until six months afler it went into operation, on goods imported from Europe and other countries. Held that the treaty required an equality of tariff at the time of entry, and that, so long as goods were received from beyond the Cape of Good Hope or Cape Horn, at the rate estab- lished by the previous tariff, like goods, from other ports were entitled to be received at the same rate of duty. In this case it appeared that the duty was paid without complaint many years since, and that the claim was not brought to the notice of the government, and no demand was made for repayment, until quite recently ; held that, under such circumstances, interest should not be allowed. The facts in the case will appear in the opinion delivered. Hannen, agent and counsel for Great Britain. Thomas, agent and counsel for the United States. !»> ^1 last year, ;he parties d valorem, lis country considera- he case, it )f, without succeeded w all such lervant, 5ARRY. » If I m f:ffi II 312 ADJUSTMENT OF CLAIMS UNDER THE * \ The opinion of the board was delivered by Upham, United States Commissioner : The class of cases now before us furnishes another instance of claims for excess of duties charged in violation of the reciprocal provision entered into between the United States and Great Britain, in the con- vention of July 3, 1815, for the adoption of tariff rates with each other as favorably as those established with any other nation. By that treaty the charges on goods imported into the United States or Great Britain, from either country, were to be no higher than on a like description of goods imported from any other country. Complaint is made of a violation of this provision by an act of the United States for imposing duties on imports, passed May 22, 1824. By that act an increase of five cents per square yard on cottons was made to take effect from June 30, 1824, with the proviso, "that it should not apply to or be enforced against importations of goods from ports or places eastward of the Cape of Good Hope, or beyond Cape Horn, before the first of January next ensuing." It does not appear that attention was called by British citizens to the unequal operation of this provision, until after complaint was made as to an act passed August 30, 1842, containing a provision of a char- acter (similar to the one under consideration. The discussion which took place in reference to that act undoubt- edly drew public attention to the prior act regulating duties passed in 1824. Long delay has occurred since the grievance complained of, but we have already holden, in the case of King & Gracie, Barry, agent, relative to repayment of duty on woolen goods, that no statute of limitations can be pleaded in bar of claims arising under treaties. The violation of the provisions of the convention of 1815 by that act is much more explicit and direct than that of the act of 1842, with regard to which we have already expressed our opinion. The act then provided merely that all goods which were shipped from ports beyond the Cape of Good Hope, jpWor io the act taking effect, should not be subject to the operation of the statute. In this case it is pro- vided that the act itself shoiild not take effect on goods coming from beyond the Cape for the term of six months after it had been in opera- tion as to goods imported from other countries. The commissioners regard this as a clear and palpable discrimina- ■!^-- CONVENTION WITH GREAT BRITAIN. 313 slaims (vision le con- i each States m on a tion in favor of those countries in violation of the treaty of 1815, and allow claims for the return of any excess of duties beyond those paid by those countries during the period within which the exception operated. On the question of interest which has been presented to our consid- eration, it appears that the duties were originally paid without com- plaint, and that the claim has been permitted to slumber, until very recently, without being brought to the uotico of the United States ^ and we are of opinion that no interest should be allowed. of the , 1824. ms was that it ids from id Cape # .i . f ia izens to as made a char- indoubt- passed lined of, f, agent, latute of ties, by that J42, with The act am ports should it is pro- ing from in opera- Bcrimina- ^ ^.-^ ft- m S14 ADJUSTMENT OF CLAIMS UNDER THE g n "-^ ALEXANDER McLEOD. h fr Where a citizen of Canada was arrested in the State of New York, for a criminal oflfence against the laws of the State, arising from his being engaged in the destruction of the steamer Caroline, in New York, with a party from Canada, during an insurrection in that pro- vince, and Great Britain demanded his release on the ground that the acts complained of were done by the orders of that government, and that the nation was responsible and not the individual ; and where the diflSculties arising from these causes were afterwards adjusted be- tween the two governments, held that such adjustment barred all claims of citizens of either country against the other for individual damage sustained^ and that such cases were not within the provisions for the settlement " of outstanding claims," under the convention of February 8, 1853. Where a citizen of another government was arrested in this country for a criminal oifence, and claimed his discharge on the ground that the acts complained of were done under the authority of his govern- ment, it does not necessarily entitle him to a release. Time must be had for the action of the proper tribunals on such plea, and the ulti- mate decision of a court in the last resort^ where the same becomes necessary. Neither does any claim for damage arise where the means provided by law for the adjustment of such questions are less speedy than would be desirable, and may require amendment, or error has arisen, in courts of subordinate jurisdiction, from which appeal might have been taken or correction had. Alexander McLeod, a British subject resident in Canada, was ar- rested in Lewistown, in the "State of New York, in November, 1840, on a charge of being concerned in the seizure and destruction of the steamer Caroline, attended with loss of life, in the State of New York, on the 29th of December, 1837. cc tv fa th "Wr- OONVENTION WITH GREAT BRITAIN. 315 During the pendency of the prosecution, Great Britain notified the government of the United States that the seizure of the Caroline was made under the authority of Great Britain, and claimed the discharge of McLeod on that ground. He was not discharged, but was tried and acquitted, and now brings his claim before this commission for damages and expenses arising from his detention and trial. The facts in the case are more fully set forth in the opinion of the commissioner, together with the correspondence on this subject be- tween the two governments relating to the settlement of the same, so far as it has a bearing on the jurisdiction of the commissioners over the claim. The case was fully argued. On behalf of the claimant, McLeod appeared per se, and by Hannen, agent and counsel for Great Britain. Thomas, agent and counsel for the United States. * ^ ■^ ^ m tr\f «?.. i . I - ..-^- J 316 ADJUSTMENT OF CLAIMS UNDER THE # Hornby, Commissioner of Great Britain : Considered the adjustment made between the two governments as a settlement merely of the international points of controversy arising in the case, and that any private claims of damage on the part of McLeod remained an open question among outstanding claims existing at the date of the convention. He was of opinion that McLeod was entitled to immediate release on the assumption by the British government of his acts, and the communication of proper notice of this fact to the American authori- ties. It then became a national controversy and ought not to have been further prosecuted against an individual. He held further, that the detention was longer than was necessary in any eveiit, and was rendered unduly severe on account of public excitement, which it was the duty of the government to have re- pressed, and that from this cause the claimant was exposed to hard- ship and much expense, for which he was justly entitled to compensation.* * In this case, and some others which were disposed of at a late day during the sitting of the convention, a full report of the decisions of the commissioner was not drawn up at the time, but was to have been subsequently forwarded, and placed on file. It is much to be regretted that they have not yet been received, and therefore .. brief note only of these opin- ions can be furnished. # mMi -St-* CONVENTION WITH GREAT BRITAIN. 817 8 as 3ing t of ting lease Ithe hori- have ssary (ublic e re- hard- ed to itting of p at the ich to be tse opin- Upham, United States Commissioner : The claim of Alexander McLeod, which has been presented for our consideration, renders it necessary to recite briefly the details of bor- der collisions between the United States and the Canadas, which occurred some seventeen years since, and which are set forth in the documents presented in this case. On the 29th of December, 1837, the steamer Caroline, belonging to a citizen of the United States, was lying in the Niagara river, along side the wharf at Schlosser, in the State of New York, having on board a number of American citizens. A civil commotion at the time prevailed in upper Canada^ and it was alleged that the Caroline had been used to carry arms, and muni- tions of war, from the shores of the State of New York to an insurrec- tionary party on Navy Island, then in arms against the government of that province. While the Caroline was thus within the jurisdiction of the State of New York, a party of her Britannic Majesty's subjects left the shore of Canada, came within the limits of the State of New York, seized the Caroline, and destroyed her. During the collision, arising from the seizure, Amos Durfee, a citizen of the United States, was killed, and was found dead on the wharf ; and it was supposed the lives of other citizens were lost on board the steamer. Complaint was early made to Great Britain of the public wrong done to the United States by this invasion and violation of her rights of territory, and the injuries there committed, but no satisfaction or apology had been made for such wrong for a period of three years after the event, when, in November, 1840, Alexander McLeod, who was a citizen of Great Britain and a resident of Upper Canada, came to Lewiston, in the State of New York, and was there arrested on the charge of having been concerned in the seizure of the steamer Caroline, and the wrongs connected with it. On examination, he was com- mitted to the jail in Niagara county; and in February, 1841, the grand jury of that county found a bill of indictment against him for the murder of Durfee. The case was removed to the supreme court for trial, and was afterwards transferred to another county to avoid the local excitement existing on the Niagara border. The arrest of McLeod revived at once the consideration of the whole m Urn .Mf >&!.- ' i: 318 ADJUSTMENT OF CLAIMS UNDER THE subject of the border difficulties. In March, 1841, Mr. Fox, then minister of Great Britain to the United States, demanded, formally, in the name of the British government, the immediate release of McLeod, and set forth the grounds upon which this demand was made, alleging "that the transaction, on account of which McLeod was arrested, was a transaction of a public character, planned and executed by persons duly empowered by hor Majesty's colonial authorities to take any steps and to do any acts which might be necessary for the defence of her Majesty's subjects, ai^d that they were not personally and individually answerable to the laws and tribunals of any foreign country." It was thus contended that all liability of McLeod for the acts charged against him was merged in the national character given to the *^ransaction by the British government. Mr, Webster, in reply, on the .Uth of April, 1841, stated ''that the communication of the act being formally made that the destruction of the Caroline was an act of public force by the British authorities, tlie case had assumed a decided aspect," and measures would be taken accordingly. The United States government accepted at once the issue tendered in this form, and insisted on satisfaction or apology for tlie violation of its rights of territory in the seizure of the Caroline ; at the same time the government took immediate measures to communicate, in a proper manner to the judicial authorities, the evidence of the inter- national defence thus set up by the British government, that it might avail to the benefit of McLeod. The counsel for McLeod sued out a writ of habeas corpus, returnable before the supreme court of Neiv York, and claimed his discharge on the ground thus interposed. It was holden by the court, however, as is stated by Mr. Webster in his letter to Lord Ashburton of August 6, 1842, " that, on this application, embarrassed as it would appear by technical difficulties, McLeod could not be released." Further hearing was proposed on this subject, by a transfer of the case to tlie United States court for the determination of this (jiiestion, but McLeod objected to the delay necessarily attendant on such a proceeding, and requested, in writing, a trial by jury ; a copy of which request was communicated to the British government. Shortly .afterwards the discharge of McLeod was effected by the decision of a jury, and "the further prosecution of the legal question,"' as Mr. Webster says, " was then rendered unnecessary.'" STd ch and goj tiol su^ prJ be{ CONVENTION WITH OREAT BRITAIN. 819 Had tho verdict of the jury been otherwise, McLeod had reserved to himself the right to a reconsideration of the decision of tho supreme court of New York, on the international defence interposed by him. Mr. Spencer, the attorney of McLeod, states in his argument before tho jury: *• I have taken the precaution to secure the right which will enable me to review the decision of the supreme court elsewhere, so that, in the event of McLeod 's conviction, if the supreme court have been mistaken, if that decision should not be in accordance with the law of the land, it may be reversed, and that established which I believe to be the law of the land, namely: that where there was such a war being carried on between the British government and those who waged it on our side of the waters, the British government might properly exert its powers to put down that war, and those who acted in obedience to the orders of that government discharged their duty as faithful subjects and citizens, and are. not murderers. — (Gould's trial of McLeod, 2i. 1^\.) Such is a brief recital of the facts relative to tliis matter, and of the respective issues raised by the two governments on the subject. The difficulties thus existing were early made the subject of further corresponuence, and a final adjustment in regard to them was had between the governments. It becomes necessary, then, to examine the character of this adjustment, and to determine the effect of such set- tlement on the claim before us. Two questions arise in the case : I. Whether the settlement made by the governments precludes our jurisdiction over the claim now presented. n. Whether, independently of such exception, the facts show a ground of claim against the United States. The convention provides that we are to pass upon the unsettled claims of citizens or subjects of either government against the other, and we are to pass " only on such claims as shall be jircsentcd by the governments," and are to be confined "to such evidence and informa- tion as shall be furnished by or on their behalf." No claims can be sustained before us except those which tlie governments can rightly prefer for our consideration. With matters settled and adjusted between them, we have nothing to do. A settlement by the governments of the ground of international f' i 320 ADJUSTMBNT OF CLAIMS UNDER THE controversy between tlieiu, i}Min facto settles any claims of individuals arising under such controversies against the government of the other country, unless they are 8i)ecially excepted ; as each government by flo doing assumeo as principal, the adjustment of the claims of its own citizens, and becomes, itself, solely responsible for them. The controversies to which 1 Inivc referred consisted of two grounds of complaint: the delay in the liberation of McLeod, on the one hand ; and the violation of the American rights of territory in the seizure of the Caroline, on the other. These questions passed under the full consideration and revision of the two governments, in 1842, repre- sented by Lord Ashburton, ambassador extraordinary and minister plenipotentiary, on the part of Great Britain, and Mr. Webster, then Secretary of State, on the part of the United States. The result of their conference I regard as a full and final settle- ment tf these matters in controversy. In the closing letter of Lord Ashburton on this subject, he says: "After looking through the voluminous correspondence concerning these transactions," (that is, the difficulty with McLeod,) "I am bound to admit there appears no indisposition with any of the authorities of the federal government, under its several administrations, to do justice in this respect in as far as their means and powers would allow." He makes no complaint of want of diligence or promptness on the part of the United States government, but says: "Owing to a conflict of laws, difficulties have intervened, much to the regret of the Ameri- can authorities, in giving practical effect to the principles avowed by them; and for these difficulties some remedy has been by all desired." He then says: "I trust you will excuse my addressing to you the inquiry, whether the government of the United States is now in a condition to secure, in effijct and in practice, the principle, which has never been denied in argument, that individuals, acting under legitimate authority, are not personally responsible for executing the orders of their government? That the power, when it exists, will be used on every fit occasion, I am well assured." Lord Ashburton thus rested his claim, and in the same letter and spirit tendered an apology for tlie violation of the United States right of territory in the seizure of the Caroline, "which transactions," he «ays, "are connected with each other." His lordship then does not wait for the reply of Mr. Webster as to CONVENTION WITH GREAT BRITAIN. 321 luals L>ther it by of its ounds hand ; iure of le full repre- linister r, then settle- [)f Lord igh the that is, pears no rnment, in as far iS on the conflict Ameri- wed by esired.'' you the now in a , which "• under lit in g the s, will he otter and ates right ions," he )ster as to the adoption of a provision for more prompt niomis of rcdrc««, in cascR like McLood's, but, reposing eouKdence in advance in the proper action of the American government, closes bis h'tti-r by saying, in reference to both tlicso stibjects of controversy: " I trust, sir, I may now bo permitted to liope that all feelings of resentment and ill will resulting from these truly unfortunate events may hv hvrud in oUivirm, and that they may be succeeded by those of harmony and fricndNliip, which it is certainly the interest, and 1 also believe the inclination, of all to promote.'" Mr. Webster, in his reply to the subjects of this letter, adverting to the matter of McLeod, stated tlie reasons why delay had occurred in his case, and that " in regular constitutional governmenta i)erson8. arrested on charges of high crimes can only be disohorged by some judicial proceeding. It is so in Enghkivl. It is so in the colonies and provinces of England." He further says : " It was a subject of regret that McLeod's release had been so long deferred;" and, in answer to the question i)roposed to him by Lord Ashburton, stated " it was for the Congress of the United States, whose attention has been called to the subject, to say what further provision ought to be made to expedite proceedings in such cases, and that the government of the United States holds itself not only fully disposed, but fully competent, to carry into i)ractice every princi[)le which it avows or acknowledges, and to fulfil exery duty and obligation which it owes to foreign gov- ernments, their citizens or subjects." During the same month, on the 2yth of August, 1842, Congress passed a law by which immediate transfer of jurisdiction might be made to the courts of the United States of all cases where any persons, citizens, or subjects of a foreign State, and domiciled therein, should be held in custody on account of any act done under the commission, order, or sanction of any foreign State or sovereignty. Tlie delay, therefore, attendant on the previous means of removal of such cases to the jurisdiction of the United States courts for tlieir de- cision, which was the only ground of complaint, was thus provided against, and every suggestion which bad been mailc on the subject was thus fully met and answered. In reference to tlie other grounds of complaint — the violation of the rights of territory of the United States in the seizure of the Caroline — Mr. Webster, in reply to the declarations of Lord Ashburton, thug 21 'Is 322 ADJUSTMENT OF CLAIMS UNDER THE I' I 'I I ■! disposes of the matter in the same letter : *' Seeing, he says, that the transaction is not recent ; seeing that your lordship), in the name of your government, solemnly declares that no slight or disrespect was intended to the sovereign authority of the United States ; seeing it is acknowledged that, whether justifiable or not, there was yet a viola- tion of the territory of the United States, and that you are instructed to say that your government considers that as u most serious occur- rence ; seeing, finally, that it is now admitted that an explanation and apology for this violation was due at the time, the President is con- sent to receive these acknowledgments and assurances in the concil- atory spirit which marks your lordship's letter, and will make this subject, as a complaint of violation of territory, the topic of no further discussion between the two governments." These subjects of difficulty and controversy between the two coun- tries were thus fully and finally adjusted, so that the able and patri- otic statesmen by whom this settlement was effected trusted, in the words of Lord Ashburton, " that these truly unfortunate events might thenceforth he buried in oblivion." The question then arises, Avhat was the effect of this settlement on the private claims of any citizen of either country against the other ? It is quite clear that this settlement was not made, leaving the private wrongs of the owners of tlie Caroline to be pressed against the British government for adjustment by an American agent ; nor were the claims of McLeod to indemnity for injuries he may have received for supposed participation in these transactions to be set up through an agent of the British government against the United States. Such a construction of the adjustment made between Mr. Webster and Lord Ashburton would be a violation of the whole tenor of the correspondence between the two governments, an coun- L patri- , in the 8 might meut on 3 other? 3 private e British le claims supposed agent of Wohster lor of the rnational Isions he- with all or govern- s only oii ami taken inal affair, ttev in this en the two countries as settled, or, if so, he holds that the settlement does not har the prosecution of the individual claim of McLeod for redress against the United States. He is further of opinion the merits of McLeod's claim have been sustained, and that he is entitled to compensation. On this, which was the second point raised for discussion, 1 have also the misfortune to disagree with my colleague. McLcod, under similar circumstances in Great Britain, would have heen liable to both civil and criminal process on complaint made by any citizen. In a civil process neither government could interfere further than to aid in presenting the international ground of defence for judicial consideration and action. If the defence interposed was sound, his discharge by the courts would necessarily follow, with all the incidents usually attending the recovering party in a court of law. McLeod was not entitled to immediate discharge from criminal pro- cess, because Great Britain had avowed his act. Her avowal of a deed done, as her act does not necessarily make it an international de- fence. 8he might avow the acts of a private incendiary or murder^ but it would not exculpate him from trial and condemnation. It is for the government to determine through its proper tribunals whether the act done is of that character, and has been committed under such circumstances, as, on principles of international laio, ought rightly to shield the individual from guilt. The judicial authority, when the case is rightly before it, or the executive power, when it is fully within its control, is to determine this question by itself, and is to take time to determine it properly. This is the only course to be taken on a demand for the release of an individual arrested as McLeod was for a capital offence. The United States government adopted this cause at once, It did not admit the justification set up by Great Britain for her acts, and took issue with her upon it ; but, at the same time, it put in action every agency the nature of the case admitted of to interposo this defence for the benetit of i\IcLeod, at the court before which ho was arraigned. This is fully conceded by Lord Ashburton. All rightful demands, tlierefore, either of the British government or McLeod, were complied with. The proceeding against him originated before a local tribunal not of the hii^hest resort in matters of international law. It was suli- i! I fl ! 1 i''U ■Ml 324 ADJUSTMENt OF CLAIMS UNDER THE ject to control, however, both before and after trial, by a revision of any decision it might erroneously make on such a point, by a transfer to courts of the last resort. Delays might arise from this cause, hut neither Great Britain nor McLeod had any proper ground of complaint against the United States arising from the arrangement of our judicial tribunals. Any American litigant in British courts might equally well make it a ground of complaint, that the cost or delay of those tribunals operated in any given case as a denial of justice, and claim compensation for it as an international wrong. No such principle of international law exists. Lord Ashburton stated that this delay was a matter of mutual regret, and expressed the hope that provision might be made to obviate its occurrence in the case of others engaged in the same transaction who were liable to be arrested at any time on their crossing the border. This suggestion was promptly met, and a remedy was provided for the immediate transfer of these cases to a court of the last resort, where such defence might be more readily made available. It is clear, there- fore, that there is no legal or equitable international claim or grounds of complaint, except such complaint as must always exist in all free constitutional governments that persons must be holden amenable to process of law, duly and legally instituted, until such time as proper adjudication can be on any plea interposed for their defence. Considerable stress in this case has been laid on a statement of Mr. Webster, in a speech in the United States Senate, that the owners of the steamer Caroline had violated the laws of the United States, and were not entitled to compensation. From this admission it Itas been argued that no person could be held liable for the destruction of the steamer Caroline, and that there was no ground of complaint for the invasion of the United States territorj' to eftect its destruction. But neither of these results follow from such an admission. If it be admitted that the Caroline was aiding and abetting the re- bellion on Navy Island, in violation of law, it does not follow that it was justifiable to seize and burn her in the United States territory, and take the life of a citiztMi who was casually present on the wharf. It is not a question of property, but of sovereignty. Such an acfc might at the time have caused the loss of many lives, and desolated the entire frontier. It was, therefore, exceedingly hazardous and dangerous in its consequences, and was an act that, in the words of no lo^ be tie \n< thJ I CONVENTION WITH GREAT BRITAIN. 825 n of isfer , but laint licial ually those claim pie of lutiial bviate laction )order. for the wher» , there- jrounds all free lable to J proper t of Mr. svners of ,tea, and as been m of the it for the pn. But rj the re- »\v that it territory, lie wharf. 3h an acii desolated 'dous and e words of Mr. Webster, and of every constitutional writer, tirould be justifiable only in case of self-defence, impelled by absolute necessity — "a neces- sity instant and overwhelming, leaving no choice of means or moment for deliberation." The justification never came up to anything like this. Indeed, it was attempted to be palliated on other and different grounds. It was said, when the expedition started, it was supposed the Caroline was at Navy Island, and that it was an after-thought and sudden raovelnent merely that induced them to proceed across the river, and seize her there, and was not a deliberately planned invasion of the United States territory. .Some of the aggravating circumstances attending the burn- ing of the Caroline, and sending her adrift over the falls were attempted to be explained away by saying that they could not take her across the river. It was also said that Durfee's life was taken by a chance shot from some one on the wharf. • These allegations and mitigating circumstances were pleaded in ex- tenuation of the wrong done. They furnished no justification of the acf. (Tref'>t excitement arose from it, enough to show that if it had beer .' 'lily more calamitous its consequences might have been truly deplt -a^ ' ■ It was fortunate that it was attended with no worse results. All these matters alleged were duly considered. The statesmen of both countries regarded the outbreak and collision as sudden and un- premeditated, while neither party really designed wrong to the other j and looking on the occurrences from this high and honorable inter- national view, the whole matter was fully adjusted by such action on the part of the United States government, in reference to McLeod, as I have named, which was all the case admitted of; and by such apology on the part of Great Britain, in reference to the violation of the United States territory as, in the words of Mr. Webster, " a high and honor- able nation only could give, and a high and honorable nation receive." For these reasons, I am of opinion that neither on its merits, nor as an open ground of controversy, can the claim before us be al- lowed. It appears from the testimony in the case, that McLeod had been sheriff for some years in the county adjoining the Niagara fron- tier, and took an active and efficient part as a civil officer in suppress- ing the rising within his district. McLeod attributes to these efforts the erroneous impression that he was engaged in the seizure of the I! Hit riil. I hi;; in 326 ADJUSTMENT OF CLAIMS UNDER THE liii Caroline, or it may have caused, as he thinks, a conspiracy to persecute and oppress him, instigated by persons concerned in the rebellion, Avho had fled to the United States. If this be so, it might, perhaps, form u consideration for some allowance to him by his own country. Beyond this, there is no ground on which he may claim damage of any government, other than the general claim of any citizen who may have suffered under erroneous prosecution. It»may excite some surprise that this case should be submitted to us by the British government. It doubtless arises froEQ the fact that the agents of the governments have adopted the course to present all claims found on file since the peace of 1814, and this has been pre- sented through inadvertence and should not be persisted in. I cannot believe that his lordship, the secretary for foreign affairs, or the min- istry with which he is associated, can have forgotten the final adjust- ment of this controversy many years since, or that they can give a construction to the correspondence on this subject different from wha* I have affixed to it. For this reason, I especially regret that it has become the ground of a difference of opinion before this commission, and thus assumes the character of a claim presented in violation of this adjustment,- and of the good faith the people of both countries have affixed to the acts of eminent negotiators now passed away. Note, — The opinion of Mr. Hornby, tlie British commissioner, in this and some other Cases, delivered near the close of the commission, was to have been forwarded to be placed on file. It is much to be regretted that they have not been received. -"jir^i CONVENTION WITH GREAT BRITAIN. 327 secute illion, rhaps, antry. lage of lo may i to us tiat the ent all icn pre- cannot he min- . adjust- give a )m wha* it it lias mission, lation of jountries ^rav. some other lo be placed Bates, Umpire The commissioners under the convention having been unable to agree upon the decision to be given with reference to the claim of Alexander McLeod, of JJpper Canada, against the government of the United States, I have carefully examined and considered the papers and evidence produced on the hearing of the said claim. This case aro8e,out of the burning and destruction of the American steamboat Caroline, at Schlosser, in the State of New York, on the Niagara river, by an armed force from Canada, in the year 1837, for which the British government appears to have delayed formally an- swering the claims of the United States, until 1840, when the claim- ant was arrested by the authorities of the State of New York on a charge of murder and arson, as having been one of the party which destroyed the "Caroline." The British government then assumed the responsibility of the act, as done by order of the government authorities in Canada, and pleaded justification on the ground of urgent necessity. From this time the case of the claimant became a political question between the two governments, and the United States used every means in their power to insure the safety of the claimant, and to procure his discharge, which was effected after considerable delay. It appears by the diplomatic correspondence that the affair of the " Caroline," the death of Durfee, who was killed in the affray, and the arrest of the claimant, Avere all amicably and finally settled by the diplomatic agents of the two governments in 1841 and 1842. The question, in my judgment, having been so settled, ought not now to be brought before this commission as a private claim. I there- fore reject it. ■I! ail r M 328 ADJUSTMENT OF CLAIMS UNDER THE GREAT WESTERN STEAMSHIP C'OMPANY. Where coal wail imported and stored, and was aflerwards conmimed at sea , in outward bound steamerti, held that such consumption was not an exportation, within the meaning of the act of March '2, 1799, to regulate the collection of duties on imports and tonnage, so ae to entitle the owners to a drawbacit for duties paid upon it. Held that the act of Marcli 3, 1853, making appropriations for the civil and diplomatic expenses of the government, by which the Secretary of the Treasury was authorized to can- cel any outstanding debenture bonds given prior to July 1, 1850, on the importation of foreign coal, entitled the owners also to drawback for the duties paid on such coal. Interest was allowed by the umpire on said drawback from July 1, 1850. In 1835 a steamer of tlie Great Western Steamship Company ar- rived at New York, and was required by the collector of the port to land the surplus coal remaining on hoard at the end of the voyage, and pay duties upon it. This was esteemed a hardship, so iar as regarded a reasonable sur- plus of coal remaining on hand, because it was contended a steamer should take on board enough, not only for a voyage of the ordinary duration, but to piovide for the contingencies and delays that are con- stantly liable to arise, and that so long as they have a supply, merely to this extent, a duty should not be charged upon it as freight. Application was made to Congress for a change of the law to this effect, and an act was passed exempting such amount of coals from duty. The steamship company, however, desired further relief and com- menced 8hipi>ing coal to New York in other vessels. They landed the coal, paid the duties upon it, and stored it in warehouses. They then supplied their steamers from tlie coal tlius deposited, and con- sumed it on their outward voyage, and under the act of March 2, 1799, to regulate the collection of duties on imports and tonnage, claimed a reta ally ui)o: of 8 colli and! grcJ CONVENTION WITH GREAT BRITAIN. 329 (Utward iiiing of re, 80 as ^lomatic 1 to can- tation of any ai'" port to voyage, He sur- steamer )rdinary are con- supply? freight. V to this Dais from and com- ^nded the l;s. They and con- li 2, 1799, claimed a drawback on the coal thus consumed, on the ground that it was an ex- portation within the moaning of the act. The officers of custon)s, however, denied that such consumption of coal was an exportation within the meaning uf the act of 1799, and declined allowing a drawback for the duty. The steamboat compafty then memorialized. Congress in 1840, pray- ing the enactment of a law " to enable them to cancel tlieir bonds previously given on the importation of coal, and autliorizing them thereafter to take the benefit of drawback on producing proof either of tlie consumption of such coal on the outward voyage, or of the landing it in a foreign •" ntry." The memorial wai ^ferr* "o a committee c i. ^Senate of the United States. Instead, however, of complying with the request ot the memorialists, a majority of the committee reported that, having examined the law of debenture certificates and drawback, they were of opinion that the eighty-first section of the act of 1799 was complied with, if the coal was consumed on the voyage, and that the comptrol- ler had ample authority under the act to cancel the bonds. They held this construction to be in strict harmony with the policy of the act and in conformity to its meaning. This report, on being made, caused immediate opposition in the Senate. Some debate occurred, when it Avas postponed for further consideration to the next dtiy, and was further postponed to the 3d of March, 1840. The Senate then proceeded to consider the resolu- tion reported by the committee, and, after full debate, it was voted that the resolution lie on the table by a vote of twenty- six to sixteen. The report of the committee was, therefore, disavowed by the Senate. Subsequently, however, this report of the committee of the Senate was cited as an authority with the collectors of the customs to obtain a drawback, and in some instances a drawback was allowed. Application from Boston was submitted to Mr. Forward, then Sec- retary of the Treasury, on the 29th of July, 1841, and he provision- ally allowed the drawback in a special case. This decision was acted ui)on for a short period both at Boston and New York. On the 12th of September, 1842, however, Mr. Forward addressed a letter to the collector at New York, referring to his decision in the case at Boston, and stating '• that owing to the decided expression of opinion by Con- gress in the tariff act then before them, against allowing debenture on I ll 330 ADJUSTMENT OF CLAIMS UNDER THE coal consumed on outward voyages, no debenture on coals would be allowed after the 29th of August, 1842." On the 26th of August, 1842, he sent a copy of this letter to the collector of Boston for his instruction. It is alleged that at Boston, from 1843 to 184(5, the Cunard com- pany had their duties returned and bonds cancelled. Subsequent to this the claim as to drawback remained in controversy until, by the seventh section of the act of March 3, 185;i, making a^Mropriations for the civil and dii^lomatic expenses of the go . jrnmcnt, it was enacted, *' that the Secretary of the Treasury should be authorized to cancel any outstanding debenture bonds given prior to July 1, 1850, upon the importation of foreign coals, provided the said coals have been ex- ported to a foreign port, or consumed upon the outward voyage, and shall not have been consumed in the United States." This section provided merely that outstanding debenture bonds should be cancelled, but did not, in terms, require a repayment of the duties assessed. The company, however, claimed to give it that con- struction. They contended that the provision for cancelling the bonds had no meaning or effect unless it implied that the duties were to be repaid. Ml. Secretary Guthrie, however, declined to give this interpretation to the act. In a letter of April 1853, to the collector of New York, he says in reference to the seveuth section of the civil and diplo- matic appropriation bill, "that on a careful consideration of its pro- visions, he thinks the only authority given is to direct the cancelling the bonds on proof of consumption of the coals, and that he does not feel at liberty to go beyond the express authority granted in the law, and authorize a restoration of duties in the form of debenture or otherwise, where duties have been paid. Such further relief can only be by express legislation." Hannen, agent and counsel for Great Britain. Thomas, agent and counsel for the United States. bo the .m. CONVENTION WITH GREAT BRITAIN. 331 Id be ,0 the cem- ent to Dy the ations lacted, cancel , upon 3en ex- re, and I bonds t of the lat con- ing the ies wore retation of New id diplo- f its pro- mcelling 1 he does ed in the entuve or • can only Upiiam, United States Connuissiouji : Such is a hriof recital of the various acts, and the constructions jdaced upon them, in reference to debentures on coal consumed on outward voyages. The first question whieh arises in the case, is whether tlic construc- tion of the act of 1799, as contended for by the officers of tlie customs, is correct. On that point I havu no doubt. A consumption of coal on an outward voyage is not, as I believe, an ex]iortation of coal within the meaning ol the statute. The exportation there contemplated is an exi)ortatiou of articles to another country, in the ordinary course of trade, as freight. This is apparent from express provisions in the act. The 81st section of the act provides, ''tliat in order to entitle the owner of merchandise to a drawback on goods exported, he shall file a bond with condition that such goods shall not be relanded in any port or place within the limits of the CFnited States, and if the certificates and other proofs required by law of the delivery of the same at the port to which the vessel is consigned, or at some other port or place without the limits of the United States shall be produced at the col- lector's office within a certain specified time, then the obligation shall be null and void, otherwise it shall remain in full force." — (Laws of the United States, vol. 3, p. 214, ed. 1815.) The statute further prescribes what shall constitute evidence of such exportation. The ordinary evidence of exportation is the certificate of the consignee specifying the landing of the merchandise in a foreign country, verified by the consul ; or, in case there is no consul, by two merchants, under oath, and by the master of the vessel. It farther provides, however, that in case of loss at sea. or other un- avoidahle accident, or where, from the nature of the trade, such proofs cannot be produced, the exporter shall be allowed to produce " such other proofs as he may have, and as the nature of the case will ad- mit ;" and if the comptoller be satisfied of their truth he may direct the bonds to be cancelled and refund the duties. In this case no evidence has been or can be given of the landing of the coal in any other port or place without the limits of i\\Q United States, and there is no loss at sea or other unavoidable accident com- plained of. There is nothing, therefore, to exempt the claimants f 332 ADJUSTMENT OF CLAIMS UNDER THE from the ordinary evidence of exportation, unless the case can be brouf^'ht within the exception, that " the nature of the trade" is such that the usual proof required cannot be obtained. This renders it necessary to inquire to what class of tradia this ex- pression refers? It undoubtedly refers to the trade or coinmerce then carried on with various uncivilized sections of tlie globe — sudi as the northwest coast of Africa, the East India islands, and other places where the evidence of consuls ami lucrchants could not bo obtained. It is a forced construction to contend that by the act of 1799 con- 8uni}»tion of coal, on an outward voyage, is included in the term exportation within the meaning;; of the act. The coal was imported for use by the Great Western Steamship Company, on board their vessels on their outward voyages, and should be subject to a charge for such use, as much as if consumed on shore. A drawback on goods exported is granted on the ground that they are in transit for a market, but where they have once found a market so as to be ai)propriate(l to use, and are not further placed in transitu, as an article of commerce, the ordinary duty claimed on the article right- fully attaches, whether it be consumed at sea or on land. I do not regard the claimants, therefore, as entitled to a drawback by the act of 1799. It becomes then necessary to inquire into the eifect of the recent act of March 3, 1853, to determine whether a drawback is allowed by that act. In the opinion of Secretary (iuthrie, it authorizes merely the cancelling of the bonds given, and does not provide for a restora- tion of the duties in the form of debenture or otherwise. There are reasons, however, that might hold him to a rigid con- struction of the act, that do not necessarily operate upon us. The act of April, 1853, does not expressly provide that a drawback shall be paid. An administrative officer might insist on some specific au- thority in the act, or some judicial construction of it to this effect before assuming tlie responsibility of the rei)ayment of money. The act, however, admits of the construction contended for by the claimants, and its passage was undoubtedly obtained through their agency, with a view to effect the purpose now claimed for it. The rejieated attempts at prior legislation for this end might well affix on Congress the knowledge of such an intent by the clause presented, and imply their acquiescence in it. CONVENTION WITH GREAT BRITAIN. 333 X be such 9 ex- then 8 the (laces ed. ) con- term inship should shore, ley are ,rket 80 situ, as Q right- ■awback cent act )wed hy } merely restora- igid con- ns. The Eick shall ccific au- his eifect for hy the ugh their ■ it. The ai affix on presented. The different constructions also put a* different periods on tluv prior act relative to drawbacks, is a reason Avhy the officers of the govern- ment and claimants should both wish some final legislation. I am inclined, therefore, to give it the interpretation placed on it by the claimants. The act, by any otlier construction, would be almost nominal in its character, and can hardly be supposed to have been made the object of special legislation, under the circumstances, for such a purpose. I tlierefore allow the sum of eleven thousand four hundred and thirty-seven dollars and twenty-five cents for the drawback on duties claimed by the company prior to 1846. There is, in my mind, no legal right to drawback until the act of 1853 was passed, and a claim to interest ought not to go behind that date. My colleague places the ground of allowance of the claim on a dif- ferent construction of the acts in question, and computes interest from the payment of the duty. The question of interest was submitted to the umpire, nnd was allowed from July 1, 1850. I I 334 ADJUSTMENT OF CLAIMS UNDER THE NEW YORK CU8TOM-IIOl'8E CASKS. CHARLES KENWORTIIY. Where a firitieh aubject, who was domiciled in New York, and en|;aged in mercantile buiineHS there, was sued for fraudulent invoices of goods imported by him, which suit ho adjusted with the government by payment of a portion of the num demanded, held that he was bound by such adjustment from any revision of the suit before this commission. A domiciled merchar^t of the United States or Groat Britain, resident in the country of the other, has no right to the action of this commission in matters of current business em- braced within the ordinary jurisdiction of the courts of the country where he resides. By treaty of July 3, 1H15, such persons "are entitled to protection and security, but are to be subject always to the laws and statutes of the two countries respectively." Evidence that fears were entertained lest other suits might be instituted, or seizures might be made unless a suit was adjusted, or a general prejudice to business might arine from con- troversy with the government, docs not constitute such evidence of duress as to avoid a set- tlement. va fn ad In 1839 the claimant, who was a British subject, resided in the city of New York, and had been engaged there for some years in the im- portation and sale of goods. From February 13 to July 10, 183'J, certain goods were imported by him. They were duly examined, the duties were j»aid on them, and they were removed for sale to Philadelphia. They were there seized as having been entered at a reduced rate of invoice and fraudu- lent valuation. The goods consisted of 397 pieces, included in nine invoices, the total value of which was over £2,000. One hundred and two of these pieces were seized at Philadelphia. An adjustment was had of tliis suit by which 74 pieces were retained by government, and 28 ])ieces were restored to the claimant. CONVBMTiON WITU GREAT BRITAIN. 836 Claim is now made againHt the Unitetl StatoH to recover back the value of the property Hcized, on the ground that the Hoixure was a fraudulent act of the collector of the city of New York, and that any adjustment made was obtained by duresH and extortion. Hannen, agent and coimsel for Great Britain. Tjiomas, agent and counsel for the United States. ercantile limit ho i that ho ountry of linoBS eiii- ido8. By t are to be lires might from con- ivoid a sel- i the city I the im- inipovted on them, ere there id fraudu- »oioes, the vo of those lad of thin 28 pieces I i 336 ADJUSTMENT OP CLAIMS UNDER THE The opinion of the board was delivered by TJpHAM, United States Commissioner : This is one of a class of cases in all involving claims to the amount of between two and three hundred thousand dollars. They originate from seizures made in 1839 by Jesse Hoyt, collector of the port of New York, on complaint that, for some years previous, a series of im- portations on false invoices had been made at that port by merchants having partners or houses connected with them in Yorkshire, Eng- land, by which the revenue had been defrauded of large sums. Many of the goods were sold at public auction in New York; other sales were made at Philadelphia and in Massachusetts. Some of the importers were arrested, and one or more fled the country. A portion of the cases were not sustained on trial, or were dismissed, as waM alleged, owing to the difficulty of obtaining evidence from abroad; and others were prosecuted to judgment, or were settled by the parties. A considerable amount was collected from these suits, and paid into the public treasury, and large sums were received by the collector and the prosecuting officers of the government for fees and charges. A portion of these charges were said to be illegal and exorbitant. Com- plaints were also made as to the mode in wliicli the prosecutions were conducted, and a committee was appointed by the United States Sen- ate, of which Mr. Poindexter was cliairman, to investigate the subject. A voluminous report was drawn U]) by the committee, and sub- mitted to the Senate, in which a i)ortion of the ])roceedings were aeverely commented ujion, but no definite action was hud on the re))ort. In all the cases i)f this class which have been i>resented for our de- cision tlie same general facts exist — that legal jjrocess was instituted, a,nd the suits were either prosecuted to judgment, or were adjusted by agreement between the parties comphiiued of and the government. Attempts wero made to j)rove that these 'adjustments were obtained by duress. JJut the evidence iloes not sustain tlie charge. It consists merely of vague statements of tlie injury arising from custom-house suits, and evidence of ai)prehen8ions that, unless ad- justments were effected, otlier suits might be instituted (»r seizures n^ade. Considerable stress was also laid on the fact that the prose- cuting officers were largely interested in the proceeds of such suits, CONVENTION WITH GERAT BRITAIN. 337 nount sjinate )ort of of im- chants !, Eng- ; other e of the portion , as was abroad ; ? parties. paid into ector and ,rges. A t. Coni- ions were ates Sen- le subject, and sul)- ings were he rei»ort. or our de- instituted, djusted hy nnient. •e obtained [rising from unless ad- or seizures the prose- isuch suits, hut there was nothing to establish the charge that the suits were brought for fraudulent purposes, or that an honest importer should have feared their result. In some of these cases large sums were paid to obtain an adjustment; and it seems to have been overlooked that, unless such adjustment is explained, it tends at least as much to show an acknowledgement of fraud or mistake on the part of th^ importer as it is evidence of duress on the part of the officers of government. The suits should have been prosecuted to final judgment, if a valid defence existed. The parties were resident in the United States, and were availing themselves of the protection of the government in the transaction of their business ; and they should not have adjusted claims then pending against them in courts of competent jurisdiction, and come here after a lapse of some fourteen years expecting their recon- sideration. It was not designed that this commission shbuld take cognizance of such cases. The respective governments bad already provided by treaty for the settlement of all transactions arising out of the ordi- nary business of commerce by persons domiciled in the government •of the other. The convention of July 3, 1815, to regulate commerce between the Territories of the United States and of Great Britain, provides, in article first, "that the inhabitants of the two countries, respectively, shall have liberty to remain and reside in any part of the territories of the other, where other foreigners are permitted to come ; also to hire and occupy houses and warehouses, for the purposes of their com- merce ; and generally, that the merchants of each nation, respectively, shall enjoy the most complete protection and security for their com- merce, but subject always to the latos and statutes of the two countries, respectively." — (United States Statutes at Large, vol. 8, /j. 228.) It was manifestly contemplated in this provision that citizens or subjects of either government, resident in the country of the other, engaged in commerce, should be subject to the laws of the country where they reside, in all ordinary matters pertaining to such com- merce. The adjudication of suits arising out of the collection of the revenue is certainly a matter of local jurisdiction by the courts of the country, and there can be no appeal from them to this tribunal. 22 k i 338 ADJUSTMENT OF CLAIMS UNDER THE We have been able to see no ground, in any of this class of cases: which have been presented to us, that entitle them to recovery under this commission, i, The cases of Platt & Dq^JCAN ; executors of William Bottomley ; William Broadbent; executors of John Taylor and Samuel Brad- bury ; and George and Samuel Shaw, for whom Mr. Hannen, assisted by Mr. Butt, Queen's counsel, Mr. Spinks, and others, appeared as. counsel, were holden to come under the principles of this decision, and were disposed of accordingly. of cases y under CONVENTION WITH OBEAT BRITAIN. 339 .,., .; . ,-: i TTOMLEY ; jL Brad- , assisted jeared as. decision, McCALMONT, GREAVES.& COMPANY. The claimants ordered goods to be shipped from England for the Mexican market at Vera Cruz; but war having arisen between the United States and Mexico, the goods were shipped to Havana, and remained there until after the conquest of Vera Cruz by the American forces, and the opening of that port to foreign trade by General Wortlt, who was placed in command of the place, and who established a temporary tariff of rates on importations until such time as he should receive instructions from Washington. On the establishment of this tariff, the claimants ordered their goods to be forwarded, but they did not arrive until a new tariff had been established by the department at Washington, considerably higher than that of General Worth . This tariff, in some particulars, operated seriously to tiie prejudice of the claimants, and a portion of their goods was placed in the public store-house till application could be made at Washington for instructions in regard to them. On such application, the tari^was modi- fied, but was directed to be applied prospectively only, and the claimants paid the full duty. The tariff, in the matter complained of, was higher than the Mexican tariff, but was, in other respects, lower. The claim was allowed by the umpire for the amount paid beyond the tariff last established. The claimants are British merchants^ carrying on business at Vera Cruz. They ordered shipments of goods to Mexico from their corres- pondents in England. On account of the blockade of the Mexican ports by the United States, these goods were first sent to Havana. After the capture of Vera Cruz by the United States forces, General Worth established a temporary tariff, bearing date March 31, 1847, establishing the same tariff on goods received into Mexican ports, as on imports into the United States, with an additional charge of ten per cent, ad valorem, until such time as instructions should be received from Washington. On the opening of the ports, and establishment of this tariff, the claimants ordered their goods from Havana. Before their jirrival, however, a new tariff was received from Washington, by which the duties were increased. On the arrival of the goods, complaint was made of the increase, and the goods remained on deposit until fnrtlier instructions could be „l!ll HI*' H tiij 340 ADJUSTMENT OF OLAIMS UNDER THE received from Washington. On the 10th of June, instructions were received, making modifications, in some respects, as to importations, to take effect subsequent to that date. Applications were made from other importers, for reduction, to Mr. Marcy, Secretary of State, but were rejected, except in conformity to the above order, aa appears from Mr. Marcy's despatch to Mr. Cramp- ton, of the 8th of January, 1848. The duties on cotton goods imported were, with the exception of a particular description of goods, far lower than the lormer Mexican tariff. On the woolen goods a higher tariff was imposed. Hannen, agent and counsel for Great Britain. Thomas, agent and counsel for the United States. ii CONVENTION WITH GREAT BRITAIN. 841 Upham, United States Commissioner : This case presents the common complaint of hardship that always arises whenever an advance of tariff is made contrary to the expecta- tions of the importer. It involves two difficulties for our consideration. In the first place, this commission has no power to alter and control the clear and explicit effect of a tariff established by either government, in order to grant lighter terms than such law had established. It is an exercise of legislative power not confided to us, or of a dis- l)ensing power which is equally unauthorized. In the second place, the application now addressed to our discretion has been already addressed to the government at Washington, and has been denied, under an immediate knowledge at the time of all the circumstances of the case. A modification of the tarifi" was made as requested in reference to woolens and one description of cotton goods, but was directed to take effect prospectively, for the reasow that the duties, under the prior tariff, had been paid on various importa- tions, and it was not supposed the case was such as to require a retro- active effect. This decision was afterwards adhered to on the application of some German merchants ; notice of which was communicated to the British minister, by letter of Mr. Marcy, Secretary of State, on the 8th of January, 1848, Were the case in our control, the same reasons that operated on the department, in making this decision, should operate on us at this time, but there is no right of appeal to us from their decision. We may give a construction in matters of strict law to an established tariff dif- ferent from that given by the officers of the government ; but their decision on matters confided by law to their discretion is final. We cannot go behind the tariff" to overrule it. Some confusion exists in the statements as to the tariff complained of. My colleague, in speaking of the application of the German merchants, says that the tariff of the 30th of March, though higher than General Worth's tariff, was '' much loioer than the Mexican tariff. " In another portion of his opinion, speaking of the same tariff, in reference to this claim, he says "the duties were much higher than the Mexican tariff." These diversities are accounted for b' the fact il I il n 342 ADJUSTMENT OP CLAIMS UNDER THE that tlie remarks apply to clifFerent portions of the tariff. On cotton goods, with the exception of a particular article of that description, the duties were much lower, while, on woolens, they were much higher than under the Mexican tariff. The importation of the claimants in this case consisted both of cot- ton and woolen goods, in large quantities of each- My impression is that, on the whole importation, they were gainers by the change of governments, at least that their loss was of but small amount. If so, it would obviate any appeal on account of the general hardship com- plained of, and the case resolves itself into a mere question as to what extent the claimants should profit by the American occupation of Mexico. It is certain that the damage is much less than would ap- pear from the operation of the tariff on one class of goods alone. The views of my colleague that " if we find the claim to be a just one, and deserving of relief, we are bound, by the terms of the con- vention, to grant it, wholly irrespective of the question whether any officer of either government could, or could not do so, under any par- ticular statute," and that we can grant relief "in any case where Con- gress could have given it, if on examination it was found to be a case in which the parties were equitably entitled to it," I cannot consent to. For the reasons given, I am of opinion no proper ground is presented for the exercise of our authority within the powers assigned to us. 'W 11 !l CONVENTION WITH GREAT BRITAIN. 343 Hornby, British Commissioner : This claim is in the nature of an appeal to the sense of equity of the United States government ; and it being, as I conceive, tlie intention of the contracting parties to the convention of 1853, xinder which we act, that the commissioners should decide upon all claims duly sub- mitted to them according to justice and equity, 1 am of opinion that it is properly brought under our notice. From the investigation which has already taken place into the circumstances, and from the correspondence between the two govern-- ments, it appears that the claimants are British merchants, carrying on business at Vera Cruz. In the early part of 1847 they, in the ordinary course of their business, prepared extensive shipments of goods from England, nearly the whole of which were suited only for the markets of Mexico. In consequence of the blockade of the Mexican ports, which was declared by the United States on the 20th of May, 1847, the claimants' correspondents despatched the vessels conveying the goods to Havana, there to await the orders of the owners.* The claimants directed them to remain there until the ports of Mexico should be opened. On the capture of Vera Cruz by the United States forces. General Worth (who was in command of the troops occupying that place) published, on the 5th of April, a tariff bearing date " Vera Cruz, the 31st March, 1847," by which the port was opened to foreign com- merce, and the same duties were imposed as in the United States, with lO-s per cent., ad valorem, additional. This tariff appearing objectionable in several particulars, the British and foreign merchants, resident at Vera Cruz, on the 6th of April memorialized General Worth on the subject, and he, in consequence of their remonstrances, made some modifications in the tariff. On the faith of this tariff thus modified, the claimants transmitted orders to their correspondents in Havana to send on their goods to Vera Cruz, and they accordingly arrived in the "Susan" and "George W. Randall," on the 20th and 27th of May. In the interval between the sending of the directions by the claimants to their correspondents to forward the goods and their arrival, namely, 'Arrived at Havana during the months of July and August, 1846, 344 ADJUSTMENT OF CLAIMS UNDER THE ;P on the 7th of May, a new tariff, which had been published at Wash- ington on the 31st of March, came into operation at Vera Cruz. Foreseeing the losses they would sustain if all the provisions of this tariff were enforced on tlio goods they were daily expecting, the claimants, in conjunction with other British merchants, submitted to the United States government a statement of the hardships they had to complain of. On the arrival of the goods, Messrs. McCalmont, Greaves & Com- pany, noted protests before the collector of customs (through her Majesty's consul) against the application of the Washington tariff to their case, because, in several instances, the duties would be more than the value of the goods in the market, and because they had been ordered to be sent on on the faith of General Worth's tariff con- tinuing in force. The collector of customs agreed that the goods should remain in deposit until replies should be received to the representations which the claimants had transmitted to Washington. The goods accordingly remained in deposit until the arrival of an order from Washington, dated the 10th of June, by which the tariff was again altered, and the evils which had formed the subject of the British merchants' representations almost entirely removed. Upon the receipt of this order the claimants proposed to pay the duties im- posed by it on the goods which had arrived by the " Susan " and "George W. Randall," and had since remained in deposit ; but were informed that the modifications which had formed the object of their previous representations, and for which they had waited, were not to be applied to tlieir goods ; and on the 22d November the claimants were comi)elled to pay for duties : On the goods by the " Susan " - - - $84,952 43 On goods by the " G. W. Randall" - - - 12,316 82 97,269 25 being $18,877 87 more than they would have had to pay under the order of the 10th of June, for which they had waited, and which they had exerted themselves to obtain on account of those very goods, and under wJdcJi their rivals in business ivere then importing similar articles, being also far more than they loould have had to pay either under the Mexican tariff or under that published by General Worth. CONVENTION WITH OBEAT BRITAIN. 345 lUZ. this the 3d to had Com- li her riff to 3 than L been ff con- lain in I which d of an le tariff t of the Upon ities im- 1 ' ' and 3ut were of their e not to aimants 4,952 43 2,316 82 it, 269 25 under the hich they oods, and IV articles, under the ^ '!i\ In short, they were unable to compete either with those traders who imported previous to the arrival of the " Susan " and ** G. W. Ran- dall," or a/ifer their arrival. The amount of excosH is made out in the following manner : On 54 bales of woolen and worsted fabrics per invoice, $7,813 35, the claimants had to pay. for duties $11,106 58. By the order from Washington the duties of these goods would be only $2,344. Under the Mexican tariff they would have been $3,Y76 97, showing an excess of $8,762. The duties in this case are equal to 142 per cent, on the original value, and exceed the market value. On cotton fabrics the claimants had to pay more than they would have had to pay under the new tariff by $7,154 29 ; to which must be added $2,961 in respect of abatement on damage which the claimants would have been entitled to under tlie new tariff — making a gross total of excess duties paid, $18,877. The United States government have hitherto resisted this claim on two grounds* — the first being that a similar application, made by Baron Gerolt, the Prussian minister, on behalf of certain German merchants, had been refused ; the second, that the act was not retro- spective, and that the Secretary of the Treasury could not remit the duties. With respect to the first ground, it will be found, as appears by Mr. Marcy's dispatch of June 26, 1847, to Baron Gerolt, that the application of the German merchants was, in fact, very different, although he supposed it to be '' similar," from that made by the pre- sent claimants. Those merchants (the Germans) shipped their goods from Germany with reference to the Mexican tariff. Immediately, and at the time, however, of their actual arrival. General Worth's tariff was in force, which had reduced the duties very considerably ; but before their goods were fully entered, the tariff of the 30th March, raising the duties levied under General Worth's tariff, but still placing them much belotv the Mexican tariff, came into operation ; and it was from paying the duties under this last tariff that they sought relief. The United States government, however, very properly conceived that the merchants, having actually shipped those goods on the faith of the heavy Mexican tariff, could not complain of having to pay the comparatively light tariff of March 30, although a still lighter one, See Mr. Marcy's dispatch to Mr. Crampton of January 8, 1848. 346 ADJUSTMENT OF CLAIMS UNDER THE I II namely, that established by General Worth, might have intervened and actually did intervene, between tlie two. But this is tiot the case of the claimants ; thoir agents at Vera Cruz ordered on the cargoes from Havana on the faith of General Worth's tariff ; and it is from the mistakes which had inadvertently crept into the Washington tariff, and which, as soon as pointed out, were corrected, that tlioy seek re- lief; they having themselves pointed out the mistake, and deposited their goods to abide the correction ; that correction, however wh«>n made, being declared not retrospective in its effects. The precedent of the German merchants is then inapplicable to the present case, and cannot be considered as binding on the United States government so as to prevent them granting the relief now prayed. With regard to the second ground of objection, it may be that the act of Congress was not retrospective ; but this fact does not lessen the right of the claimants to eciuitable relief; on the contrary, it is this fact which renders the present claim necessary. Neither is it an an- swer to tlie claim to say that relief could not be granted under the act of March 3, 1849, which only enables the Secretary of the Treasury, without application to Congress, to grant relief to merchants in respect of duties " improperly levied or imposed," The duties, however, in this case, in strict law, were ''properly levied and imposed," because there was in existence a tariff imposing them sufficient in itsi If to warrant the levying ; but this imposition was founded on a mistake, and when the mistake was corrected, which it was immediately on being pointed out, (the goods in the meantime being kept in bond,) both justice and equity seem to me to point to the relief of the claim- ants. Nor in granting this relief would any advantage be given to them over other merchants, for all they wanted was to be allowed to introduce tlieir goods into the market, paying the same duties that goods introduced at the same time were paying ; and, this being de- nied to them, the claim arises. It is clear to me that Mr. Walker's opinion only went to the prac- ticability of granting relief under the congressional act of March 30, 1849. The commissioners, however, have nothing to do with that act, which is applicable only to the Secretary of the Treasury. If we find the claim to be a fair and equitable one, we are bound to ailmit it, leaving in the case of the United States to Congress, and in that of Wa able In tha^ lint I ami tabj oftl Brij pro! CONVENTION WITH GREAT BRITAIN. 847 case goes from iriff, k re- (sited wh«»u edent 3, and jnt 80 I at the len the . 18 this an an- the act easury, L respect ever, in because it8. U to mistake, lately on in bond,) he claim- > criven to lUowed to uties that being de- 3 the prac- March 30, th that act, If we find ;o admit it, 1 in that of Great Britain to Parliament, the provision of the means of paying what wo award. Looking, then, at the fact that tliose goods were ordered on to Vera Cruz on the faith of one tariff ; That on arriving there they were met by a tarift' which imposed duties that amounted to a complete confiscation cf their goods ; That the goods were deposited, or in other words allowed to remain, in bond under the seals of the collector ; That they were afterwards compelled to pay those duties, and to in- troduce the goods into the market, at the same that goods paying the modified duties were introduced ; That in the opinion of Mr. Dimond, the co"octor of Vera Cruz, who knew all the circumstances, the claimants' case " was fairly stated, and well entitled to the considerate attention of the govern- ment ;" and that the professed object of the government, as stated by Mr. Walker in his preamble to the tariff of March 30, (in which the mistake was made,) was to " substitute a moderate duty when com- pared with that imposed by Mexico," but which, in fact, through the mistake made and afterwards corrected, "substituted an exorbitant duty when compared with that imposed by Mexico," the claimants are, on every principle of equity, entitled to the benefit of the correc- tion, and to have their goods placed on the same footing as similar goods introduced at the same time in the same market. A doubt has been raised by my colleague as to whether, Mr. Walker having stated his inability to remit the excess duties, we are able to go behind his authority, and do that which he could not do. In this doubt I confess I do not participate. It is clear to my mind that, finding a claim to be a just one, and deserving of relief, we are by the terms of the convention bound to admit it, loholly irrespective of whether or not any officer of either governvient could or could not, under any jyarticular statute, have given the relief prayed for. It is clear that Congress itself could have given the relief if, on ex- amination, it was found to be a case in which the parties were equi- tably entitled to it; and I hold that Congress through the Executive of the United States, and Parliament through the Executive of Great Britain, have delegated to us the task of inquiring into all claims properly presented under the first and third sections of the convention 348 ADJUSTMENT OF CLAIMS UNDER TUB of 1853, and of deciding upon their morits whether they arc entitled to redress or not; and if to redress, to what amount. To liold ((therwiso might have had the eflfect of fVustra i , tho whole object of tho convention, for it is not to he assumed that tl^^r government knew particularly what were the exact nature and extent of the powers of individual officers of State under the respective con- stitutions of the two countries. I award, therefore, the sum of $18,877 87, with interest from the 22d Novemher, 1847, to the 15th January, 1856. Il'i J !. CONVENTION WITH GREAT BRITAIN. 349 Batks, Umpire: This claim arises out of the following circumstances : Messrs. Mc- Oalmont, Qreavcs & Co., being engaged in the trade to Mexico in the year 1846, prepared a largo omount of goods for that market; but hearing of the declaration of war and blockade of the Mexican ports by the forces of the United Stotcs, they shipped their goods to Ha- vana, there to wait the removal of the blockade and the order of their Vera Cruz partner. These goods were prepared for the Mexican market under the sup- position that they would have to pay duties according to the Mexican tariff. Vera Cruz was captured by the American forces in March, 1847, and General Worth opened the trade, and issued, on the Ulst March, a temporary tariff, to remain in force until further orders from the United States government at Washington. This temporary tariff established generally the same duties as were payable in the United States, with ten per cent, ad valorem in addi- tion. Representations were made to General Worth, and he, in con- sequence, made some alterations in his tempoi'ary tariff. After these modifications, the claimants' partner at Vera Cruz sent orders to Havana for their goods to be sent forward. They were shipped per Susan and per George W. Randall, and were daily expected to arrive, when the new tariff (dated 31st March) was received from Washington. The provisions of this tariff were very injurious to the interests of the claimants, who remonstrated, and sent immediately to Washington, praying for modifications. The Susan and George W. Randall arrived on the 27tli May. The collector of the customs at Vera Cruz permitted the goods to remain in deposit until an answer came from Washington to the representations uf the claimants. On the 10th June an order came from Washington, altering the tariff, and loft nothing to be desired. The claimants then proceeded to the custom-house to pay tlieir duties, according to the improved tariff. The collector refused to receive such duties ; but demanded the duties of the unnioditied tariff of the United States, (of the 31st March,) which the claimants were compelled to pay, viz : $11,106 58 2,344 00 ""'8^2 58 2,961 00 ^U33 58 ,50 ..^STMB»T 0. CA^S ««»U THE 1 worsted goods, amount paid on 54 tales woo«en -d «'^«^.|^^ ^.^^ ^^ ^^ ,,„, Would have paid, under XI ^'''''' / a an abatement of duty, in conse- ^ ^ : „ ^nt levied according to law ■ nevertheless, as the modifications . ^^^^ ^^^^ ^,^„„^4 ^ Tggestion of the claimants, . --a hard ^^^^^^^.^__ , th! only P»rt«« »<>* =''^'""* , ffiM bv F M. Dimond, collector. '^Ilppear tohe in O'*-, and cert,fi^ ^y^^^^^ ^, „„t,„ite It is i' etty certain ^^<^^^'^'^^Zm l>-e allowed the claimant „naer,ind the case, or I think h ywo„ ^^^,^ ^ therefore aw^d from a large invoice o-"»* f ^^t^er than they wonld have paid other portion mast have been ia. nnder the Mexican tariff. „ i„led in conformity with the "these duties, as before stated we. h^^-fj^ ^„, ,,,,,,ip, in the ,,. ., and it is only the ^^^,, eommission in granting any c«e of the woolens that conUl justity portion of the claim. 1 I 'i li CONVENTION WITH GREAT BRITAIN. 351 6 58 14 00 5^58 tw I ling to e at the tie docvi- loUector. Qot quite slaimai^ts )re award entatives, ee dollars ,n goods, I tton gootls ities on the have paid ty with the ships in the ranting any KERFORD & JGNKIN. The claimants were British merchants residing in Mexico, and, prior to the war between tlic United States and that country, had ordered goods, designed for the Mexican market, to bo transmitted by the over-land route to Santa Fc, and thence to the interior of Mexico, with a right of drawback of duty, as provided by the laws of the United States. Ou the arrival of the goods at Philadelphia, war existed between the United States and Mexico, and application was made to the government for liberty to proceed with the goods, with right of drawback as before, stating the great hardship of a refusal. Special permission was {.'iven "under the peculiar circumstances involved, and without giving rise to any inferences as regards the condition of Santa FC\" Held that such a permission was a mere license of transmission of goods to the border, with full notice of the risks arising from a state of war, and, that a subsequent necessary detention of a caravan conveying the goods into the interior of Mexico, by an armed force invading the country, until afler the success of such force was secured, was justifiable. The claimants are British merchants resident in Zacatecas, in Mexico, and had been many years engaged in trade in that country. By a law of Congress, of March 3, 1845, merchandize was author- ized to be exported over land to Canada, and to Mexico, via Santa Fe, with the benefit of drawback on duties. In 1846, the claimants had purchased a ([uantity of goods in Eng- land, designed for the Mexican trade, and adapted especially for that market. These goods they had ordered to h"i shipped to Philadelphia, designing to take them by the over-land route to Santa Fe, and from thence transport them to the interior of Mexico. They had arranged to have mules and wagons in readiness in Mexico, to take on the goods on their arrival. The goods arrived in Philadelphia, in June, 1846, at which time war existed between the United States and Mexico, and commercial intercourse between the two countries was stopped. The claimants, however, made earnest application to the government to be permitted to proceed with their goods, with the accustomed allowance of draw- = ;fi pi ; ! is ^1 III 852 ADJUSTMENT OF CLAIMS UNDER THE back ; and representations were made of the great loss which would accrue to them if this indulgence was not granted. The request was acceded to in a specij^ order, in which the Secretary of the Treasury stated that *;;*was granted "under the peculiar circumstances involved, and without giving rise to any inferences as regards the condition of Santa F6, or to act as a precedent inf other cases." The %oods were forwarded from Philadelphia early in July, 1846, and arrived at Santa Fe, where a certificate was issued for the return of the duties, October 7, 1846. Before reaching Santa Fe, the cara- van transporting the goods was overtaken by a military detachment uncrer Colonel Price, and detained by him ten days. They were also delayed by a military force under Captain Walton. On the arrival of the caravan at Santa Fe, General Kearney was in command, and he permitted it to proceed on its way to Chihuahua; and after- wards it was detained by Colonel Doniphan, who had command of the forces then proceeding to the capture of the city and province of Chihuahua. The caravan was kept with the troops, as is alleged, some six or eight months, at great expense arising from loss of mules, consump- tion of provisions, damage of goods, and other injuries. At length a general battle was fought with the Spanish forces of the province, near Chihuahua, who were defeated, and the city and province wcro taken; after which the claimants received no further molestation. It was contended that the detention of the claimants was justifiable l)ecau8e they were proceeding directly to the enemy's country with a full knowledge of the numbers and design of the American forces. They liad also merchandise which would be a valuable assistance to ■the Mexicans, and on which the^duties to be paid would amount to a larse sum. St -mi The duties paid in the United .^tates, forfWiich they received a drawback, were §5o,108. The duties in Mexico would be a much larger amount. It ai)pears that, notwithstanding all tlie detention, the goods sold so that the claimants realized a large profit, though much less tliau they would have done had tliere been no delay. Hannen, agent and counsel for Great Britain. Thomas, agent and counsel for the United States. of III III: • rcg c •1 ill a incr the 1 nee 1 ap( '1' CONVENTION WITH GREAT BRITAIN. 353 iHTOUld it was jasury olved, tion of , 1846, I return tie cara- icbment ey were On the )nimand, ^nd after- ,nd of the •ovince oi nie six or consump- At length f province, ,vince were station. 8 justifiaWo Lntry with a ican forces, assistance to amount to a y leceivetl a a l)c a much , lie goods soul | inch less than | m HI Thomas, Counsel and Agent for the United States : This is a claim of Messrs. Kerford & Jenkin, merchants, of Zaca- tecas, Mexico, who were domiciled in that city and carried on trade there, during the war hctween the United States and Mexico. The claim is for $300,000, damages alleged to have been experienced by the claimants in consequeace of the detention of their caravan of goods by Colonel Doniphan, between Santa Fc and Chihuahua, in 1846. The declaration or memorial of the claimants states that they are British-born subjects, but that they have resided and been merchants at Zacatecas during the last eighteen years. I shall oppose the allowance of this claim on two grounds: 1st. The commission has no jurisdiction of the case, inasmuch as the claimants were domiciled in Mexico during the war, and by the law of nations were subjects of that country : and 2d. If they had the right to appear here as claimants against the United States, they have no just or legal ground of complaint. Every person domiciled in the enemy's country is regarded by the law of nations as a subject of that country. Kerford & Jenkin bi-ing domiciled in Mexico during the war, were not "British subjects" in the sense in which these terms are used in the convention, and hence have no right to aj)pear before this commission. International law does not enter within a State to ascertain who enjoys the municipal rights in a higher or lower degree, but it is out- side of all nations, and regards every person as a member of that society in which he is found. This is the lule for the intercourse of nations in y-'^ace as well as in war. The «iUostion now before you is, however, oac v.hich arose in time of war, and we shall, thovefore, only be con?crned with the law in regard to belligerents. On this point Chancellor Kent says: "Ir'a person has a settlement in a hostile country by the maintenance of a commercial establish- inont there, he will be considered a hostile character, and a '-^ubject of the enemy's country in regard to his commercial transactions con- nected with that establishment. The position is a clear one, that if a person goes into a foreign country and engages in trade, he is, by 28 Vii 8i'i ^^* wedaracrchantof that country, an* the la. of n,>tio„B, to be oon-derei ^ - ^^^^^^^^ ^^ ,^„^^;,^ „, , subject to all cWU P»n- ;;]' t xetain the privilege, of a neutral tral, and he cannot he i:"°'"'2i° ation in an enemy's country. eha;aetcr during his res.den^e - - .^^„,, „,,, Uving in Me-co Great Britain «a« "''» 'f ' J^ ° ,„,, recording to the authority o then at .ar with *eUmted Spates » ^^^ ^^^^^ , Kent, they tooU *!>-»' --^^^"f that character and come V>e,e n.ade they cannot du^s then«e^ ^^^,^ ^^ ^„j,tt V If ,„d claim a right to tha -'"»''; "^^^ „,, eountry of the hell.ge- The to the advantage of any one to a^ op ^^^ ^^^^^.^^ ^^^^^,,, ,ent.henmsttake al»o «« d^'^-^.t fo, all commercial pur- Ch cellor Kent«ia,. '''^^ XT^^---'^ *° *"■= ^^ 1 Les the domicil of the Vf^'^Zl^,,^ has been repeatedly and S,beco,ne« *«*««' f'^"™frthe United States." I have. explicitly admitted in the ^^^ ..Hamiralty courts, shown to th. in another case, by c,tat>ons from tl.e .^ ^__^^^^^ ^^y^ ommission that the »-; '^^ ™;^;: her Majesty's agent refuses even a single departure from t and 5^ ^^^^ ^^^,^,„„,. i tl acknowledge the appl cab.U y or »* J,.,„, ,, ,imost ti>e only had suppo.ed that Amer«^us w^^^ he .^^^^^^^ ^ insubordinate people, but ";°",„,^^^ ,„ as we are in America. The even members of the bar 'l-^-^^^^^^, „„, .hide by the deo.s.on of eounselforher Majesty s ^ove ■ me 't „f hissuper.or, lord hi, own courts-, and '-- <^'-^,.,, „„„ has recently announced nurenaon, Secretary ot i'oiei^u lh.w of natrons on this vern-t^ _^^ ^.^^^ hat would Having bc^n asUed hy he. »*7 . j,^,, ,„ B„sHia in the event of he *: co;dition of British ^^f;>;^^^:^l, ,.aotiee of nations, a „ar. Lord Clarendon says: By tb ^^^^ ^^ ,,,„h, lell gerent has a right to --"^ ' ^^^^^ ,„,„„„reial estabhshments •„ a'hostile country, or -'-;;7*rt, „,,,„! , allies, enem.es, therein, whether these people be by " ^i,;,,, , contend, and rv-^ubjects." '^^^^'^^Z:^.^^^^^^-^^^ in conformity with ,t an Amc.« ^^^^^ ^^^ „,arded b) this war is an enemy oi Or a Br tam, ^^^^^^ ^^^^ ^^ ^, ,„„. t^; court in England. H, '«" '^.^^l^, declare that Americans, :;LedasBritishsubjeets,youw«p.^c^J__^^ ^^^^^^. ^^^^^^^ domiciled in Russ.a, w,ll not CONVENTION WITH GREAT BRITAIN. 355 and neu- sutral .try." exico, rity of leace is le bere ed. H bellige- aracter. lial pur- place of edly and I have, n to this I without it refuses isions. 1 t the only there are rica. The decision oi erior,Lord announced ^rhat would the event of nations, a who reside ahlishments enemies, or contend, and Russia during regarded hy are to he con- at Americans, hv the peace wliich may be made. The American may bring forward hereafter a claim for injurieif done to him and his property in Kussia by Great Britain ; and when some future commission shall be organized to ad- judicate claims between the United States and Great Britain, this man, who was in Russia during the war, giving his money, his spirit, and his industry, to maintain the war against Great Britain, may i)rcsent himself before that commission and say, ' ' when you made peace Avitli Russia you did not settle my claims, you settled the claims of Russian subjects against England, but I am an American citizen, and I claim indemnity for injuries done to me and my property." To admit the claim of Kerford & Jenkin, would establish the prin- ciple that would embrace the case I have stated, and I should think her Majesty's government would be the last to assent to it. In a pre- vious discussion of this principle, in the case of the Laurents, I cited several cases on this point from Lord Stowell ; and, though it may not be necessary, I would now refer to what he says in the case of the Emb- (len, 1st Robinson's Reports. In speaking of a foreign merchant who had carried on trade in Holland, he observes that " a Prussian born subject, by engaging in trade for ten years in Amsterdam, had become ii perfect Dutcliman. " These claimants were engaged in trade during eighteen years in Mexico, and the law of nations must have wrought a like change in their national character. This view of the law of nations is fully sustained by the decisions that are now almost daily transpiring at Doctors' Commons. The present war between the allies and Russia has already given rise to several cases which determine anew this question. I find the judgment of Dr. Lushingtou, in the case of the Abo, directly to this point. The learned doctor says : " A claim has been set up on behfilf of a genf[.,man stating himself to be a British subject, resident at Cadiz; hut, as far as every rule of law can be applied, this gentleman holds a Spanish national character, and not that of a British subject, because it is a very just principle that in time of war a person is con- sidered as belonging to that n.ation where he is resident and where he carries on his trade." But in tlie case of the Aina, which will be found reported in the Jurist of the 5th of August, this distinguished admiralty judge is even more emphatic and clear in presenting this view of the law. On tha question as to the national character of the claimant, whether he is m 356 ADJUSTMENT OF CLAIMS UNDER THE iiill to be considered as an enemy or a neutral, Dr. Lusliington observes : " It is stated tbat he is a citizen of the Hanse Tow* of Lubeck, and consul of his Majesty the King of the Netherlands at Helsingfors, Finland, in the empire of Russia. Upon this I can put but one con- struction — that he is a resident in Finland, and carrying on his busi- ness there. / take it to he a point without controversy, that when a neutral, after the commencement of war , continues to reside in the enemy's country for the purposes of trade, he is considered as adhering to the enemy, and as disqualified from claiming as a neutral altogether. ' ' If his character of neutral is destroyed, if he is a belligerent, the author- ities declare that he must take the disadvantages as well as the ad- vantages of the country of his adoption. There never could be a ti rmiuation to a war and its consequences, if the various individuals of foreign origin who in this migrating age choose to take up their .lomicil in the enemy's country could from time to time bring forward claims that arose during the war, long after peace was made and all claims settlad by the belligerent governments. The agent for her Majesty's government has observed that these, and other cases which I have heretofore cited from the admiralty courts, relate to questions of property, and that no direct adjudication has been made upon the national character of the parties. In this assertion her Majesty's agent, I venture to say, is greatly in error. The right of property has, no doubt, been the cause of the litigation ; but, in order to determine that right, it has been necessary to fix the national character of the parties claiming it, and this has uniformly been settled by the court of admiralty before determining the right of property. The identical construction of the words " British subject," for which I contend, was settled by the privy council in Drummond's case, re- ported in 2d Knapp; and that decision is corroborated by the Supreme Court in the case of I'v Pirarro. Tin's court was called U])on to say -.vhat was meant by the term "subjects of his Catholic Majesty," used in a treaty between the United States and Spain ; and the doctrine held in Drummond's case by the admiralty court, and by every British publicist, was fully sus- tained. It was hold that these words must be interprctjd by the law of nations. In delivering the opinion of the court, Juuge Story said, i F le wl CONVENTION WITH GREAT BRITAIN. 357 ■ves : , and ^fors, 5 con- busi- hen a aeniy's to the .." If mthor- fche ad- d be a ividuals ip tbeir forward 1 and all lat these, idmiralty udication In this in error, igation ; o fix the uniformly le right of for which 8 case, rc- le SuiKcme y the term letween the mend's case ,s fully sus- hy the law Story said, II emphatically, "that a person domiciled in a country, and enjoying the protection of its sovereign, is deemed a subject of that country." The British agent has called my attention to Genesse's case, and desires me to reconcile that judgment with the construction I have put on the other decision of the privy council. That will not be a difficult mattifr ; before entering upon the subject, however, I must express my regret that the British commissioner, in delivering his opinion on this principle in the Laurents case, should have adopted, as he must have done without examination, the view which her Majes- ty's agent thought proper to take of Genesse's case ; for it appears to me impossible that an unprejudiced mind can fail to admit that it is in entire harmony with the cases I have heretofore cited. Genesse's case is this : In 1793 Genesse was the chief clerk of Boyd and Kerr, British bankers established in Paris. They owned certain rentes viageres, (life annuities,) which stood in the name of Genesse. The books and papers of this house were seized, and Genesse with them. The French government confiscated the property, and executed Genesse. Boyd and Kerr claimed compensation under the treaty granting in- demnity to British subjects for private property seized and appropri- ated, and it was allowed by the privy council on the ground that they had returned to London, and were living luider the rule and govern- ment of Great Britain at the time of the confiscation. In proof of the correctness of this decision, the very decree which pronounced sentence of death on Genesse gives, as a reason for his condemnation, that he was associated with these persons, Boyd and Kerr, who were, it was alleged, then in London. It says he was con- demned for being a member of that "execrable conspiracy, directed and plotted by Boyd and Kerr, English bankers, who are enjoying in London impunity for their crimes. " The British agent and the com- missioner have both assumed that those persons were domiciled in France ; whereas this decree itself proves the contrary. They had left Paris, and had resumed their allegiance to Great Britain, before the confiscation took place. Sir William Scvitt, in the cases of the Indian Chief and President, held, that the moment a citizen even turns his face towai'd home, aninio revertandi, his domicil reverts. Boyd and Kerr were, therefore, redintegrated subjecis of Great Britain when their property was confiscated, actually rendering allegiance, ; l! > ii* ■:y the collector of that port. Here the transaction was closed, the !' 1 III «i:t -I, i|: ^ s>- .,^ IMAGE EVALUATION TEST TARGET (MT-3) ■tt lii 1 2.2 1.1 z m S la 12.0 u muu PhotQgrafte Sciences Corporation ^ \ •^ s> 23 WIST MAIN STIIIT WnSTIt.N.Y. USM (716)I73-4S03 ^%^^' ^^V^ ^ 4** \ K ^ ^^ HI HI!! !! 8d2 ADJUSTMENT OF CLAIMS UNDER THE obligation of the United States ceased, and the property then became mixed with that of the enemy.*' In conclusion, I would observe that it is irregular in the proceedings of judicial tribunals to consider the merits of a case before determining whether that tribunal has authority to decide it. I am not unwilling, however, that the umpire shall look at the merits of tHe claim, for even if it be regarded within the jurisdiction of the commission, I conceive that I have shown that it is unsupported by law, and has no foundation in justice. ^^ » .- ■Mf'-^ ^ # i t 'K^ ---■*■' ,.»..,? CONVENTION WITH GBBA.T BRITAIN. 863 I became )ceeding8 ermining nwilling, claim, for mission, I nd has no Upham, United States Commissioner : t . The abstract of the case drawtf up presents fully all the particulars necessary for its consideration. There is no doubt that the detention of the caravan, caused by the military forces, which were also proceed- ing to the same point in the enemy's country, was a serious damage to the claimants. There is good reason to believe the damage would have been far greater, however, had no permission been granted to proceed with the goods beyond Philadelphia, as they were ordered especially for the Mexican roarket. ^- The permission given was designed for the relief of the claimants on account of the partici^r circumstances of the case, and was so received. Injustice has been done to the government by representing it as a pledge or guaranty that the caravan should proceed unmolested by the war existing between the two countries ; but the exact reverse of this is the fact. The goods were allowed to proceed, with the benefit of a drawback for the return of duties, but they were to incur all the risks dependent on the condition of the two countries on their arrival at Santa Fe, on the frontier, and in their further progress to the interior of Mexico. * ^ It was specially stated in the permit that it was granted on account of " the peculiar circumstances of the case, and without giving rise to any inferences as regards the condition of Santa Fe, or to act as a pre- cedent in other cases." Its evident purport, as I have stated it, could not have been misun- derstood. The sole question, then, which arises in the case is, whether the subjection of these parties to the incidents attending a state of war in Mexico constitutes a just ground of claim against the United States. It is not denied, I believe, that their detention was eminently demanded as a precautionary measure for the security of the American troops . The American forces were then proceedin g on a very diftsperate adventure into the heart of the enemy's country, against a force far greater than their own, and for the capture of an extensive province, having a large population. Their sole security depended on the want of knowledge, on the part of the Mexicans, of the number and condition of the men sent against them. The claimants were also taking to the very forces arrayed 1^ 864 ADJUSTMENT OP CLAIMS UNDBB THE against the Americans merchandise of immediate use to those forces, and upon which the enemy would receive at once a large amount of material aid in the duties to be levied upon the goods. The detention of the claimants' caravan, under these circumstances, was evidently a military necessity. The claimants voluntarily incurred the risk of this liability with the permission to do so, as a special favor from the American government, and with full warning as to the contingencies to which they might be subjected.^ ' ■ m^ The claim, then, which is made in this case comes with a bad grace from these parties. Had the goods been confiscated after they were permitted to proceed with them to the frontier, or had they been un- necessarily detained, or had there been any wilful harshness in the mode of carrying into eflfect the measures adopted, a claim might, perhaps, have been sustained ; but there is no evidence of this charac- ter on either of the points named. The learned counsel for the British government has cited the case of Harmony v. Mitchell, 13 Hoioard Hep., 115, as in point, and, in other respects, has argued the case with his usual eminent ability. In the case cited, however, a large portion of the goods, then on their way to the Mexican market, under circumstances similar to the present case, were seized and converted to the public use, and the remainder were abandoned. The jury also found that the seizure was not caused by urgent or immediate necessity. The case, therefore, is wholly diverse from the present. There are serious doubts whether the finding of the jury in that case was warranted by the evidence as reported, but, with the facts thus found by them, the judgment of court follows, of course. In the case before us, there is no reason to doubt that the detention of the caravan was dictated by imperious necessity, and was an exer- cise of*power clearly within the acknowledged and just right of the commander of the American forces. The claimants stobn in bo rela- tion to the United States government that relieved them from such a necessity. Their venture was, moreover, a successful one, though their profits would have been much larger had no detention occurred. I see, therefore, no just ground to sustain this claim on any principle of law or equity. »* OONVBNTION WITH OBEAT BRITAIN. 366 e forces, nount of Dstances, vfiih the rerntnent, might be had grace they were y been un- less in the lim might, ihis charac- L the case of nd, in other ity. In the their way to Lresent case, lainder were by urgent or srse from the y in that case le facts thus the detention -was an exer- ; right of the jA in HO rela- from such a one, though ,tion occurred, any principle Hornby, British Coramissioner : . / In considering the case, stated that he came to a different result from his colleague ; he regarded the right given to the claimants to embark in the trade with Mexico as extending not merely to the « Mexican frontier, hut that in justice and equity it extended to the entire destination of tfie goods, and that the risk of detention, if any occurred, should rest on the government who had held out encourage- ment to proceed, and not on the claimants. He held that the burden of proof, showing the necessity of detention, was on the government, and should not have been left as a mere mat- ter of inference from general facts in the case, but direct evidence should have been given on the point ; and that substantially the same evidence existed in this case as in the case of Harmony v. Mitchell, cited by counsel, where the jury found for the plaintiffs. * A serious injury has resulted. It may have been caused by the necessity of war ; but he considered the claimants as having in sub- stance a license to trade with the enemi^ and that it should not be revoked or prejudiced without compensation for the damage. t ^ $ ri m i • If ■WW Jt 866 ADJUSTMENT OF CLAIMS UNDER THE H ii ' Bates, Umpire : This plaim is put in on behalf of Messrs. Kerford & Jenkin, who have been established in Zacatecas, as merchants, for eighteen years ; and have been engaged in trade with Santa Fe, Chihuahua, and other places in the adjoining districts. • .' • - The facts and circumstances alleged are as follows: In the year 1843, the Congress of the United States passed an act authorizing the export of merchandise overland to Canada, and to Mexico, via Santa Fe, with the benefit of a drawback of duties, and the claimants had, in 1846, prepared in England, a quantity of goods suited to the Santa Fe trade, and apparently not suited to any other market. The goodu arrived in Philadelphia, by the ship ''Saranac," in June, 1846; the customs entry is dated 19th June, 1846; at which time war existed between the United States and Mexico, and all com- mercial intercourse was stopped. The agents of the claimants, on 18th June, 1846, petitioned the government of the United S^tes^ stating that these goods had b^pn prepared expressly for the Santa F6 trade, and, being suited to no other market, immense loss would be sustained if they were not per- mitted to carry out their views ; and that they had five hundred mules, forty wagons, and forty- five men waiting at Fort Independence for the goods, at the charge of Mr. Kerford and partners ; . they, therefore, prayed permission to send their goods forward, with benefit of draw- back. . ^ The United States government granted the applicatioW* under the peculiar circumstances involved, and without giving risif^ any infer- ences as regards the condition of Santa Fe, or to act as a, precedent in other cases." The export entry was dated June 29, 1846, for 986 packages goods to Santa Fe and Chihuahua, by the route of the Missouri river ; and the invoice value, exclusively of charges, was £14,210 16«. lldf. The goods arrived at Fort Independence, in transitu for Santa Fe in New Mexico. The inspector's certificate is dated the 30ch July, 1846. The caravan, consisting, according to Mr. Kerford's statement, of 45 wagons, 600 mules, 250 oxen, and about forty horses, valued at about |80,000 ; but, according to Mr. Gentry's statement, of 46 wagons, 600 mules, 350 oxen, and 20 horses, valued at about $68,150, started CONVENTION Tf ITH GREAT BRITAIN. 367 n, who years ; id other he year zing the la Santa nts had, he Santa mac," in at which i all com- bioned the I had b^n Ited to no re not pev- ired mules, jnce for the therefore, it of draw- " under the any infer- )recedent in kages goods i river*, and Santa Fe in 1 July, 1846. ement, of 45 ued at ahout f 46 wagons, ;,150, started from Fort Independence, under the care of 80 armed men, in the month of August. The precise day is not stated, but it was late in the season, the month of May being the best mouth to start in. After six weeks' march, without interruption, they were overtaken by a detachment of Missouri volunteers, under Colonel Price ; to whom Mr. Kerford exhibited thtf permit, and other papers received from the custom-house at Philadelphia, and represented that he was a British subject. Colonel Price examined every wagon, and detained the cara- van ten days, and then suffered it to proceed, and they arrived at Santa Fe, according to Mr. Kerford, on or about the end of October, but the consular certificate for the return of the duties was dated Santa Fe, October 7, 1846. -. 't M On their arrival at Santa Fe, Mr. Kerford waited on General Kear- ney, the United States commander of the district, and complained to him of the treatment he bad received from Colonel Price. Qdneral Kearney assured him that the road was open to Chihuahua, and that he might proceed with his caravan without risk of further interrup- tionj upon which they proceeded for several days, and had arrived in a wild country, where no supplies or provisions could be obtained, when they were stopped by auotlier body of American volunteers, under the command of Captain Walton, who, on being informed that the goods were British property, allowed them to proceed ; but, at the end of two days, sent a body of 200 men after them, who commanded them to halt, and mounted guard around the wagons, with orders to shoot the first man who should attempt to move. They thought it best to submit, although capable of forcing a passage, as the men were all accustomed t^he use of fire-arms. About a month afterwards. Colonel Doniphan took the command of the forces. It appeared to be the duty of the claimant to submit, and he, with the caravan, was detained for two months, according to Mr. Kerford, but according to Mr. Gentry for six weeks, during which the men were exposed to the inclemency of a severe winter, and were re- duced to extreme want, and many of the mules and oxen perished. The claimant applied to the commissary for relief, but none was afforded, as the troops were on half rations. During the whole of this detention, the claimant made repeated applications to be re- leased, which were refused on the ground that the introduction of so much valuable property, though it did not include any munitions of ._'^St^ M< 368 ADJUSTMENT OF CLAIMS UNDER THE i war, would be a great advantage to the enemy from the duties accru- ing upon it. ': At length Colonel Doniphan moved forward to attack Chihuahua, the caravan being ordered to travel in the rear, until a battle took place, in which the Americans were successful. Even then the cara- van was not allowed to proceed, but was detained for several weeks, (six weeks, according to Mr. Gentry,) when the vigilance of the guard having been relaxed, they prosecuted the journey and reached Chi- huahua the latter end of February, 1847, having been detained three and a half months beyond the time usually required for the journey. In consequence of this delay, the goods were sold at nearly thirty per cent, below what they would have realized from them at an earlier period. To show how little reliance can be placed on the only evidence in support of this claim, the following notes from depositions on oath of Mr. Kerford, and Mr. Reuben Gentry, are placed in juxtu-position, remarks thereon being made in italics : Mr, Ker/ord's statement. Messrs. Kerford & Jenkin were established in trade at Zacatecas, for eighteen years. Imported 986 packages of goods by the " Saranac," and obtained leave, on petition, to export the same under drawback. The goods were forwarded to Fort Independence. The caravan consisted of 45 wagons, about 600 mules, 250 oxen, and about 40 horses, valued at about $80,000. under an escort of 80 men. The caravan started from Fort Inde- pendence in August, 1846, They proceeded six weeks with- out interruption, when they were overtaken by Colonel Price, who examined all the wagons, &c. , Beuhen Gentry's statemmt.tt Reuben Gentry was general manager of the caravan in 1846. There were 986 packages of goods. The caravan, co|||isting of 46 wagons, 500 mules, 350 oxen, and 20 horses, valued at $68,150, un- der conduct of 80 men, started from Fort Independence early in July, 1846. (This is clearly incorrect; ths goods were not there at this time.) Proceeded without interruption as far as Council Grove, Missouri, and were then overtaken by two companies of volunteers, under '- 7 accTU- Luahua, tie took be cara- l weeks, le guard Ked Ohi- led three journey, rly thirty jm at an yidence in on oath of a-position, dement. >s- as general m in 1846. ackages of CONVENTION WITH GREAT BRITAIN. 369 isting of 46 50 oxen, and 8,150, nn- men, started ence early in incorrect; tU at this time.) t interruption ove, Missouri, taken hy two nteers, under and forcibly detained the caravan ten days. They were then per- mitted to proceed. V The caravan arrived at Santa Fi on or about the end of October. (The consular certificate for re- turn of duties was dated October 7, 1846.) At Santa Fe, Mr. Kerford waited on General Kearney, and was as- sured that th? road was open, &c. After leaving Santa Fe, pro- ceeded several days till they ar- rived in a wild country, Sec. ; were stopped by another body of Ameri- can volunteers under Captain Wal- ton ; allowed to proceed, but, after two days, Captain Walton sent 200 men, who forcibly detained them. About a month afterwards. Colonel Doniphan took the com- mand. 24 Cifiptains McMillan and Horan, who overhauled the caravan and detained them one day. They went on for three days, and were overtaken by volunteers under a subaltern, who detained them, by order of Colonel Price, for ten days, at Cotton Creek, when Colo- nel Price came up, and examined all the wagons, &c. In consequence of this delay, they did not reach the watering place that day. At night, many of the oxen broke loose, and while the men were looking for them, the Indians came and carried away 35 piules ; they lost, also, 15 oxen. The result of the detention was that three weeks were consumed beyond the usual period in reach' ing Santa F^. Mr. Kerford had to go forward into New Mexico, and buy mules at exorbitant prices. Proceeded towards Chil r.aaua, and reached Val Verde early in November ; were then stopped by Captain Walton and forcibly de- tained six iceeTes, after which Colo- nel Doniphan took the command. Permission to proceed refused, al- though repeatedly applied for^ to Captain Walton, and Colonel Doniphan. 370 ADJUSTMENT OF CLAIMS UNDEB THE A P Found it necessary to submit, and were detained two months du- ring inclement weather, in which they suffered most severely, and lost many of the mules and oxen. Supplies were refused by the United States commander, and re- peated applications for permission to depart were refused on the plea that the duties on the goods would aid the enemy. On the 14th of December sent a formal protest. At length. Colonel Doniphan came up with reinforcements, and they marched forward, the cara- van following in the rear. Fol- lowed till a battle was fought, in which the Americans were success- ful. Even then were not allowed to proceed, and again detained several weeks. (That part of Genti'y'a narrative hy \ohicli the great loss of mules, dec. , is to he accounted for, appears to he assigned to an earlier period and a different locality in Mr. Ker- ford's statement.) {Query. — Waa it six weeks, or two months ? Which is correct?) The vigilance of the guard hav- ing relaxed, went on, and reached Chihuahua in the latter end of February, 1847. (In Mr. Kerf ord' s statement of the daim, they are said to have arrived On the 14th of December, sent a formal protest. The troops under Colonel Doni- phan proceeded towards El Paso ; caravan followed in the rear ; reached El Paso about the end of December. During this march the cattle were subject to great privations; there was no grass and little water, and many of the oxen, mules, and horses died; de- tained there fully six weeks, the cattle being nearly all starved with cold and want of food, many oxen and mules died, and almost all the horses. Permission to proceed still refused, which Mr. Gentry attributes to undue influ- ence of other traders, fearing the large supply would surfeit the market. After six weeks escaped the vigi- lance of the American forces, and reached Chihuahua towards the end of February, 1847 — they ought to have arrived by the 1st of No- vember, 1846. 5!"i CONVENTION WITH GREAT BRITAIN. 371 ., or in April, 1847. He makes a charge of interest to the middle of April.) er, sent el Doni- iil Paso ', 10 vear ', he end of is march to great no grass vny of the died-, de- weeks, the 11 starved food, many ^nd almost Imission to which Mr. [ndue infln- fearing the surfeit the [ped thevigi- forces, and Itowards the ]_they ought lie 1st of No- Marked value of goods depreci- ated 30percent.; goods sold nearly 30 per cent, below what they would have done at an earlier period. To add to their losses, the Uni- ted States army imposed an export duty on specie of 6 per cent. {This cannot have affected Mr. Ker/ord's interests, as Mr. Gentry 2')roves that the goods ivould, in the regular course, if no detention had occurred, have been disposed of hy the end of March, 1847 ; a7id Mr. Kerford, in his account, shotvs that the above duty was levied subsequent f) January, 1847.) {Tliistvouldnot allow threemonths for the journey.) •' Expended fully $40,000 in the purchase of food, &c. (Mr. Kerford claims $60,000/(W losses by forced sales in procuring food, dc.) Believes Colonel Doniphan had no orders to go beyond Santa Fe. General Kearney told them they might go on to Chihuahua, and many traders did so. Prices of the goods had fallen 25 to 30 per cent. ; can speak with certainty to the fact, having been engaged in this business in Chi- huahua during the year 1845 and most of 1846. Large sales were also forced, to buy food, &c. {Mr. Gentry teas absent during the period in question, and cannot therefore speak from his own knowl- edge.) Having gone fully into the cal- culation, believes the loss, from fall in price of goods and forced sales, to be - - - - $95,000 Mules, oxen, &c., lost - 17,750 Additional wages to men and to Mr. Gentry - 13,000 125,750 and is fully persuaded that the loss in consequence of detention is not less than $180,000, with interest from the end of March, 1847, when the sale of goods would have been completed. •PI 872 ADJUSTMENT OF CLAIMS UNDER THE I 8 (il/r. Kerford eatimatea the loaa, by depreciation in price and forced aalea, a< $125,000, or $30,000 more than Mr. Gentry's eatimate.) Periods of detention stated by Mr. Kerford : 10 days, several days, 2 months, several weeks — total, three months and a half. {But Mr. Gentry muat have been abaent/r&m Chihuahua the moat of 1846, and could have no personal knowledge of the state of trade du- ring the time in queation.) Has been in the Santa Fe trade from 1839 to 1848. 500 to tOO wagon loads of goods go annually by this route, of which only 100 tp 150 are consumed in Santa F^ and the adjoining districts. The term " Santa ¥6 trade," is used in a wide sense. Certificates for ob- taining drawback were sent from Santa F6, although almost all the goods went on to Chihuahua. Periods of detention stated by Mr. Gentry: 11 days, 6 weeks, 6 weeks — to- tal, three and a half to four months. On a review of the whole circumstances, the claimants' interests appear to have been affected as follows : The value of the 986 packages of goods sent from England was, as per invoice, exclusive of charges, £14,210 16«. lid., or about $70,000. The Santa Fe trade was stopped when the goods arrived ; and, as the owners would have been exposed to immense loss thereby, they pe- titioned the United States Treasury to permit, in this instance, a deviation from the circular of lltli June, 1846, prohibiting the export in the way desired. The treasury accordingly permitted the export, with benefit of draw- back, "without giving rise to any inferences as regards the condition of Santa Fe, or to act as a precedent in other cases;" and on receipt of the consular certificate of the arrival of the goods at Santa Fe, the drawback, amounting to $53,108 94, was repaid to the claimants. After various delays the goods (or rather the greater part of them, a portion having been sold, as is alleged, to purchase supplies and U CONVENTION WITH GREAT BRITAIN. 878 B been loat of rsonol dc du- e trade to 700 anually nly 100 anta F6 ,8. The 8 used in !B for o\)- ent from Bt all the bhua. stated by veeks — to- f to four interests and was, as )ut 170,000. and, as the by, they pe- instance, a 2 the export ncfitofdraw- the condition nd on receipt Santa Fe, the claimants, part of them, supplies and food,) arrived at Chihuahua, in February, 1847, whore they were Hold for $260,000, a sum wliich, after the most liberal allowance for expenses, must have left a handsome profit on the enterprise. 8o that by this oct of grace and courtesy on the part of the United States government, the claimants were saved immense loss, and enabled to prosecute their adventure to a successful issue. They received back a 8umof$5o,108 94, for duties, and the mules, oxen, &c., provided, were rendered available, which otherwise would have been but little value. The claim, therefore, is not for actual loss sustained, but for alleged diminution of profits arising out of the detention of the cara- van in the course of the journey. Much stress has been laid, on the part of the claimants, on the per- mission to export under drawback, which has been incorrectly and improperly termed a license. But there is no ground for the belief that anything more was intended than a permission to the claimants to undertake an adventure which was at the time legally prohibited. It cannot be imagined that the United States government had the slightest intention to confer a privilege which might interfere ma- terially with their operations against the enemy. Indeed, the reser- vation expressly made in granting the petition was evidently intended to exonerate the United States government from all responsibility, and to intimate to the petitioners that they must take their chance in pursuing the adventure. They knew that war was being carried on, and must also have been prepared for difficulties and hindrances, incident to a disturbed state of affairs. The permission was not a privilege granted to them as British subjects, but was equally granted to other traders, citizens of the United States, who were placed in similar circumstances. If was a mere matter of favor on the part of the United States government to allow the trade to be carried on at all by claimants and other traders, and they embarked in it with a k^iowledge of the disturbed state of the country to which the adventurers were bound. Much reliance has been placed on the case of Harmony v. Mitchell, 1 Black. Rep, , 549, as affording a precedent in support of this claim ; but the two cases differ essentially, and the opinion of the court, de- livered by Mr. Chief Justice Taney, is clearly adverse to Messrs. Ker- ford & Jenkin. \l ,4.1 i|i i ■« 374 ADJUSTMENT OF CLAIMS UNDER THE Harmony and Mitchell's case. 1. The jury found for Harmony on the groumls that he was not trading with the enemy, that his goods and property were seized and part of them converted to the public use, witliout the plea of urgent or immediate necessity, and that Harmony never resumed possession after the seizure. 2. The property of Harmony was left in Chihuahua when the place was evacuated by the Americans, (the goods having been unsalable during tlieir occupation,) and were confiscated by the Mexicans on their return, and wholly lost to Harmony. 3. The seizure in this case took place at San Eleasario^ in the province of Chihuahua, at which place Harmony (having determined to proceed no further) was compelled by Colonel Mitchell to remain with and accompany the troops. Kerford and Jenkin's case. 1. In the case of Messrs. Kerford & Jenkins there was no seizure, nor has any been alleged; their avowed object was to go forward for the purpose of trading with the enemy, and they continued all along in the possession of their goods. 2. The property of Messrs. Kerford & Jenkin was safely conducted to Chihuahua, and realized a very large sum, $260,000, by claimants' statement. 3. The complaint of Messrs. Kerford A: Jenkin, is not that they 'vere not allowed to leave the army and proceed no further, but that they were not allowed to precede the army of the United States to the place which they were going to attack. The question, therefore, in this case resolves itself into one of de- tention. The commander of the United States forces had undertaken an expedition against the city to which Messrs. Kerford & Jenkin's caravan was bound. The arrival of the caravan would certainly have put the inhabitants of Chihuahua in a more favorable position for frustrating the expedition ; indeed, it is admitted in the plea put in on behalf of the claimants, that the arrival of the caravan was anxiously expected, on account of the duties payable to the governor of the place. The enemy would have derived a further advantage in ob- CONVENTION WITH GREAT BRITAIN. 376 as not ,ed and urgent jsession lie place asalatle leans on , in the ;ermined remain .0 seizure, ^rward for 1 all along conducted claimants' that they ■but that tates to the ) one of de- undertaken & Jenkin's rtainly have position for ) plea put in 'as anxiously ernor of the mtage in oh- taining information respecting the strength and resources of the in- vading force, and part of the men employed to conduct the caravan were Mexicans. These circumstances are surely a sufficient justification of the con- trol exercised hy Colonel Doniphan over the movements of Messrs. Kerford's caravan. Similar control was exercised over other traders, citizens of the United States, without complaint on their part. It is contended that, as neutrals, Messrs. Kerford stood in a better position, and could not properly be impeded in carrying on their trade; but, admitting, for argument sake that they were neutrals, this does not alter the case. It must be remembered that the trade in question had been stopped, and was only allowed under special circumstances, and with a special reserve. It was not an open road on which a friendly power had a right to travel freely and without question. The case of Harrmny v. Mitchell, has been relied on as a precedent, but the following passage from the " opinion of the court," delivered by Mr. Chief Justice Taney, is conclusive in favor of the right of de- tention, for he says that, "^p to the 'period at tvhich the trespass is al- leged to have been committed at San Eleasario, in the 2y'i'ovince of Chi- huahua, it is conceded that no control loas exercised over the property of the plaintiff , that is not perfectly justifiable in a state of loar." This seizure took place on 10th February, 1847, at which time Harmony's property must have been detained for a longer period than that of Messrs. Kerford & Jenkin. On the whole review of the case it appears : 1. That no engagement was entered into by the United States government, which can be construed into a license to trade with the enemy, or to pursue a course calculated to interfere with the military operations of the United States forces. 2. That the detention by which the alleged losses were occasioned arose out of the state of war, and was a contingency incident to any trading adventure undertaken under such circumstances ; and that there is, therefore, no fair claim for compensation against the govern- ment of the United States. m I 876 ADJUSTMENT OF CLAIMS UNDER THE THE ALBION. A British vessel was seized for cutting timber and trading with the Indians in the Oregon Territory without hcense. Application was made to the government at Washington, re- questing, as a measure of clemency, that the vessel might be released. Answer was sent that she might be released, if there had been no legal condemnation of the vessel ; the answer did not arrive seasonably, and the vessel was condemned and sold. Allowance was made to place the claimant in a situation as favorable as if the instructions of the government had been seasonably received. The Albion left London with a cargo of merchandise for trade with the Indians on the northwest coast of America, designing to return with a load of spars for the British navy. She had a license from the British government to engage in trade with the Indians, provided she did not deal in furs ; and to cut timber within the British territories /t7>7i suhjccls " only can bo entertained against the United States ; and I submit that the claimant having formally taken upon himself the obligations of a citizen of the United States, cannot here maintain a claim against the country of his adoption. In apparent anticipation of this objection, he alleges, in his memorial, that although a natural- ized citizen of the United States, yet he was born in England, and hence he argues that by a well established rule of British law he is a British subject, and entitled to all the rights as such. This ground, the learned American counsel observes, is taken by Dawson's assignee, and gives me to understand that he places the right to make the claim on other grounds. Whatever may be the ground assumed now, this was taken by the counsel who signed the declaration, and whether assignee or not, he was authorized to act for the claimant, and in the previous argument of this case the counsel lor her Majesty's government endeavored to sustain the jurisdiction upon this basis. But now, it is said, this ground is abandoned, and the American counsel, who has argued the case, says he never dreamed of contending that an English subject, by birth, who had become a naturalized citizen of the United States, was not to be considered an American citizen in the meaning of this con- vention. In that view it seemed to me im])o.ssible that this claimant had a right to invoke the authority of this commission ; but, after heari'ig the argument of the counsel, I find that the ground originally taken is only ostem^ibly surrendered. It will be borne in mind tho* Freuri.k Dawson made the original contract with Texas, and that he conveyed to his brother Pli'l p, his partner in trade, in Baltimore, an interest in these bonds; the whole of which became the property of the iirm. They both took the benefit of the bankrupt act, and their property went into the hands of an assignee; and it is con- CONVENTION WITH GREAT BRITAIN. 389 Jeneral of I the case dressed to tea that he 1824, and he terms of \Q claims of ited States ; himself the I maintain a anticipation h a natural- n gland, and itish law he such. This hy Dawson's right to make taken hy the lee or not, he :ou8 argument endeavored to t is said, this las argued the ish subject, hy ted States, was ng of this con- aim ant had a after heari-ig viginally taken in mind tl»o^ cxas, and that ;, in Baltimore, .10 tiio property krupt act, and and it is con- tended that, inasmuch as Philip Dawson was never naturalized, their assignee can come forward and make a claim which could not have heen made if it had stood in the name of Frederick, the original con- tractor with Texas. That is to say, Frederick Dawson, a naturalized citizen, may violate the well known principle of law, and do that in- directly which ho cannot do directly. This is too plainly an artifice on the part of the learned counsel not to be perceived by the commis- sioners. This claim could acquire no new character by being trans- ferred by Frederick to Philip Dawson, and then coming back to Frede- rick or to their assignee. Frederick, who made the contract with Texas, never had the right to claim payment of this debt before this commission ; and Philip could therefore possess no greater right in this respect than belonged to the original contractoi-, from whom he derived his title. If the mere transfer of a claim i'rom an American citizen to a British-born subject could give this commission jurisdic- tion of it, then every claim against the United States that exists any- where, in the hands of the subjects of whatever nation, might be brought here by a simple transfer like that which took i)lace between Frederick and Philip Dawson. For examj)le, the claims of citizens of the United States against Mexico, which, by treaty, the former gov- ernment agreed to assume, could be brought here for settlement by their simple transfer to a British subject. If we are not to look beyond the present representative of the claim, nor to investigate the manner in which he derived his title, all the claims that the Spanish, French, or the subjects of any other country may have against the United States might be acted upon here by adopting this principle. Illustration cannot be reiiuired to prove that no such doctrine is recognized by the rules of international law, which law ought to furnish the rule of decision •':. this commission. Frederick Dawson is a citizen of the United States, entitled to the rights and liable to perform the obligations which that relation im- poses. But, in answer to this, it has been contended that he owes like duties to the government of Great Britain ; and, in consequence of having been born within her jurisdiction, his duties to this govern- ment are paramount. There is, then, a direct conflict between the municipal laws of the two countries; but no collision can arise from this apparent conflict of laws if the commissioners should take the public instead of municipal laAv for their guide. nii 390 ADJUSTMENT OF CLAIMS UNDER THE This is an international tribunal sitting here under a convention, which all the authorities concode is to he interpreted hy the law of nations, and not according to the municipal laws of either country. The claimant resided in Baltimore and carried on business there; and, by the well known rule of international laAv, he is to be regarded as a citizen of that country where he had his domicil, whether he be naturalized or not. But, besides having his domicil there, he had become a citizen ; and on both grounds Frederick Dawson is debarred from presenting his claim before this commission. Nevertheless, it is asserted thatPhilip is not so debarred because he was never natural- ized. I do not admit that Philip Dawson could have any claim at all before this commission, even if he had been domiciled in England^ because he derived his title to these bonds wholly through his brother, who is a citizen of the United States. Yet, notwithstanding this is, infact^ the claim of a citizen of the United States against his own government, the American counsel for her Majesty has argued in favor of it, and has referred to and attempted to answer that part of my argument in the Laurents' case in regard to the right of domiciled citizens in time of peace ; and, although I have already discussed this question before the commission, I must beg indulgence while I briefly answer the learned counsel's observations. Suppose, then, that Philip Dawson — who was a merchant in Balti- more at the time these transactions took place, and had been for the twenty-five years previous — had made this contract with Texas, could he have maintained a claim before tin's commission? If he is not a " British subject," within the moaning of these terms as used in the convention, he clearly could not. The American counsel for her Ma- jesty insists that he is a British subject in the sense of the convention. The rule laid down by him for the interpretation of the term " Brit- ish subject" was not a little novel to be addressed to a tribunal sitting for the administration of international law. Ho said "this commission is bound to declare that whoever is by the law of England or the United States subject or citizen, is to be considered, under this treaty, as sub- ject or citizen." On examination, this dictum will not, I apprehend, be found in accordance with the law of nations, and cannot, therefore, furnish a rule of decision for this commission. He refers to no author- ity to support it, for the reason that none can be produced. Neither It lati coij of to H» on seel CONVENTION WITH GREAT BRITAIN. 391 ivention, 10 law of CDiintry. ere; and, jarcled as ler he be J he had ; debarred eless, it is sr natural- laim at all England, is brother, izen of the an counsel rred to and urents' case peace; and, commission, ad counsel's int in Balti- been for the Texas, could ■ he is not a J used in the for her Ma- convention. term"Brit- bunal sitting ;s commission or the United •eaty, as suh- I apprehend, ot, therefore, to no author- ced. Neither the prize courts nor the publicists of any country have ever pretended that the municipal l%\vs of either of the parties to a treaty coiild give the rule for its interpretation. On this point the true rule of inter- national law was declared by Sir John, now Lord Chief Justice, Camp- bell, in Drummond's case before the privy council. He says that " treaties are to be interpreted according to the law of nations, which requires words to be taken in their ordinary meaning, not in the arti- ficial sense which may have been imposed upon them by the particular statutes of a particular nation. When, therefore, a treaty speaks of the subjects of any nation, it must mean those who are actually and effectually under its rule and government." Was Philip Dawson living under the actual rule and government of Great Britain when he became possessed of his interest in these bonds? It is not pretended that he was. He Wi>.s residing in Balti- more, in the United States, and had been for many years previous, and so continued till his death ; and all the publicists and the deci- sions of the prize courts regard him as a citizen of that country. Dr. Phillimore, who is considered as authority, especially in England, holds this doctrine in his work on domicil. He says expressly, that "every person is viewed by the law of nations as a member of that society in which he is found." If Dr. Phillimore stood alone in this view of the law, there might be, in some minds, hesitation in assenting to it, but this declaration is supported by the British admiralty decisions for half a century. Sir William Scott has repeatedly confirmed it in his judgments, and held this to be the correct interpretation of the law of nations. He so decided in the case of the Matchless, which arose in time of peace, and which is a case in point ; I had occasion to refer to it fully in the argument in the Laurents' case, and will not now further allude to it. It has been also held, by Lord Kcnyon, that persons residing in Eng- land must, for the purposes of trade, be considered as belonging to this country. And in the case of Wilson vs. Maryatt, on the construction of a treaty giving the citizens of the United States the right to trade to the British possessions in the East Indies, and denying this privi- lege to British subjects, it was then decided, that a British born sub- ject residing in the United States could, by virtue of this treaty, carry on trade to those possessions, while a British subject could not. This seems to me conclusive on the question before the commission. h J m 392 ADJUSTMENT OF CLAIMS UNDER THE It is an authoritative declaration, that a person living in the United States and carrying on trade there, as was the claimant, Philip Daw- son, is not a British suhject, in view of the law of nations, hut a citizen of the United States. Having shown, therefore, that the convention, under which this com- mission is sitting, must be interpreted aacording to this law, it follows that the claimant is not a British subject in the sense in which these words are used in that instnmient, and he cannot present a claim here against the United States. Wherever the point has arisen in the British courts, the decision has been invariably to the same effect. I should regret to fatigue the commissioners by citing authorities on this point; as I might well do, for they are all in support of my position. I will, however, request them to refer to 3 Rob. Ad. Rep., p. 8 of the Appendix, where it will be found that the court of appeals, after a very full hearing, were of opinion that, "by the general law, all foreigners resident within the British dominions incurred all the obligations of British subjects." If, then, by the public law which regulates the intercourse of nations, a foreigner domiciled in Great Britain thereby becomes a British suhject, the claimant, Philip Dawson, being domiciled in the United States, became, by this same law, a citizen of that country. The conclusion from this authority is legitimate and inevitable, and I apprehend it must have escaped the learned counsels attention. I cannot, however, make the same excuse for him in regard to the de- cisions of the Supreme Court, before which he has so long practiced with distinguished success. That court, in the case of tie Pizarro, reported in 2d Whoaton, said, witli remarkable emphasis, that in the language of the law of nations, which is always to be consulted in the interpretation of treaties, that "a person domiciled in a country and enjoying the protectioja of its sovereign is deemed a subject of that country. ' ' According to both the British and American autliorities, Philip Dawson was a citizen of the United States Avhen he became possessed of his interest in this alleged claim, and so continued till his death; and no one can, therefore, a[)pear before this commission in his behalf. He enjoyed the privileges of other citizens living under the {govern- ment of that country, and it would be neither in conformity with law or equity to give him greater advantages. If he lias a claim against the Till yet CONVENTION WITH GREAT BRITAIN. 393 United p Daw- 1, but a bis com- fc follows cb tbese a claim decision ,tigne tbe t well do, r, request ere it will 2, were of witbin tbe jects." If, nations, a sb subject, ted States, italjle, and ,ention. I to tbe de- practiced Pizarro, tbat in le consulted n a country a subject of ties, PWlip le possessed bis deatb ; bis bebalf. tbe ('overn- ity witb law laim against .e iis, tbe United States be ougbt to be required to seek tbe same mode of redress as otlier citizens. As a mode of testing tbis question, tbo learned counsel asks wbetber, if Pbilip Dawson bad gone to Mexico and received an injury from tbat government, he could, witli success, have appealed to the United States ibr redress. Probably not ; tbat would depend entirely on tbe character of the injury complained of. Complaint may be, and often is made, when the umuicipal laws of tbo coimtry where it is inflicted furnish redress, and in that case interpo- sition by any nation is unjustifiable. In order to justify the interpo- sition in favor of a citizen, the person must have been deprived of some right secured to him by the law of nations or by treaty. But whore the intervention is on behalf of one who is not a citizen, tbe law of nations alone must have been infringed. That law is imder tbe guar- dianship of all civilized nations ; and whenever its obligations are dis- regarded, it is the duty of each to cause ])roper reparation to be made. There is a sentiment in (be human heart that makes every one look to the land of his birth or adoption for protection when wrongoil in a foreign country, and it has been usual foi- nations to hearken to this appeal from their own people more readily than from others not standing in the same relation ; yet, if in tbo supposed case, of a British-born subject having been wronged in Mexico, the injury done to the law of nations bad been of a serious character, then the United States would have interposed. Suppose that England and Russia, noAv at war, should commence to put their prisoners to death^ to use poisoned weapons, or to poison the wells and springs of water; that would be a violation of inter- national law which would demand not only the interference of the United States, but of the whole fomily of nations. No matter wliero the persons injured might have been born, or to what country they might have sworn allegiance, the interposition would, nevertheless, be obligatory. So that the rule of national law, making every person a citizen of that country where he is found, does not prevent the inter- position of his native country, or any other nation, in his behalf, whenever the rights to which I have refei-red have been seriously invaded. The fact of interposition is by no means conclusive evidence that the persons in whose behalf the government has acted are its subjects. The British government interposed in favor of the Amistad negroes, yet it will hardly be contended that they were British subjects ! The 'r H 894 ADJUSTMENT OF CLAIMS UNDER THE appeal to another government, then, in ftivor of a person that is sup- posed to have been injured, proves nothing in rej^urd tohiscitizeuHhip. It has been intimated that if Frederick Dawson, a naturalized citi- zen of the United States, had returned to Enghiud and regained his domicil, and had presented a claim to this commission as a British subject, I would have held up his naturalization papers, and would have said he is estopped from presenting his claim on account of his having become a citizen of the United States. In this supposition the counsel is in error. I would have taken no such ground, provided the claimant had in good faith and at the proper time changed his alle- giance, and had presented a claim over which this commission's juris- diction extends. I hold to the American doctrine, proclaimed by the American Secretary of State in reply to the Austrian demand for the surrender of Koszta, and to which I cannot too often refer: "The citi- zen or subject having faithfully performed the past and present duties resulting from his relation to the sovereign power, may at any time release himself from the obligations of allegiance, freely quit the land of his birth or adoption, seek through all countries a home, and select anywhere that which offers him the fairest prospect of happiness for himself and his posterity." The counsel has relied on the provision in the Constitution of the United States which authorizes the subjects of a foreign country to sue in the courts of the federal government to show that Philip Dawson was a "British subject." That provision extends the judicial power to controversies between citizens or subjects of foreign states and citi- zens of the United States, and by virtue of it the claimant might have availed himself of this privilege of an alien to sue a citizen in the United States court ; but that does not at all affect the question at issue. We are discussing the question whether a person domiciled in the United States is, hy the Imo of nations, regarded as a citizen of that country. Tlie municipal law cannot determine that question. The fact that he enjoys there the privilege of suing a citizen in the United States courts does not prove him to be a British sub- ject. The same privilege is possessed by all aliens, whether they be born in Great Britain or elsewhere; and if the counsel's con'.Vu'-ron be correct, that the enjoyment of this privilege proves the claimant to be a British subject, it would also follow that all aliens are British subjects. The question does not depend upon the number of privi- cc cc tlJ thj Stl th| del tai is sup- en h1 lip. ceil citi- ned liis British I would it of his ition the aded the his alie- n's juris- ed by the id for the ' The citi- ent duties ; any time it the land and select ppiness for tion of the mtry to sue lip Dawson icial power es and citi- mnt might a citizen in le question n domiciled a citizen of it question, a citizen in British sub- bether they 8 con'.V^''''ioi^ claimant to are British her of privi- CONVENTION WITH GREAT BRITAIN. 895 leges conferred by the municipal law upon the foreigner domiciled in the country. These privileges may be great or small, and the enjoy- ment of no particular right can give the recipient of it a higher or different consideration in the view of the public law. All aliens pos- sess the right of suing in the courts of England ; it is a common law right, and existed also in the States of the Union at the time of the adoption of the federal Constitution. In the new government that was established, us there was no common law of the United States, the alien might not have had free access to the national courts without that provision in the Constitution ; and, as the government of the Union was charged with the foreign relations, it was necessary that it should have the administration of justice in respect to the subjects of other countries. But the Constitution could no more determine who were to be considered citizens of the country, in the view of the law of nations, than it could determine the requisites for a subject of Great Britain. The learned counsel's mistake arises from his considering the laws of the country where the person resides as the rule of international law. By this law the claimant is a citizen of the United States, and there can therefore be no legal presentation of this claim by Frederick Dawson, nor by the assignee or representative of Philip, and the commission ought therefore to refuse to coiiisiiler it altogether. The next point to which 1 desire to call the attention of the com- missioners, and which is also an objection to the jurisdiction, is this; Neither Dawson's claim nor any other claim against the republic of Texas was committed to this commission, and it Avould be an un- warrantable assum]jtion of power to take jurisdiction of any such claims. In support of this point, I would first call the attention of the commissioners to the statement made here by the learned American counsel for her majesty's government. He has recently arrived from the United States, and knows what has been done there concerning these claims. He has informed you that the Senate of the United States took up this subject during the last session of Congress, and in the month of July of this year passed a bill for the settlement of the debts of Texas, and that this bill did not pass the House of Represen- tatives because it was not reached in the ordinary course of proceeding. It appears, therefore, that the very Senate which ratified the con- I 396 ADJUSTMENT OP CLAIMS UNDER THE vention under which this commission is organized, took up and, so far as it could, disposed of the whole subject in which all these claims are embraced . Does any one believe that such proceeding would have taken place in the Senate, if that l)i>dy had already provided a tribunal charged witli the adjustment of the claims? Does not this statement alone prove that these claims were never contemplated when this convention was before the Senate for approval ? And as the British commissioner has held that the convention must be interpreted according to the inten- tion of the i)arties, I appeal to him to say whether, with a knowledge of this action of the American Senate, and the fact that these claims have never been presented to the United States by the British govern- ment, he believes it was designed to give the commission jurisdiction of them. If the proposition to present the debts of Texas as claims against the United States had been made while the negotiation of the convention was pending, I venture to say that it never would have received the assent of the United States with that understanding of its provisions. These debts are the obligations of Texas, contracted while an inde- pendent republic, and in determining their validity and extent she has a riglit to be heard; and I shall hereafter show that, in view of all the circumstances, it is little short of an insult to tlie intelligence of this commission to ask it to entertain jurisdiction of such claims. If, how- ever, the commissioners shall undertake to do so, they would do well to consider the responsibility which they assume. The decisions of this commission are to be binding on tlie governments of our respective countries ; but it was understood that it should keep within the limits assigned to it. The judgments of no tribunal are binding when it transcends the bounds of its authority; and if tliis commission should exceed its power, its acts would not probably be an exception to this rule. Suppose, for example, that this commission should decide in favor of the claim of an American citizen to be the lawful heir of the throne of England. Such a decision would hardly be regarded as coming within its assigned duties; yet a judgment like this, in regard to the sovereign of this kingdom, would not strike the government of Great Britain witii more surprise than would that create in the minds of the American people which you are urged to render against the United States. Both cases are equally foreign to the duty and CONVENTION WITH GREAT BRITAIN. 397 :1, so far lima are on place charged nt alone iivcntion ttissioner he inteu- lowledge se claims I govern- diction of IS claims on of the ivild have ing of its 3 an inde- nt she has of all the ce of this If, how- Id do well ons of this respective the limits (J when it ion should ion to this ide in favor the throne as coming Tard to the nt of Great e minds of igainst the duty and ! authority of this commission, and would alike provoke the indignation and disregard of the British and American governments. I am unwilling to helieve tliat the cominisHion will so wantonly step beyond the limits laid down for its guidance into a wilderness of powr ; and I think I might safely leave the subject without further obsei tion. But it will not be difficult to show that, whatever may be the obligation of Texas to pay tlicse claims, there is none on the part of the United States; and to that I propose now to direct your atteiition. The second of the resolutions of Congress for the annexation of Texas to the Union contains this provision: "Said Stato, when admitted into the Union, after ceding to the United States all jjiiblic edifices, turtifica- tions, barracks, forts and harbors, navy and navy yards, dooks, man nor made 1 apprehend her Majesty, was an indc- ng powers of she accepted ntry into the urrender her her otlier rc- l)y the Brit- •ender to the , that, having of its bonds, IS could not other source, and thus relievo this branch of the revenue frcm liability. Botli th« American counsel for lier Majesty and Mr. Corwin, tlio Seen v of tliu Treiisury, argue, tliat if imposts are not specially pledged under tlie term revenues useil in the bonds, then the same principle must ap- ply to all the otlier sources of revenue; and hence the conclusion would follow that the pledging of all the revenues is not the pledging of anything. The fallacy of this reasoning is to be fovmd in the assump- tion that if imposts are not specially pledged they are not pledged at all. Texas never contended tliat the revenue from imjwsts was not pledged, but she maintained that it was not so specially pledged that she could not appropriate this revenue, dispose of it, or cause it to cease altogether. The very contracting of a debt by a government is a pledg- ing of the faith and revenues of the nation; and if there be no remain- ing power to change the tax on articles from which revenues are col- lected, or to dispose of any one branch of its revenues, neither can there remain the power to charge it with the payment of any new debt, for that would be a disposition of a part of the revenue which, according to the argument, is mortgaged for the payment of the first debt. The revenues of England are pledged for the payment of the interest on her debt, and yet she assumes to change at will the sources from which they are collected. Modifications have taken place in her tariff", and articles which were once taxed are now free. If England may take the impost ofl^one article, she may take it off the whole, and then the source of revenue would be destroyed. Texas was as independent, and possessed the same rights, as England, when this transaction took place ; and she did nothing more than England claims the authority to do. It is not the practice of nations to consider the contracting of one debt as precluding them from contracting another, without infringing the rights of their first creditors; and nowhere ought this to be better understood than in England. The general rule undoubtedly is, that a nation possesses the liberty of satisfying its debts from any part of its re\ enues ; and when any portion of them is sold or disposed of, it assumes the responsibility of paying the debt in some other mode, and the purchaser takes the part so conveyed free of incumbrance. Suppose that Belgium had pledged her revenues for the payment of a debt, and that she had united herself to Eng- i l.!l 400 ADJUSTMENT OF CLAIMS UNDER THE I! m lis "n If! I land, retaining hor Kopanvtc f^ovornmcnt, and givln;? to England the power to carry on the lorei^'n relations of both, and Delgiinn Hhould, for a consideration, transfer also jior duties on imports, and say we can pay our debts I'rotn anotiier souree of revenue, would any one deny ikdgiuMi this right? I»ut it is aUeged wo cannot impair the Kecurity on which the loan was granted. I have already shown that the na- tions of Europe do not stop at one or two loans, but regard the jtowor of the nation as coniidete to make a third as if they had not made any. li' the power exists, as I have said, to charge the revenue with ne^^ loans, I do not perceive why it may not also exist to diminish the se- curity of the first takers of a loan by selling a branch of the revenues. There might,, however, be a failure to pay by this diminution, and so there might be by an augmentation of tlie amount of the debt to be paid. The failure in either case would be a gross breach of faith, and the remedy would be the same in both instances — remonstrance to the government whose obligations had not been fulfilled, and proclaiming its inevitable disgrace before the civili/ed world. The counsel for her Majesty's government, Mr. Cairns, who first argued this case, said that by taking Texas into the Union the claim- ants had been deprived of their remedy. This, I apprehend, is not so. They may go to the government of Texas and make any representa- tion now that they could have made when that 8tate was an indepen- dent republic. Mr. Corwin, the Secretary of the Treasury, in his report on the construction of the act of Congress ceding the public lands to the United States, attempts to maintain that the incorporation of Texas into the Union rendered the United States liable for a portion of her debts — namely, that for which the revenues were especially pledged. He says: " When an independent power contracts obligations, and is afterward, by act of another power jointly with herself, incorporated into and subjected to the dominion of the latter, whereby the national responsibility of the lormer is destroyed, and the means of fulfilling her obligations, to the extent at least of the means thus transferred, ttttacli with all their force to the nation to whom such means have been so transferred." This argument is taken from European writers on international law, and refers to States or provinces that have boen consolidated under one government — such as the union of Scotland and England ter CONVENTION WITH GREAT DRITAIN. 401 m\ the wo can security the na- 10 \)ower in\oany. vitli ncNN lU the sc- levenueB. n, and bo L\e\)t to be iaith, and ,nce to the roclaiminj; J, who first the claim- d, is not 80. representa- iin indepen- )ort on the ands to the on of Texas rtion of her \y pledged. tions, and \» ncorporatcd tlio national of fulfilling transferred, means have international consolidated and England under the name Par^iomont. llut tljcso principles do not apply to the peaceful union formed by tlio United States with tlie republic of TexftB, nor define the n .sultinj; (ddigations of either. A parallel cnso to the one ndopte, Mr. HoH'ord liml tho rcvoHueri of the republic Ht)loiniily pliMlj-ed to iiiiii, by wuy of niortj^ago for tho piiyuierit of the debt creatotl iti the manner 1 have already detailed. The lej;al liability of Texas, immediately pretediii<^ its admiHMiou as a State of the Tnioii, to |tay the debt ineurred to Mr. Uolfurd, was complete, i do not understand that it is denied. l>ut. an arj^ument has been preferred, v Ith tho view of showing that, so long as anij Bourco of revenue, or an} mt.iins of satisfying the (d)liga- tions thus entered into, remained to Texas, the United Stat( s govern- ment are not, under any oireumstames, liable. Ttt this 1 shall have occasion to refer hereafter. In 1845, Texas ceased to be an independent republic, and was ad- mitted to tho Union as one of the United States; and the whole of tho revenues of Texas, arising from duties on imports, together with tho navy, &c., were transferred, in accordance with the provisions of tho Constitution of the United States, to the federal government. By a subse«iuent act of Congress, (September 9, 1850,) which, as between tho United States and Texas, after she had become one of the States of tho Union, settled her boundaries, in consideration of certain concessions of largv, portions of the public lands by the State of Texas, and other things, it is provided " that the United States should pay to the State of Texas the sum of ten millions of dollars, or a stock bearing five per cent, interest." In this act, however, there was in- serted a proviso to the following effect: "That no more than five millions of the said stock should be issued until the creditors of the State, holding bonds and other certificates of the stock of Texas, /or which duties or imports were speciaUy ph!'! m tli,o subsequent contract between herself and Texas, of the fund pledged, the United States would be responsible for the entire value of the pledged property and for the value of the entire debt. It is so obvious that no agreement entered into by a debtor with a third person, that that third person shoiild take a property, the sub- ject of a specific charge, free from all liability to the person having the charge, can be binding on, or in any way affect the rights of the indi- vidual to whom the property is pledged, that further argument to prove so elementary a proposition would be useless. It is evident, therefore, that the resolution assented to by Texas, declaring that the United States shall not be answerable for the debts of Texas, can in no way legally or morally affect the cla^'m of Mr. Holford on the United States. I pass on to the fourth objection against the entertainment of this claim by the commissioners, which is thus stated : "IV. Because it is not true, as asserted in the statement of the claim presented to the commissioners, that Texas is incorporated into and subjected to the dominion of the United States government, so as to destroy her responsibility for her debts contracted while an inde- pendent republic, or her ability to meet them ; but, on the contrary, she is, for the purpose of fulfilling these obligations, as clearly re- sponsible by the law of nations^ by her separate and distinct society, and by her solemn agreement with the United States, as she ever was, and fully able to discharge them ; and this commission is not author- ized to interfere, to shift any such obligation from Texas upon the United States." It is difficult to see how the objection bears upon, or what con- nexion the reasoning involved in it has to the facts of the claim before the commissioners. The obligation of Texas to pay her debts is not in dispute, nor has it been argued that the mere act of her annexa- tion to the United States has transferred her liabilities to the federal government ; though certainly, as regards foreign governments, the United States is now bound to see that the obligations of Texas are fulfilled. It is the transfer of the integral revenues of Texas to the federal government, that is relied on as creating the new liability. The shifting of the obligation, which the learned agent of the United States warns the commissioners they have no authority to effect, is in fact already effected by the United States itself. J.P -r^'^,'" CONVENTION WITH GREAT BRITAIN. 421 he fund re value r with a the sub- iving the the indi- ument to I evident, ; that the IS, can in rd on the mt of this }nt of the (rated into lent, so as ie an inde- contrary, clearly re- ct society, e ever was, lot author- ,s upon the what con- aim before lebts is not ;r annexa- Ithe federal [ments, the Texas are lexas to the liability. |the United jffect, is in Again, I will have recourse to the language of the United States Secretary of the Treasury, adopted by the President himself, as the best expression of the proposition which the United States agent now thinks himself justified in protesting against. "It is obvious," writes Mr. Corwin, "from the most careless pe- rusal of the law, that Congress considered the United States as liable to pay all that portion of the debt of Texas for the redemption of which ^duties on imports' had been pledged by the law of Texas." Upon no other hypothesis is there any justifiable motive for requir- ing releases to the United States to be filed for such claims before Texas should receive the last five millions of the stock to be paid her. In other words. Congress admitted the liability of the general govern- ment to pay all that portion of the public debt of Texas, and laid its hands upon five millions of the stock provided for as a security that Texas should pay that portion of her debt ; or, in her failure to do so, the five millions thus withheld should be a fund out of which that class of the creditors of both Texas and the United States should be paid in whole or in part, as the relative amount of such debt and the fund reserved should determine. The history of the debt contracted by Texas while she was yet an independent power, and her subsequent incorporation into the Union as a State of the republic of the United States, it is believed, makes the United States liable for this portion of the Texas debt. The laws of nations which govern the subject are well understood, and of easy application to the present question. These laws all pro- ceed upon the idea that the moral obligations of independent States are binding when once they attach to compacts between States or be- tween States and individuals, and that they never cease except by the voluntary agreement of the parties interested, or by their fulfilment and complete discharge. Hence, where an independent power con- tracts obligations, and is afterwards, by the act of another power jointly with herself, incorporated into and subjected to the dominion of the latter, whereby the national responsibility of the former is destroyed, and the means of fulfilling her obligations transferred to the latter, all such obligations, to the extent at least of the means thus trans- ferred, attach with all their force to the nation to whom such means have been so transferred. It will be found that all writers on public law, having any ii 422 ADJUSTMENT OF CLAIMS UNDER THE 1 il authority, are agreed upon this point, from the time of Grotius to the present. Indeed, the proposition thus asserted is so obviously just, that it is not possible for a nation in modern times to controvert it without forfeiting that character for justice and probity which, hap- pily for mankind, has become indispensable for sovereign States. It was this view of the subject which doubtless dictated that provision of the law which I am now considering. It was known to Congress that Texas had contracted debts to a large amount to individuals while she was an independent power. It was equally well known that revenue arising fror\ "duties on imports" was amongst all nations in modern times one resource, if not the prin- cipal one, for the payment of the debts of nations. It was known also by the framers of this act that by the annexation of Texas to the United States the power to levy duties on imports within the ports or territories of Texas was taken away from the latter, and transferred to the United States. It was, therefore, assumed that the United States should pay, if Texas did not, all that portion of the debt of Texas for which duties on imports had been pledged, for the obvious reason that these duties thus pledged were taken from Texas and transferred to the United States, and to that extent the creditors of Texas, by a plain principle of justice, had become the creditors of the United States. ^, But this clear and indisputable obligation of the United States, to discharge a liability which she has voluntarily taken upon herself, has not only been thus duly acknowledged by the Executive of the United States/ but on three diflferent occasions — the first in 1847, the two others in 1848 — the United States Senate Committee of Claims reported in favor of the payment by the United States of this debt, and upon the express ground that the transfer of the right to levy imports which Texas had, as a sovereign republic, at the time of her annexation to the United States, and which antecedently she had ap- propriated expressly to the payment of this debt, bound the United States to do one of two things — either to pay the debt or surrender the pledge ; and not being able constitutionally to do the latter, it follows, as a matter of irresistible consequence, that she is both morally and legally bound to do the former. And since this commis- sion was appointed a bill has been actually reported by the Senate for payment of such creditors of Texas as are comprehended in the act of M CONVENTION WITH GREAT BRITAIN. 423 IS to the ly just, rovert it ch, hap- ites. It (rovision a large It was mports" the prin- i known as to the ports or msferred 5 United 3 debt of J obvious jxas and ditors of )rs of the States, to herself, ve of the 1847, the »f Claims his debt, t to levy ne of her had ap- e United mrrender latter, it is both I commis- lenate for ;he act of Congress of September, 1850, in which category Mr. Holford holds a prominent place. Strange to say, this last fact has been made use of on this occasion in order to prove that this commission has no right to enter upon a consideration of the case. It is said, that because Congress has taken up the subject, this commission is ousted of its jurisdiction. If this were to be held sufficient, however, the entire jurisdiction of the com- missioners might have been ousted, and the whole object of the con- vention frustrated, by each government taking an initiatory step with respect to each important claim ♦.he mere introduction by one section of the legislature of a b'^ beii^^- 'usidered tantamoi . ':, '"* jgainstthe claimants, to a final settlement oi their claims. The fifth assertion, which is the last in the protest made by the learned agent against the commissioners assuming jurisdiction over the claim, is as follows : *' Because this commission has nothing to do with any law or act of the United States addressed to the government or people of Texas, designed or tending to induce that State to perform her obli- gations entered into while an independent republic ; and hence to take jurisdiction of this claim would be a palpable and unwarrantable vio- lation of the spirit and intention of the convention, to which the United States would have a just and perfect right to take exception, as much so as if this commission were to pass laws for the government of the United States, or do any other thing wholly without the bounds of its authority." I suppose, for it is not very clearly stated, that it is intended to assert that the commissioners have no right to take notice of or draw any inference from the first proviso in the fifth clause of the first sec- tion of the act of Congress of the 9th of September, 1850, which says that no more than five millions of said stock shall be issued to Texas until the creditors of Texas, having a pledge on the duties on imports, shall file releases against the United States — which^ of course, they would not be likely to do until they had been paid what was due to them by some one. This proviso the learned agent regards as merely an inducement addressed by Congress to the government of Texas to perform her obligations ; but I have yet to learn that the refusal of a debtor to pay what he owes his creditor, until that creditor shall have discharged all the debts which he owes to other people, is to be con- 424 ADJUSTMENT OF CLAIMS UNDEB THE 1 I ;i ! sidered simply as an " inducement" to the creditor to do his duty. I cannot suppose that Congress withheld five millions on such pretext, because, if I did, I must necessarily consider that Congress, in enact- ing that proviso, intended to act dishonestly ps regards Texas. Certainly the "inducement" was not likely to have this effect ; for it is not probable that Texas, on the assumption that she needed such inducement, would pay twelve millions of dollars, (the amount of her debts for which her imports were mortgaged,) in order to receive five millions from the United States. It is clear to me, however, looking merely at the language of the proviso, and remembering the occasion of it, that Congress designed to save the United States harmless from ultimate liability, as also to protect the creditors from loss, and that this anxiety sprang from a settled conviction that the United States, having appropriated the se- curity of the creditors, was liable to them in respect of it ; and that, being so liable, Congress was justified in providing means to indemnify the United States from loss. So far, then, from thinking that the commissioners have nothing to do with this act, I consider it. is incum- bent upon us to consider it carefully. To my mind, it furni ;hes au- thoritative evidence, of the most conclusive description, of the very proper mode in which the Congress of the United States have consid- ered the position of the creditors of T s, not only with respect to the specific pledge to them of the duties on imports, but also of their position and their rights as against the United States, consequent on and subsequent to the appropriation of those duties to themselves by the United States. It follows, therefore, in my judgment, that this fifth, as also all the preceding assertions of the United States agent, ought not to be sustained, and that this commission have full juris- diction over the claim. Looking also at the fact that the moneys advanced by Mr. Holford for the purposes mentioned in the agreement of October 24, 1848, yteie secured by the terms of the law of May 16, 1838, by a pledge of all the revenues of Texas ; that the bonds so given, as a further security for the performance by Texas of that agreement, were also secured by the solemn pledge of all the revenues and public faith of Texas ; that this solemn pledge of all the revenues has always been interpreted to mean, and necessarily does include, a specific pledge of the revenues derivable from imports ; that this branch of revenue has passed into i duty. I pretext, in enact- ,s. feet; for ided such int of her iceive five ige of the designed as also to ig from a ted the se- and that, indemnify ; that the t is incum- rni >hes au- pf the very ive consid- respect to so of their sequent on nselves hy , that this ates agent, full juris- OONVBNTION WITH OBEAT BBITAIN. 425 the possession of the United States la consequence of the admission of Texas into the Union, and is still in law and equity suhject to the obligation antecedently imposed on it, notwithstanding the terms of any agreement entered into by Texas with the United States with reference to the debts of the former, I have no hesitation in saying that my opinion is in perfect accordance with that uniformly expressed by the Executive and legislature of the United States, to the effect that the United States, having become possessed of the public revenues of Texas, pledged for the payment of the debt due to Mr. Holford under the agreement of October 24, 1838, and secured by the bonds of July 1, 1849, are properly responsible for the discharge of those obli- gations. In conclusion, I must say that this claim appears to me entirely unanswered and unanswerable ; and I am, therefore, of opinion that the United States government is responsible for the payment of the bonds of Texas now held by the executors of Mr. Holford, and the arrears of interest now due thereon. ♦ Ir. Holford 24, 1848, a pledge of ler security secured by exas; that ;erpreted to e revenues lassed into 426 ADJUSTMENT OF CLAIMS UNDEB THE \l n N ' If Bates, Umpire: , . Held that cases of this description were not included among the un- settled claims that had received the cognizance of the governments, or were designed to be embraced within the provisions of the conven- tion, and were, therefore, not within the jurisdiction of the commission. 9 X •tiir- CONVENTION WITH GREAT BRITAIN. 427 tho un- iments, Donven- aisBiou. SCHOONER JOHN. In a treaty of peace, where it waa stipulated that, within certain limita, peace should take ofTect in twelve days, and in others at diflferent periods, ranging from thirty to forty, sixty, and ninety days, held that such an agreement waa to be construed as an acknowledgment by the parties that, with due diligence, notice might be given, in those limits, within the times named, and the parties bound themselves thereby to accept such term as constructive notice of such peace. Where it was provided that vessels and their effects taken within such limits, aflor the time stipulated when peace should exist, "should be restored," held it was no excuse if such vessel was afterwatds cast away and lost, and therefore could not be returned to the owners, but that compensation must be made. The party in such case must Bo held as a wrong doer from the outset, and bound to make full restitution. In the early part of the year 1815, the American schooner "John" sailed from the port of Matanzas, in the island of Cuha, with a cargo of molasses, coffee, &c., for the port of Portsmouth, in the State of New Hampshire. I'" On the 5th day of March, in the same year, when in latitude 31° 40' north, and longitude 78° 10' west from the meridian of Greenwich, she fell in with the British ship-of-war "Talhot," Lieutenant Mau- desley, acting commander, and was captured and taken possessic^ of as a prize of war. She was then put in charge of a prize master and crew from the " Talbot," and taken in tow by that vessel for Jamaica. On the 11th of March, while the two vessels were yet in company, they made land, which the officers commanding erroneously supposed to be "Atwood's Key. ' ' On the 12th, they made what they supposed to be the ' ' French Keys," and subsequently, what they took to be the place called the "Hogsties," and shaped and continued their course as if these suppo- sitions were correct, although assured of their mistake by Beck, the deposed master of the "John." 428 ADJUSTMENT OF CLAIMS UNDER THE In a few hours the schooner was ashore at a place called *•' Point Mulas," in the island of Cuba, and the "Talbot" was saved from the same fate only by hastily putting about, and standing out to sea. The next day the crew were taken from the wreck, which was aban- doned, and totally lost. On arriving at Jamaica, the master and crew were detained as pris- oners of war. On the 29th of March, news of the ratification of the treaty of peace having been received, they were released. Captain Beck, the master, thereupon addressed a letter to Lieutenant Mau- desley, demanding his papers, and was by that officer referred to the vice admiralty court at Kingston ; but, upon application there, ho was informed that neither the log-book nor the papers of the "John" had boon lodged there. Whereupon he, with others of the crew, made protest, at Kingston, upon the foregoing state of facts. On returning to the United States a more specific and detailed pro- test was made, and subsequently the owners of the schooner com- menced a suit in admiralty against Lieutenant^ Maudesley for the value of the vessel and cargo, which was finally decided against them by Sir William Scott, on December 18, 1818, on the ground that the commander of a vessel of war, when notice has not reached him of the conclusion of peace, is not personally liable for such a capture. The owners had incurred heavy expenses in the prosecution of this suit, and, owing to this circumstance and various adverse events per- sonal to them, delayed for many years making application to the United States government, as they should originally have done. Ap- plication was at length made, and the claim was earnestly urged on the attention of the British government by Mr. Lawrence, while minister at London. It is as yet unsettled ; and is now presented for the consideration and final action of this commission. P- CONVENTION WITH GREAT BRITAIN. 429 '•Point rora the to sea. ,s aban- as pris- n of the Captain nt Mau- (1 to the here, bo "John" lie crew, tiled pro- oer com- the value them by that the id him of pture. )n of this rents per- )n to the ne. Ap- urged on ce, while sideration Thomas, agent and counsel for the United States, ond Clark, irAY©<, and Tuck, cited authorities to the following points : A treaty of peace or a truce binds the contracting parties from the time of the signature, or from its ratification, where a ratification is necessary. Hostilities are to cease from tliat time, or at the expiration of such other periods as may bo i)rovided in tl>e treaty, in various districts and latitudes. — (1 Kent's Com., 159; 2 JVheaton, 291; 1 WiUhnnn's Institutea of Tnterutifional Laiv, 158.) The right of capture depends on the fact of war. When the war ceases, the right ceases. ^ Ignorance of the peace can confer no right of capture in time of peace. The right, being wholly dependent on the fact of war, is necessarily independent of the knowledge of the captor. — (1 JV 'dman's Insti- tutes, 150.) In case of capture when peace exists, restitution and compensation is to be made. — (Puffendorf, lib. 8, chap. 7, sec. 9 ; Grotius, Uu. 3, chap. 21, sec. 5; 1 Hob. Rep., 181, The Mentor.) Kent and Wheaton cite Grotius as saying, in the section rr^^rrcd to, that "where acts of hostility are committed after peace is uuk'o, but not notified, the contracting parties are not amenable in damage; but it is the duty of the government to restore what has been captured but not destroyed." It will be found, however, on referring to the section, that Grotius states merely that the parties "will not be liable to punishment, but must make good the damage;" and such seems to be the sound authority on this point. — (1 Wildman's Institutes, 159 ; 1 Kent's Com., 169; 2 Wheaton, 291 ; Vattel, lib. 3, chaj). 16.) It was further contended, that the rule as laid down by Chitty was applicable to this case, that "where a party, by hii ovn contract, ab- solutely engages to do an act, it is to be held as La own fault and folly that he did not expressly provide against contingencies, and exempt himself from responsibility in certai.'i events;" and that, "where a contract is general and abso'uto, the performance is not excused by an inevitable accident, or other contingency, although not foreseen by or within the control .if the ^arty."— {Chitty on Contracts, p. 735.) 430 ADJUSTMENT OF CLAIMS UNDER THE i Hannen, agent and counsel for Great Britain, cited "TAe John," 2 Dodson, 336, where, in this case, Sir William Scott held, that in a suit hrought against the captor he was not liable, excei)t on notice ; and intimates, further, his opinion that, in case of loss of the vessel, the government would not be liable. He cited, also, to the same point, 1 Kent's Com. , 159, and 2 Wheaton, 291 ; and Vattel, lib. 3, chap. 16. ^ CONVENTION WITH GREAT BRITAIN. 431 TJpHAM, United States Commissioner : In the able argument addressed to us by her Majesty's counsel, the British agent, some stress has been laid on the decision of Sir William Scott, (2 Dodson, 336,) on a suit brought against the commander of the Talbot for the capture of the John ; and that authority is considered as conclusive of this claim. But, in that case, the learned judge expressly declined determining whether or not the claimant had a remedy elsewhere ; he only decided, for reasons which he gives at length, that the captor should be person- ally exonerated. In determining this question, he says: "I certainly go no further than the expressions used by me warrant, that this individual captor is not liable to this individual sufferer." " That does not exclude a liability elsewhere, if it exists. "Whether there be such a liability in the government is a question I am not called upon to examine ; I have neither the proper parties nor the evidence before me. It is sufficient to observe, upon that matter, that there may be such a liability ; there doubtless would be, if the gov- ernment had not made due diligence in advertising the cessation of hostilities, in the quarters and at the periods stipulated, if that were practicable." ''Where property, captured after peace has taken effect, is lost by mere chance, without any fault on the part of the captor, whether an obligation is incurred to restore in value what has been taken away by mere misfortune, the terms of the contract have not specifically pro- vided for ; and just principle seems to point another way; that, how- ever, is not the question before me for my decision." — (Schooner John, Beck, master, 2 Dodson, p. 336.) This case conflicts with the opinion of the same learned judge in the Mentor, 1 Robinson, p. 183. He there says, "that the seizure of a vessel is a belligerent right which is not exercisable in time of peace. When there is peace, a seizure, jure belli, is a wrongful act, and the injured party is entitled to restitution and compensation. ' ' He further says, "it is not so clear that the captor is liable to costs and damages, where peace has not been notified. The better opinion seems to be, that the captor is liable to costs and damages, and entitled to indem- -* 432 ADJUSTMENT OF CLAIMS UNDER THE nification from his g-^vernment, whose duty it was to have given notice." Both these cases sustain this point, that, when there is a want of due diligence, in advertising the cessation of hostilities, the injured party is clearly entitled to indemnification ; and Vattel says, also, "that those who shall, through their own fault, remain ignorant of the publication of the truce, would be hound to repair any damage they may have caused contrary to its tenor." — (Vattel, hoolc 3, ch. 16.) There seems to be no doubt that the principle, thus laid down, is correct. But what constitutes due diligence, under such circumstances, is a question at times of difiicult .determination. It is, therefore, ex- ceedingly desirable that it should be settled by the parties in advance. Vattel says, in the same section, "in order as far as possible to avoid any difficulty," on this point, "it is usual with sovereigns, in their truces, as well as treaties of peace, to assign different periods for the cessation of hostilities according to the situation and distance of places." The question then arises, whether this assignment of different periods for the cessation of hostilities, according to the situation and distance of places, was not designed by the parties to establish the time to be holden as reasonable notice loithin such limits. Such clearly is the ground assigned by Vattel for such provisions in treaties. What would be reasonable, can be determined just as well before the treaty as after, and the whole tenor of the treaty, in this case, goes to show that the contracting parties had this question in view, in establishing the various periods within which peace should take place in different localities. The treaty provides that, "immediately after the ratification, orders shall be sent to the armies, squadrons, officers, subjects, and citizens of the two powers, to cease from all hostilities ; and, to prevent all causes of complaint whinh may arise on account of prizes, which may be taken at sea after said ratification, it is reciprocally agreed, that all vessels and effects, which may be taken after the space of twelve days from the said ratification, upon all parts of the coast of north America, from the latitude of 23° north, to the latitude of 50° north, and as far eastward in the Atlantic ocean as the 36° of west longitude from the meridian of Greenwich, shall be restored on each side; that the time shall be thirty days in all other partfl of the Atlantic ocean, CONVENTION WITH GREAT BRITAIN. 433 given want of injured 's, also, orant of ige they .6.) lown, is [Stances, fore, ex- idvance. to avoid , in their Is for the jtance of different a,tion and k the time rly is the What he treaty s to show jablishing different )n, orders citizens revent all |hich may I, that all [elve days JAmerica, I, and as tude from that the Lie ocean, north of the equator, and the same time for the British and Irish channels, for the Gulf of Mexico, and all parts of the West Indies ; forty days for the North Seas, for the Baltic, and for all parts of the Mediterranean ; sixty days for the Atlantic ocean, south of the equa- tor, as far as the latitude of the Cape of Good Hope ; ninety days for every part of the world south of the equator, and one hundred and twenty days for all the other parts of the world without exception." — {United States Statutes at Large, vol. S,p. 219.) These several periods were undoubtedly agreed upon as equivalent to notice that peace existed within the prescribed limits. It cannot be supposed that the contending parties designed to append to these periods a further indefinite, uncertain time, as to what should consti- tute due diligence in giving notice, or to restrain or limit the fact in its consequences, that peace should exist at the times named. After the periods thus agreed upon, the obligation to cease from hostilities was imperative. Such being the case, we have the true starting-point from which to consider the question of the respective rights of the parties. It is manifest that collisions might then occur without the imputation of any wilful wrong in the violation of the compact entered into. The injury would, however, exist, and the actual loss sustained should, on every principle of equity and justice, as well as of compact, be fully met. The stipulation was, therefore, entered into by the parties, that '' all vessels and effects " that should be taken after the several times specified " should be restored." The question then arises, what in- terpretation we shall place on tliis provision ? Does it mean that ves- sels and effects captured shall be returned in specie, or that the identi- cal property merely, shall be returned, and where this has become impracticable that no restitution or satisfaction shall be had? I cannot believe that such was the intent of the parties. They acknowledge tliemselves bound by a constructive notice of the peace, and it was their own fault that they did not take time enough, or did not use diligence enough to give actual notice of the peace ' ' to their armies, squadrons, officers, subjects, and citizens," as was specially provided should be done by the treaty. Under such circumstances, the doctrine of Vattel, adopted by Sir 28 - ' I > ) 434 ADJUSTMENT OP CLAIMS UNDER THE William Scott, applies, "that those who through their own fault remain ignorant of the publication of the truce are bound to repair any damage they may have caused contrary to its tenor." The party injured is in the same situation as a neutral whose vessel has been seized and destroyed as the property of a hostile power, where it is holden the neutral can only be justified by a full restitu- tion in value. — (1 Wildman, vol. 2. p. 175.) There is no other measure of damage that justly meets the require- ments of the case. The treaty provides not only that " all vessels/ ' but also " their effects," which may be taken, after a certain specified number of days, within certain described limits, shall be restored on either side. But if the effects of a vessel, consisting of provisions or other articles, are taken and consumed, or are otherwise disposed of, so they cannot be restored specifically, it will hardly be contended that no remuneration is to be made. If this be so, the rule would equally follow in relation to the ves- sel. Restoration and restitution are synonymous. One meaning of the word " restore^" as laid down by Webster is, "to make restitution or satisfaction for a thing taken, by returnint;; something else, or something of different value," and this is the meaning which should be rightfulty attached to the word in the treaty. I do not understand that this is, in reality, denied; but the position is taken by Great Britain in this case, that she is relieved from restor- ing the vessel, for the reason that it was subsequently cast away and lost by the act of God, and no one is accountable. If the case can be brought within this principle the excuse might avail, but there are circumstances connected with it that preclude such defence. No one can plead the destruction of property as the act of God, who is wrongfully in the use and control of such property. He is a wrong doer from the outset ; he has converted the property from the instant of possession, and the subsequent calamity which may happen, however inevitable it may be, is no excuse for its loss. The John was in the rightful pursuit of a lawful voyage, at a time and place when peace existed by tlie express stipulations of the par- ties, after taking such period for notice as they held that the case required. She had pursued her course northwardly some four or five hundred miles out from harbor, on her way to her destined port. She was CONVENTION WITH GREAT BRITAIN. 436 m fault repair se vessel 5 power, 1 restitu- rcquire- vessels/' specified '.stored on, visions or 3pos6d of, jontended ) the ves- leaning of restitution V else, or ich should le position om restor- away and use might elude such the act of )erty. He perty from tiich may OSS. at a time f the par- the case there seized, placed under the charge of new men, and her course was directly reversed, until she was taken hack to the West Indies, and through mismanagement, or misadventure, was run on shore and lost. It may have heen the ordinary accident of the seas, or may not ; but, in any event, she was taken there without right, and subjected to risks to which she was not legally and justly liable. The plea that she was lost by the act of God is not, under such circumstances, ad- missible. The vessel itself cannot be restored, but such compensation and' restitution should be made as the nature of the case admits of. In the argument, considerable stress has been laid on a quotation in Kent and Wheaton, said to be founded on Grotius, that where col- lisions arise, after peace exists, the governments *'are not amenable in damages, but it is their duty to restore vhat has been captured, hut not destroyed." The citation irom Grotius is, however, erroneous. He merely says, in the section referred to, that if any acts be done, in violation of the truce, before notice can be given, "the government will not be liable to punishment, but the contracting parties will be bound to make good the damage." — (Wheicell's Grotius, liber 3, cJiap, 21, sec. 5.) What shall be the precise effect, as a matter of notice, where differ- ent periods of time are stipulated in which peace shall take place, does not seem to have been fully considered and settled. If it shall be held as an acknowledgment of notice, then every subsequent act of violation of it is the act of a wrong-doer, and full compensation fol- lows of necessity. I can see no possible mode of avoiding tlie justness or soundness of the construction at which we have arrived, but think it should pre- v«'l on every ground of public policy and right interpretation of international compacts of this character. • I am happy to say that my colleague, though he hesitates some- what as to the views presented, waives his objection to the allowance of the claim, except on the score of interest, and this question is to be submitted to the umpire. Interest was allowed. fQ hundred She was 436 ADJUSTMENT OF CLAIMS UNDEB TSB CHARLES UHDE AND COMPANY. British merchants who continued residents in Mexico, engaged in trade, after war had broken out between that country and the United States, hold as alien enemies, and not entitled to recovery under this convention, as already holden in Laurents' case. Where, after the capture of a Mexican port, it was opened to trade of residents and others, subject to the payment of certain duties, held, under such license, the character of alien enemies ceased, and v/here the United States had taken cognizance of the claims of such residents, as of British subjects, prior to the convention, these claims might be rightfully em- braced within it. License to a vessel to enter and discharge a cargo does not free her from the claim of pay- ment of duties. Where order was issued for payment of duties as a discharge from seizure, but, through misfortune or misunderstanding, was not carried into effect, held that compensation be made. i: ■( I Charles Uhde & Co. were British subjects who had been resident merchants in Matamoras, in Mexico, since the year 1842, and con- tinued to reside there after the commencement of the war between that government and the United States, in 1846. In June of that year, Matamoras was captured by the United States troops, and a cir- cular was issued, opening the port to American vessels free of duty, or other vessels freighted with American goods or produce, or with foreign goods that had paid an import duty in the United States. The Messrs. Uhde chartered the American schooner Star, at New Orleans, for a voyage to Havana, designing to import from there a a cargo of merchandise for Matamoras. The Star arrived, on the 6th of November, at Brazos, at the mouth of the Kio Grande ; and the master of the vessel went on shore, and inquired of a Mr. Cook, who claimed to be a deputy collector, if his vessel might enter. He gave him a permit to enter, as follows : GOlCrBNTION WITH QBBAT BRITAIN. 437 ter war had lies, and not s and others, cter of alien aims of such ightfully em- ilaim of pay- but, through ion be made. Brazos St. Iaqo, November, 1846. The master of the schooner Star is authorized to discharge her cargo at Barita or Matamoras. G. S. COOK, Deputy Collector. Charles Uhde & Co. Cook charged $7 50 for his fees. The vessel passed up the river and landed her goods at Matamoras, and the claimants placed them in their own storehouses. Two days afterwards the goods were seized by Colonel Clark, the commanding military officer of the station. Appeal was made to Washington, and a full hearing had, on the examination of the parties, before Mr. Walker, the Secretary of the Treasury, who decided that the seizure was lawful, but issued an order that the goods might be returned by paying the duty according to the tariff of 1842, with charges for ware- house rent and interest from the time of the seizure. These terms were not complied with, and the goods were taken to Galveston, in Texas, and condemned and sold, in a damaged state, at much loss. The claimants say that no person came to Matamoras to carry that order into effect. The officers of the government were there, however, claiming control of the property, and there is no evidence showing any tender of payment, or offer of compliance with the order. 1 resident and con- between ne of that and a cir- e of duty, e, or with tates. r, at New m there a an the 6th and the Oook, who He gave i^ si 438 ADJUSTMENT OF CLAIMS UNDER* THE Mr. Hannen, agent and counsel for Great Britain, contended that after the capture of Matamoras, and the opening of the port, the ex- ception taken to the jurisdiction would not hold good as to commerce subsequently allowed. It had been expressly waived also by the United States government prior to the convention, and could not now be urged. He contended that, under the license of entry, no duties should have been demanded, and that after the claim of duties was insisted on, sale was made without fault of the claimant, and compensation should be allowed. CONVENTION WITH GREAT BRITAIN. 439 ded that , the ex- ommerce rcrnment !S should ) insisted pensation Thomas, Agent for the United States. It appears from the papers in this case that the claimant was, in the month of November, 1846, a resident merchant of Matamoras, Mexico. War existed between the United States and that country at the time the transaction took place of which the complaint is made, and the United States army was in possession of Matamoras. The American schooner " Star," Captain Merrill, master, arrived at the mouth of the Rio Grande November 6, 1846. On his arrival there, it is alleged that the captain made application to G. S. Cook, the deputy collector at Brazos Santiago, for a permit to discharge the cargo of his vessel at Burita or Matamoras. Both these places were without the revenue district of Mr. Cook, and his permit, even if honestly obtained, could give no right to land the goods at either Burita or Matamoras, because he had no authority in either place. Besides, both were under military government, and an officer of the army at each place was acting as collector of the port. Under the authority of this permit, it is stated that the cargo of the "Star " was transferred to a steamboat and landed at Mata- moras, and the goods placed in the warehouse of the claimant. A few days thereafter they were seized, on the ground that they had been introduced by a fraudulent evasion of the custom-house regulations of the place. It is not pretended that any duty had been paid on these goods, and the right to sell them without such payment was asserted by the claimant, because the civil authority of the United States had not yet been extended over that possession. The commanding officer refused to allow him this privilege, and he now claims, in consequence of the proceedings of the military commander, twelve thousand pounds ster- ling damages, from the government of the United States. In the first place, I must object to the jurisdiction of the commis- sion in this case. The convention under which it is organized gives jurisdiction of the claims of " British subjects" upon the government of the United States. The claimant was domiciled in the enemy's country when the transaction took place of which he complains, and by a well settled principle of international law, he is to be regarded as a Mexican, and not a British subject ; and whatever claim he may have had against the United States was disposed of by the treaty of 440 ADJUSTMENT OF CLAIMS UNDER THE peace. This is not the tribunal before which to make his complaint^ as I have fully shown in the argument I had the honor to submit to the commissioners, in the case of the Messrs. Laurent, and to which I would now beg to refer them. Upon the simple statement of this case, it seems to me the commis- sioners must reject the claim entirely. A merchant, living in the enemy's country, ventures to sliip goods to a military port, re 3ntly fallen into the hands of u victorious army, and ho rinds that the rev- enue laws of the conqueror's country have not yet been proclaimed there by the Executive, and he hence claims the right to disregard the regulations which the military commandant has established, and to say that because the revenue laws liave not been extended over this place by the civil autliority, that he will exercise the right to sell his goods in that market without the payment of duties. I can see nothing in this pretension likely to deserve the attention of the com- missioner, unless it be its effrontery. The civil authority at Matamoras was merged in the military. The commander of the place was supreme. He dictated all the laws for its government, and it cannot be disputed that he had, by the laws of war, the right to impose any law or regulation which he deemed proper for the landing of goods, or to prescribe the conditions on which they might be sold within his command. It is not unusual for the conqueror to regard the laws found existing as in force till it may become expedient to change them. There was, previous to the taking of the place by the anuy, a law of Mexico requiring the payment of duties, and the claimant should have expected to become subject to this law, if no other had been established. The commander, however, chose not to enforce this law, but to adopt that which was prescribed for the admission and sale of the same kind of goods in the United States, which he had clearly a right to do. It is, however, impossible, in any view of the case, that this cargo could be rightfully entered and sold in that port without the payment of duty. When Matamoras was taken by the array, there was no cessation of law or government. When the authority of Mexico terminated, that of the United States commenced ; and there was consequently no inter- regnum during which the claimant could come in unaflFected by law. It is alleged, however, that the claimant had a permit to land the goods. In my statement of the case, I have already shown that the per- CONVENTION WITH GREAT BRITAIN. 441 mplaint, lubmit to to which commis- ig in the re 3ntly b the rev- roclaimed egarcl the f(l, ami to over this to sell his [ can see the com- military. 1 the laws d, by the which he conditions )t unusual jrce till it revious to liring the to become mmander, which was )ods in the however, ■ightfuUy . When on of law ed, that of r no inter- 1 by law. land the lat the per- mit was wholly illegal and gave no protection or authority whatever. Besides, there is much reason to believe that, valueless as it was, from being granted by a custom-house officer possessing no jurisdiction over the district of Matamoras, there was fraud in procuring it. The deputy collector made ^ written statement, it is said, that the captain of the scliooner " Star " made oath before him that the duties had been paid, and the said deputy collector exhibited what purported to bo a copy of this oath, subscribed by the captain of the Star, to Lieutenant Chase, quartermaster of the army and collector of the port. These circumstances go to show that the permit, so much relied upon, was fraudulently obtained. This case was fully and carefully investigated by the Secretary of the Treasury, and Uhde, the claimant, was heard before him by coun- sel, and the result was that the Secretary decided the duties must be paid, and in case that was not done, the goods should be sold at auc- tion, and the duties and expenses being deducted the balance should be turned over to the claimant. This order was carried into effect in a manner the least exceptionable to the claimant. The goods were transported to Galveston and there sold under a decree of the district court, and the sum of $8,715 36 was left at the disposal of the claimant. It appears, therefore, that he had a hearing before the Secretary of the Treasury, and the further privilege of a trial by the district court, which in the United States is the court of admiralty jurisdiction, and the proper tribunal to determine a question of this kind ; and that court ordered the goods to be sold and the duty and expenses paid. The trial took place at Galveston, in Texas, the nearest place that could have been selected and the most convenient to the claimant. It is difficult to conceive how the United States could have acted with greater fairness or with more regard for his just rights. The com- missioners ought to give due consideration to the fact that this case has been decided by the proper executive officer charged with the ad- ministration of this particular branch of the government, and that the decision has been confirmed by the judgment of a competent court. Universal law and international comity demand that these proceedings should be everywhere respected, and, most of all, by a joint commission, sitting under the authority of England and the United States. I 442 ADJUSTMENT OF CLAIMS UNDER TBE a Dr. PiKLLiMORG, for t)io chiiuiunts : It cannot bo disputed tlmt prima facie Mr. Uhde is ontitlci; ..ii^er the terniH of the convention — namely, "suhjocts of her Britannic Majesty" — to have his claim entertained by the commissioners. I agree, however, that a treaty or convention is to bo construed, and particular expressions in it interpreted, agreeably to the rules of international law. I do not know upon what principle of law, or what authority among jurists, a restrictive interpretaiimi could be affixed upon these words of the convention, unless, indeed, (as I understand the American counsel to argue,) they happened to have received such restrictive in- terpretation from a uniform current of decisions of acknowledged in- ternational authority. I do not see that the authority of any jurist is referred to by Mr. Thomas, and the cases v;hich he cites* are far from satisfying me that the commissioners could legally adopt any such exceptional construc- tion of the terms as is contended for. They are taken from the prize courts, from the privy council, from the common law, and from the equity courts. A misunderstanding of the cases in the prize courts appears to me to be at the root of Mr. Thomas's argument. It is quite true iVoX flagrante hello merchants residing in the enemy's country are considered, with reference to the belligerent right of maritime prize, as subjects of that country^ without reference to the country of their origin or allegiance, and without much reference to the length of their residence. Their domicil, for this particular purpose, is said to be sufficient to found the right of the maritime captor; but it would be stretching the principle of those decisions to an extent which was never intended to say that they were not British subjects in the sense of this conven- tion ; for instance, and the example alone is sufficient to answer the whole question, is there any jurist who would say that an injury offered to a British merchant residing at Mexico would not, all other means of redress being exhausted, justify the issue of reprisals on the part of Great Britain ? *This is designed as an answer to Mr. Thomas's argument in Laurents' case, page 136. CONVENTION WITH GREAT BRITAIN. 448 l; alitor ritannic 8. nstrued, rules of y among ie words imerican ctivo in- dgod in- ) by Mr. [ me that Bonstruc- khe prize from the rs to me enemy's right of ce to the erence to The case of McConnell vs. Hector, decided in 1802, (3 Boh. aud Puller, p. 314,) that perHons who had incorporatod thoniselvos with the commerce of the enemy, Jlagrantc hello, may not sue in this country. The case of Albretch vh. Susman (2d Vesey and Ik^ames, p. 32fi) decided that the quasi diplomalic character of consuls made no differ- ence as to the law on this point. The Countess of Conway's case, (2d Knapp's Privy Council Reports, p. 367,) when examined, appears to be adverse to Mr. Thomas's argu- ment, for Mr. IJaron Parke decided, in that case, that the party must show " that siie was a British subject in some sense," and that " one of these two things must be shown, either that the countess was a natural-born British subject, or that having been born abroad she was domiciled in England, and in that character entitled to the protection of a British subject at the time of the confiscation." Now, Mr. Uhde is a natural-born subject of Great Britain, and his native character, by a particular regulation of the Mexican State, is most carefully preserved. I am of opinion that the principles of international law do not war- rant the restrictive interpretation sought to be put upon the plain words of the convention, and that Mr. Uhde is not disentitled to have his claim entertained by the commissioners. ROBERT PHILLIMORE. Doctors' Commons, October 14, 1854. ficient to ling the ntended conven- swer the n injury ,11 other 8 on the >age 136. 444 ADJUSTMENT OF CLAIMS UNDER THE II REPLY OP MR. THOMAS, AGENT OP THE UNITED STATES, TO THE ARGUMENT OF DR. PHILLIMORE, M. P., ADVOCATE TO HER MAJESTY IN HER OFFICE OF ADMIRALTY, &c. The learned advocate, Dr. Phillim >re, has, in his opinion, reviewed and attempted to answer my argtment in the case of the Messrs. Laurent. He admits that "a treaty or convention is to be construed, and particular expressions in it interpreted, agreeably to the rules of international law ; " but he says that I do not cite any jurist in sup- port of the meaning I give to the term " British subjects," as this is used in the convention. It is important, in the outset, to observe that the learned advocate has admitte'' that we are no^ to look into the British statutes for the meaning of the term " Briti h subject," but that we are to seek for its interpretation in the law of nations. The jurists and writers on intemationol law to whom he refers do not make the law ; they collect the decisions of the courts that determine what the law is, and it must be quite as authoritative to quote from the decisions as to cite the jurist who has merelv collated and made comments upon them. However, it will not be difficult to cite both the jurists and the courts in support of the construction for which I contend. Chancellor Kent is a jurist of acknowledged authority everywhere, in England and America, and he says '' the position is a clear one, that if a perpon goes into a foreign country and engages in trade there, he is, by the law of nations, to be considered a merchant of that country, and a subject for all civil purposes, whether the country be hostile or neutral." The claimants were engaged in trade in Mexico, while that country was at war with the United States, and hence Chancellor Kent's doctrine applies in the strongest manner. They are to be considered subjects of that country and, of course, enemies of the United States. If they were subjects of that country, they could not be at the same time British subjects, in the sense of the treaty, because Dr. Phillimore admits that its words are to be interpreted by international law, and that law looks only to see who are rendering practical allegiance, who are absolutely under the control and government of a country, in order to determine who are its subjects. — (One allegiance ; see Phillimore, Int. Law, p. 347.) CONVENTION WITH GREAT BRITAIN. 445 TO THE MAJESTY reviewed s Messrs. Dnstrued, e rules of st in sup- as this is advocate ;es for the D seek for \rriters on ley collect id it must cite the )on them, the courts erywhere, clear one, I in trade srchant of le country at country or Kent's considered ;ed States. « t the same 'hillimore law, and ance, who , in order hillimore, In support of my view of the law on this point, I would cite Dr. Phillimore's own work on Domicil, page 133, where he quotes entire, and with approbation, the case of the ship Ann. This vessel was seized in the river Thames in 1812. The master was a British-born subject, and his family still resided in Scotland, but he was residing in America; an order in council decreed that all vessels under the flag of the United States, bona jide the property of his Majesty's subjects, purchased before the war, should be restored, and the question was, whether the master of the Ann was a British subject ? Sir William Scott, whose decision Dr. Phillimore approves, said " he cannot take advantage of both characters at the same time. He has been sailing out of American ports. It is quite impossible he can be protected under the order in council, which applies only to those who are clearly and habitually British subjects, having no intermixture of foreign commercial character." Here is, from Dr. Phillimore himself, the exact interpretation of the words " British subject," for which I am contending. But he says again, at page 146 of the same work : ''Every man is vieived by the laio of nations as a member of the society in which he is found. " ' ' Residence is prima facie evidence of national character, susceptible, however, at all times, of explanation. If it be for a special purpose, and transient in its nature, it shall not destroy the original or prior national character ' but if it be taken up animo manendi, (with the intention of remaining,) then it becomes a domicil, superadding to the original or prior character the rights and privi- leges, as well as the disabilities and penalties of a citizen, a subject of the country in tvhich the residence is established. According to this rule of Dr. Phillimore, the claimants being found in Mexico were, by the law of nations, members of that society and subjects of that country ; they are not, therefore, included within the provisions of a treaty to settle claims of "British subjects" upon the government of the United States. Dr. Phillimore admits that persons residing in the enemy's country are considered as subjects of that country, in reference to their property on the high seas. If this is true of their property on the ocean, why is it not equally so of this same property when it is located in the country itself. It is then much more hostile, and clothes the owner who is wii h it more especially with the enemy character. Suppose an American citizen should now be residing in Sebastopol, his pro- 446 ADJUSTMENT OF CLAIMS UNDER THE l»! perty on the ocean would be liable to seizure and confiscation, for his domicil being there, he would be invested with the national character of a Eussian subject, and what he might have within that fortress would, ii possible, render his Kussian character even more complete. Will it be contended that, if his property there should be injured or destroyed, the British government must settle with him upon a different principle from that of the native-born Kussian found in Se- bastopol ? According to Dr. Phillimore's argument in favor of British-born subjects domiciled in Mexico during the war, he is en- titled to be considered as a neutral, and, if hereafter there should be a convention to settle the claims of American citizens upon Great Britain, he may claim compensation for injury done to him or his property in Sebastopol. I apprehend the British government will never- adopt any such rule. . Dr. Phillimore, to show that I have stretched the principle of the admiralty decisions too far, supposes an injury offered to a British mercha.it residing in Mexico, and all other means of redress being ex- hausted, asks " would not any jurist say the English government would be justified in making reprisals?" I will answer this by ask- ing whether the United States would be justified in making reprisals for an injury that may be done to one of her citizens that may be found in Sebastopol? Every man found there (by the law of nations) is an enemy of Great Britain, and will be treated as a subject of the Emperor of Russia. When peace is made, the American citizen so situated will not be permitted to say that he is not bound by it, but that England has yet to make a separate settlement of his claims for property seized or destroyed. A treaty of peace binds every person in the countiy and settles all their claims ; and upon this principle the treaty of peace between the United States and Mexico disposed of the claim of every man in that country upon the United States. It is not true, then, to say that the English government would be justified by the law of nations in making reprisals for an injury done to a British-born subject residing in Mexico during the war between the United States and that country. She could no more interpose, as a matter of right, in behalf of a British-born than she could in favor of a Mexican-born subject, if they were both there engaged in business. What Dr. Phillimore says of the case of McConnell vs. Hector (3d Bosanquet and Puller, p. 114) is true, but he makes no reference to CONVENTION WITH GREAT BRITAIN. 447 )rhi8 racier rtress iplete. red or pon a inSe- ,vor of is en- Id be a Great or his nt will ) of the British eing ex- ernment 1 by ask- reprisals may be nations) b of the tizen so y it, but aims for y person principle sposed of es. kvould be ury done between irpose, as [ in favor business. ector (3d I'erence to the essential point in that case on which I relied. He says : *'This case decided that persons who had incorporated themselves with the commerce of the enemy during war cannot sue in this country." Yet if he stops there, the impression is left that this is all that was de- clared to be law by that case. Lord Alvanley did not arrive at that » inclusion without having first laid down the doctrine that "while an Englishman resides in the hostile country he is a subject of tha^. country. " It is clear, on this authority alone, that the claimants can- not be regarded as British subjects in their Mexican transactions. He says the case of Albrecht vs. Susman (2 Vesey and Beames Rep., p. 323) decided that the quasi diplomatic character of consuls made no difference as to the law on this point. It also decided, however, that the consul was a subject of the enemy's country if he continued to re- side there during war, and for a still stronger reason must the sub- ject, holding no official position, and remaining in the enemy's country, be so regarded. ; v.. =^M^i, < , ■ ,-^- r *,< . - ' ' ';• •■■■ Conway's case (in 2d Knapp's Privy Council Reports) fully sus- tains the doctrine that a foreigner domiciled in a country is considered by the law of nations a subject of that country. Dr. Phillimore's opinion, that the term "British subjects," used in the convention, embraces British-born subjects domiciled in Mexico, or engaged there in trade, and hence parties to the war between the United States and that country, is not therefore sustained by any of the cases he has cited, nor by his own authority. JNO. A. THOMAS. London, October 26, 1864. 448 ADJUSTMENT OF CLAIMS UNDER THE Upham, Commissioner of the United States : -., , In tiiis case the Messrs. Uhde & Company had been for many y^afs resident merchants in Matamoras, in Mexico. They remained there during the Mexican war and subsequent to its capture. The port was then opened for the introduction of merchandise, under regulations similar to those imposed on merchandise imported into the United States. The Star, belonging to the claimants, had been previously chartered at New Orleans for the Havana, and, from there, was to take a cargo of merchandise to Matamoras. On arrival, application was made to know if the vessel might enter the port, and she received a permit from G. S. Cook, at the mouth of the Rio Grande, that the vessel might enter to discharge her cargo at Barita or Matamoras. The vessel proceeded to Matamoras, landed her cargo without fur- ther license, or rendering any account for duties, and they were seized by the commandant of the station. Application was made at Wash- ington, and, on a full hearing there had of the claimants, the seizure was sustained by Secretary Walker as legal, and the goods were or- dered to be discharged on the payment of duties according to the tariff of 1842, and charges and expenses of warehouse rent, and in- terest on the duties from the time of seizure until the payment was made. This decision was communicated to the parties. Subsequent to this period, there is no evidence showing any offer of payment of these duties, or any attempt to comply with the order of the Secretary of the Treasury ; and the goods were ultimately proceeded against in the United States disL'ict of Galveston, and the goods were sold. The case has been argued mainly on the point, whether cognizance could be taken of the Messrs. Uhdes' claim before this commission ; they having been resident merchants at Matamoras, during the war between Great Britain and the United States. That point has been already fully considered and settled in the case of the Messrs. Laurent, and if it came within the principles of that decision, we should have no hesitation in its re-affirmance. But the proceedings here all arise after Matamoras had been captured, and it had become an American possession, with its ports opened to commerce, both to resident citizens and subjects of all other nations. The Messrs. Uhdes then, wore not to be regarded as alien enemies, and might perhaps rightfully be con- CONVENTION WITH GREAT BRITAIN. 449 ay years 3d there port was julations } United reviously B, was to )plication 5 received , that the noras. thout fur- ere seized at Wash- he seizure Is were or- ng to the it, and in- ment was Lent to this it of these ftary of the iinst in the cognizance Immission ; jor the war It has been 3. Laurent, lould have h-e all arise Anierican ent citizens li, wore not Illy he con- sidered as coming within their original character as British subjects. The Secretary of the Treasury, in considering their case, too)' no exceptions on this ground, and it is a case which, under these circum- stances, may well be holden as within the jurisdiction of this com- mission. The claim for damages has been placed on two grounds: 1. It has been contended that the permission to enter the river for a discharge of goods at Barita, or Matamoras, was an allowance to enter free of duty. It seems to me, that this is a wholly groundless pretence. The purport of the permit indicates nothing to this effect on its face, and, moreover, it is in every respect manifestly an unjust evasion of the whole spirit and tenor of the orders, the design of which was to place imports on the same basis as those into the United States. It was argued that an offer of payment of duties was made to the commandant before application was forwarded to Washington for re- lief. I am not satisfied from the testimony before us, that any such offer was made. A full and elaborate hearing was, at the time, had before the Secretary of the Treasury, and the witnesses of the claimants were examined under interrogatories in writing. I have seen no rea- son to doubt the justness of his award, and if it be just, it shows a wrongful attempt at evasion of duty in a clear case, and renders it incumbent on him, after such judgment, to show a tender of readiness and willingness on his part to comply with the decision made. The claimants have offered no evidence of any measures having been taken by thoni to meet such decision, by demand of the goods from the commandant of the place, and a tender of the duties and expenses required, or of nny other effort on their part to reclaim their property, subject to the nen of tlie government. This was clearly imperative on them. There seems to have been no design to comply with the order of the government, and we can account for it only from carelessness or inability, or indisposition to conform to it. They should, at least, exonerate themselves from any such charge. Tlicy have not done this, or attempted to do it. The goods remained for a long time undisposed of, and were finally libelled and sold. This result was inevitable, unless prevented by the action of the claimants, and I can see no just ground in such case for the allowance of any remuneration on account of the sale. m II I .1 -^.r T- 450 ADJUSTMENT OP CLAIMS UNDER THE Hornby, Commissioner of Great Britain : Held to the views entertained by him in the Laurent case, that the Messrs. Uhde & Company were British subjects, within the meaning and intent of the present convention, and that the case was fully within the jurisdiction of the commissioners. He also was further of opinion, that subsequent to the capture of Matamoras, and the opening of the trade of that port to residents and other persons, any objection arising from the position of the claimants as alien enemies was done away^ and that from that time they were to be regarded as clearly entitled to the protection of British subjects. They had been so treated by the United States, prior to this conven- tion, and the position then taken could not now be changed. He viewed the right of entry given to the vessel i»s sustaining the claim, and that the government could not go behind it, and the seizure sbould have been holden illegal; also, that the claimants did ail that was incumbent upon them, after the decision of the Secretary of the Treudury, for the reclaiming their property. ■if>Bf CONVENTION WITH GREAT BRITAIN. 451 .IV that the meaning vas fully 3apture of dents and claimants ey were to I subjects, is conven- aining the the seizure [lid ail that itary of the Bates, Umpire: Messrs. Uhde and Company were merchants of Matamoras, where they had resided from the year 1842, carrying on trade there, having a house of business and.a home in that city. They continued to reside there after the declaration of war by the United States against Mexico in 1846, and until 1851. According to the interpretation of the law of nations, by the highest courts in Great Britain, it is a point settled, " beyond controversy, that where a neutral, after the commencement of hostilities, continues to reside in the enemy's country for the pur- poses of trade he is considered as adhering to the enemy, and as disqualified from claiming as a neutral altogether." — (See Doctor Lushington's judgment in the case of the " Aina," reported in the Jurist of July, 1855.) However good the claim of Messrs. Uhde and Company, as conquered Mexicans, against the United States, by the interpretation of the law of nations as given by the decisions of the courts of Great Britain may be, the claim ought to be excluded from this commission. The government of the United States have, however, entertained the claim in the correspondence between the diplomatic agents of the two countries, and for this reason we hold it should be considered aud settled without further delay. I shall proceed, therefore, to examine and decide the case on its merits. The case is as follows : On war being declared by the United States against Mexico in 1846, the ports of Mexico were declared in a state of blockade ; but several ports (amongst them the port of Mata- moras, on the Rio Grar.de,) having fallen into the possession of the United States forces, the government, on the 30th of June of that year, issued a circular, addressed to the collectors and other officers of the customs in the United States in regard to Matamoras, to the fol- lowing effect, viz : '^In case of application of vessels for clearances for the port of Matamoras, you will issue them under the following circumstances: " Ist. To American vessels only. "2d. To such vessels carrying only articles of the growth, produce, or manufacture of the United States, or of imports from foreign countries to our own, upon lohich duties have been fully paid. Upon all such goods, whether of our own or of foreign countries, no duties will be chargeable at Matamoras, so long as it is in the possession of the ■TTSE^f. 462 ADJUSTMENT OF CLAIMS UNDER THE United States forces. Foreign imports, which may be re-exported in our vessels to Matamoras, will not be entitled to any drawback of duty ; for if this were permitted, they would be carried from that port to the United States, and thus avoid payment of all duties." Of this circular, which was published in the newspapers at the time, Messrs. Uhde & Co. must have been aware. They, however, sent to New Orleans and chartered the American schooner "Star," for a voyage to Havana, to load a cargo of merchandise for Matamoras, if open, and if not open, she was to proceed to New Orleans to discharge. The circular indicates that no foreign goods could be shipped from the United States to that port until the duties had been fully paid. Messrs. Uhde & Co. could not, therefore, when chartering the "Star," have supposed that a cargo of foreign goods, from a foreign port, could enter without paying duty, when foreign goods from the United States were chargeable with full duty in the United States in order to their admission free at Matamoras. It is stated that it was known at Havana, when the " Star " sailed, that the port of Matamoras was blockaded ; but it is very extraordinary that a vessel should proceed to a port known to be blockaded to inquire whether it is so or not. The " Star" arrived at Brazos the 6th No- vember, 1846, which is on the Texan bank of the Kio Grande. The captain went on shore to inquire if he might enter his vessel, and Mr. Or. S. Cook, who was or assumed to be deputy collector, informed him that he might, and charged him $7 50 for fees. Captain Merrill, of the *'Star," exhibited his manifest, &c., and received a permit to discharge his cargo in the following words : "The master of the schooner 'Star,' from Havana, is authorized to discharge her cargo at Barita or at Matamoras. G. S. COOK, Deputy Collector. Brazos St. Jago, November 7, 1846." clr the The schooner was then brought into the river^ and the goods were landed in open day by Messrs. Uhde ».V Co., and placed in their own warehouses, and were, two days afterwards, seized by the military commander of the place on the charge of being fraudulently introduced. The whole defence of Messrs. Uhde for their landing the goods rests on the value and force they attach to the permit given to Captain Merrell to discharge his cargo. It is very well known to every one ■"■(•V >. CONVENTION WITH GREAT BRITAIN. 453 »rted in .fduty, t to the J at the lowever, "Star," tamoras, rleans to could be had been hartering ,s, from a ign goods he United ,r" sailed, raordinary L to inquire he 6th No- mde. The el, and Mr. ■ormed him Merrill, of permit to authorized )0K, |Y, 1846." goods were In their own Ithe military ■introduced. (g the goods In to Captain to every one conversant with foreign trade, that it is the duty of every shipmaster, on arrival at a foreign port, to proceed to the custom-house, enter his vessel, and pay light and port dues ; until he has done so, he is not allowed to commence discharging his cargo. But this is very different from a consignee's permit to land the goods which are entered and bonded, or the duties paid by the consignees when a permit is granted to land the same. The seizure was, therefore, justifiable, as no inquiry was made by Messrs. Uhde & Co. if any duties were payable. After the seizure, it is stated that the claimants offered to pay the duties of the American tariff tohicJi was to go into operation on the 1st Deceniber next. This was refused by Colonel Clark, the commanding military officer, who seemed determined to wait orders from a higher quarter. The claimants then made application to the British minister at Washington, who applied to the then Secretary of State, the Hon, James Buchanan, the case was referred to the Secretary of the Treas- ury, the Hon. K. J. Walker, who examined the master of the Star, brought to Washington by the claimants, and other evidence, and a final decision was come to that the seizure was sustained ; but an order was made, directed to the collector of the customs at Galveston, that the claimants might have their goods on payment of duty accord- ing to the tariff of 1842, and charges and expense of warehouse rent, and interest on the duties from the date of the seizure until paid. From some cause the settlement was never carried into effect. The claimants allege that no person ever came to Matamoras as directed by the Secretary of the Treasury, and that the goods were taken to Gal- veston, condemned, and sold in a damaged state for about $8,800. My belief is that, had the arrangement made by the Secretary of the United States Treasury been carried into effect, the result would liave been that the claimants would have realized near the cost value of their goods. I therefore award to Messrs. Charles Uhde & Co., or their legal representatives, in full of said claim, the sum of twenty- five thousand dollars, this 15th January, 1855. APPENDIX. Letter from the Commissioners to Mr, Van Biircn, communicating his appointment as Umpire. LoNi N, October 13, 1853. Sir : Enclosed you will find a copy of tho ntiou foi the adjust- ment of certain claims between Great Britain the United States. Tiio imdersigned have been appointed comii loncrs on the part of the two governments to carry the provisions ot the convention into effect^ and the first meeting was liolden by them on the fifteenth of September ultimo. Since that time they have been occupied in various conferences in reference to the appointment of an umpire, required to be made by the terms of the convention, to act in case of any dis- agreement between the commissioners. In endeavoring, however, to fix upon an individual who should unite in himself the requisites of high character, exalted position, and strict impartiality, they have experienced the greatest difficulty ; nevertheless, they are happy to say they have been able to unite cordially in agreeing upon yourself, and believe your appointment will be highly acceptable to their respective peoples and governments. The object of this letter is to apprise you of this selection, and to express the hope of the undersigned that your acceptance of the post may be consistent with your engagements. You will perceive that an umpire will bo called upon to act only in cases of disagreement between the commissioners, which, it is to be hoped, may not arise, but which, at the same time, is not wholly un- likely to be the case. By the provisions of the convention, it is possible that claims may not be presented until within three months of the period limited for its termination, after which time hearing may be had before the com- missioners, and in case of disagreement as to such claims, they could not be submitted to the umpire until near the close of the commission. It will be desirable, therefore, for the umpire to be in a situation to act as such, should he be called upon, until the termination of the commission, which will be on the fifteenth of September next. It is desirable, also, in case the commissioners should disagree upon any claims which might be early presented to them, that the umpire should be able to attend their hearing in London, if requisite, as promptly as may be desired by the parties ; although an adjournment might, in some cases, be arranged, or the umpire may, under some circumstances, be communicated with abroad. The undersigned think ft I i ^ IMAGE EVALUATION TEST TARGET (MT-3) 1.0 ^^ Ui 1 1.1 I.-" 1^ I^iolDgFaphic Sciences Corporation :<\^ \ 4^ <- ^^ - u 23 WIST MAIN STMET WIBSTIR.N.Y. USM (71«) t73-4503 W ^ O^ **> ■ s ■■_ 456 APPENDIX. it due to you, and right, to mention the services which may devolve on the office of umpire, hut they sincerely and anxiously trust that it may he consistent with your engagements to attend to its duties, and they would he most happy, and conceive themselves fortunate, to hear from you to that effect. In conclusion, the undersigned would ohserve that as the time during which the commission is to sit is limited, they should esteem your early answer a personal favor, inasmuch as in the event of your refusal, a contingency which they trust will not arise, a new appoint- ment, or the ^adoption of the alternative pointed out in the conven- tion — in itself highly undesirable in every respect — will become necessary. The undersigned are, with the highest consideration of respect, your very obedient servants, N. G. UPHAM, * American Commissioner. Mr. Van Buren. EDMUND HOKNBY, Her 3IaJesty's Commissioner Letter from Mr. Van Buren to the Commissioners, declining the ap- pointment of Umpire. Florence, October 22, 1853. Gentlemen : I have had the honor to receive your letter enclosing a copy of a convention for the adjustment of certain claims between Great Britain and the United States, and informing me that you had agreed upon me as the umpire, required to be appomted by the terms of the convention, to decide finally in case of disagreement between the commissioners. The high character of the parties to the submission, the different relations in which I stand towards them, with the importance of the interests to be adjusted, and the cordiality with which your choice appears to have been made, give to the compliment it conveys a value of which I am by no means insensible. No one can appreciate more highly than I do the importance, not to themselves only, but to the world, of the maintenance of friendly relations between our respective countries ; and a satisfactory execution of this convention cannot fail to exert a most salutary influence in that direction. In view of mo- tives so impressive, I do most sincerely regret to find myself con- strained, by considerations which I dare not disregard, to decline the appointment you have done me the honor to make. After spending the principal part of my life in the public service, I have for several years withdrawn myself not only from all personal participation in public affairs, but from attention to business of every description, save only what has been indispensable to the management of my private affairs. By adhering to this course I have secured to myself a degree of repose suitable to my age and condition, and eminently conducive APPENDIX. 457 levolvd that it 3S, and to hear le time esteem of your ppoint- conven- become respect, loner the ap- 1853. enclosing between you had he terms between different ce of the ur choice 8 a value ate more lit to the espective nnot fail vv of mo- self con- 'cline the spending •r several mtion in ion, save y private ' a degree jonducive to my happiness, and nothing could he more repugnant to my feelings than to depart from it now. Still, if the matters in contestation consisted of a single question, which I could dispose of by one decision, in case of difference between the commissioners, I would not, under the circumstances, feel myself at liberty to decline tbe responsibility of the umpirage. But my knowledge of the character of joint commissions like the present, and their almost invariable tendency to be kept on foot long after the expiration of the time first agreed upon for their conclusion, satisfies me that I ought not at my time of life to accept a trust which, besides exposing me to serious inconvenience, must control my per- sonal movements for a considerable length of time, and may postpone my return to the United States to a period far beyond that which would be at present anticipated. Allowing myself to hope that the considerations to which I have adverted will satisfy you that I estimate, as I ought, tfie honor which has been conferred upon me, and have not declined its acceptance on inadequate grounds, I am, gentlemen, with great respect, your obedient servant, M. VAN BUREN. Edmund Hornby and N. G. Upham, Esqrs., Commissioners, (fee, (fee. Letter of the honorable N. G, Upham to the British commissioner, pro- posing the appointment of Joshua Bates, Esq., as umpire. London, October 31, 1853. Sir: Your letter of the lltli ultimo, signifying your readiness to agree on Mr. Van Buren, required no reply, as the appointment was at once made in conformity to it. The information from him, how- ever, which has just been received, renders it necessary that further proceedings be had on the subject ; and now I renew the proposition verbally made to you some days since, that, on the contingency of his declining, I should propose Joshua Bates, esq., of London, of the firm of Baring, Brothers & Co., a-s umpire. Mr. Bates is an American-born citizen, who in early life gained such reputation for intelligence, energy, honorable character, and business acquirements, as to cause a demand for his services in the leading banking house of this country and the world. His long resi- dence in England in that position and his great success has estab- lished him here permanently as his adopted home, and has given him a standing and character that should impart full confidence to the claimants of both countries, as well as to the governments themselves, in the intelligence, integrity, and impartiality of his decisions. I hope you will concur with me in the fitness and propriety of the selection of Mr. Bates, and, with the commission thus organized, I shall have the fullest confidence in the prospect of a just and satis- ^t --^. _ ik. 468 APPENDIX. factory adjustment of all outstanding claims of the citizens of either government against our respective countries. I am, with the highest respect^ your obedient servant, N. G. UPHAM. Edmund Hornby, Esq., Commissioner of Claims, Letter from, Edmund Hornby, Esq., to the American Commissioner, concurring in the appointment of Joshua Bates, Esq. , as Umpire. London, Noveniber 1, 1853. Sir : I have to acknowledge the receipt of your communication of the 31st ultimo^ in which, after stating that Mr. Van Buren's refusal to accept the appointment of umpire under the mixed commission, had rendered the consideration of some other individuals fitted for the office necessary, you propose to me the name of Joshua Bates, esq., of the firm of Baring Brothers & Company. In reply, I beg to say that I am quite willing to concur in the nomi- nation of that gentleman, having every confidence in his iijtegrity and unblemished reputation. I am, sir, with the highest respect, your very obec^ient servant, EDMUND HORNBY. N. G. Upham, Esq., Commissioner of Claims, dc. Letter from the Commissioners to Joshua Bates, Esq. , communicating his appointment as Umpire. 9 Lancaster Place, Strand, November 1, 1853. Sir : Enclosed you will find a copy of the convention for the adjust- ment of certain claims between Great Britain and the United States. The undersigned have been appointed commissioners on the part of the two governments to carry the provisions of the convention into effect, and the first meeting was holden by them on the 15th of Sep- tember ultimo ; since that time they have had frequent conferences! in reference to the appointment of an umpire, and have at length been able to unite cordially in the nomination of yourself, as a gen- tleman possessing in a high degree the essential qualities of an umpire, namely, high character, and freedom from all personal and national bias. They believe, moreover, that your acceptance of the office would be highly acceptable to their respective peoples and governments, and they theretore venture to express the hope, in apprising you of this selection, that it may be consistent with your engagements to act in the capacity indicated. APPENDIX. 469 Ltlier loner, re. 153. bion of refusal n, had eofl&ce of the ) nomi- tegrity It, IBY. licating 853. adjust- States. part of on into of Sep- ■erence^ length a gen- umpire, ational ould be ts, and of this act in In conclusion, the undersigned would observe that, as the time during which the commission is to sit is limited, they should esteem your early answer a personal favor, inasmuch as, in the event of your refusal, (a contingency which they trust will not arise,) a new ap- pointment, or the adoption of the alternative pointed out in the con- vention, for many obvious reasons highly undesirable in itself, will become necessary. The undersigned are, with the highest consideration and respect, vour obedient servants, N. G. UPHAM, American Commissioner. Joshua Bates, Esq. EDMUND HORNBY, Her Majesty's Commissioner '■*-tL Letter from Joshua Bates, Esq., to the commissioners, accepting the appointment of Umpire. London, 8 Bishopsgate Street within, November 2, 1853. ' Gentlemen : I have received the letter which you have done me the honor to address to me, under yesterday's date, by which, iii virtue of the power conveyed by the convention between Great Britain and the United States, signed at London, the 8th of February, 1853, you have appointed me to act as arbitrator or umpire in case you should not be able to agree in the settlement of any claim or claims embraced in that convention or treaty ; and I have the honor to inform you that I accept the appointment, and am ready to make the required declara- tion whenever it may suit you to appoint a day for that purpose. I have the honor to be, gentlemen, vour obedient servant, JOSHUA BATES. N. G. Upham, Commissioner of the United States. Edmund Hornby, Commissioner of Great Bruain, No. 9 Lancaster Place, Strand. m *. Kv. 460 APPENDIX. Letter from the commissioners to his excellency James Buchanan, United States minister to Great Britain, proposing an extension of the term of the commission; a counterpart of which letter was also addressed to the Earl of Clarendon, her Majesty's Secretary of State for Foreign Affair§. Office of the Commission of Claims, Lancastor Place, June 'J, 1854. Sir : As commissioners under the convention of February, 1853, for settling outstanding claims between Great Britain and the United States, we have the honor to address your excellency in reference to the duration of the commission. By that convention the commissioners are bound to " examine and decide upon every claim thtt may be preferred or laid before them within one year from the day of their first meeting," and it is further stipulated that the claimants shall have six months, and under some circumstances nine months, from that day, within which to present their claims. The commissioners met on the 15th of September last, and the effect of the time granted by the convention to the claimants, within which to present their claims, has been practically, in a great ma- jority of cases, to postpone such presentment to the last moment ; and in some cases the claimants have been unable as yet to complete and present their testimony. Under these circumstances, the year within which the commissioners are to decide upon the claims is practically reduced to a few months, and as it may be necessary to call in the as- sistance of the umpire in some of the cases, (a necessity which the commissioners trust will not often arise,) they feel that it will be im- possible for the umpire to devote the necessary time to such referred claims prior to the close of the commission. By the provisions of the convention all claims arising since 1814, not presented fo the commissioners and allowed by them, are to be finally barred. For this reason, the agents for the governments have adopted the course of presenting all claims on the files of either gov- ernment since that time ; and though very many of these claims are of a character that have not been urged by either government, and will be disallowed, yet they all require an examination and decision, while some of the claims in controversy involve principles requiring much labor and investigation. One hundred and twenty cases have been already presented, and amongst them are several claims made on behalf of a great number of individuals ; so that, in fact, that num- ber will be the least which the commissioners will be called upon to decide. In view, therefore, of the uncertainty of being able to complete the business of the commission within the time limited, and having regard in such case to the necessity of the contracting parties entering into a new treaty for the purpose of continuing the commission — a proceeding which will require the ratification of the Senate of the United States before the close of its present session — the commissioners respectfully m APPENDIX. 461 United term of issed to foreign L854. B53,for United ence to line and re them I further ler some present and the !j within reat ma- ent ; and slete and ir within •actically n the as- irhich the ,11 he im- referred ace 1814, are to he ents have ther gov- is are of a id will he on^ while ng much ses have ims made that num- d upon to aplete the ng regard ing into a iroceeding ted States ispectfully suhmit to your consideration the expediency of extending the time for the close of the commission for some hrief period ; and would express their helief that an extension for the term of four months, from the 15th of September next, would he sufficient for this purpose. With this view, and in order more fully to express their meaning, the commissioners enclose a draft of such a convention as, in their judgment, would eflfect the object proposed ; and they have forwarded a copy of the same to the Earl of Clarendon, her Majesty's secretary of state for foreign affairs, with a counterpart of this letter to your excellency, with an expression of a hope that it may he made, at an early day, a matter of conference between the two governments. With sentiments of the highest consideration and respect, we are your obedient servants, N. G. UPHAM, United States Commissioner. EDMUND HORNBY, British, Commissiwier. To his Excellency James Buchanan, United States Minister to Great Britain^ dc, d:c. , dc. In pursuance of the foregoing recommendation, a convention was entered into between the two governments for an extension of the term of the commission, agreeably to the draft proposed, which was signed at Washington, July 17, 1854, and ratifications were exchanged at London, August 18, 1854, of which due notice was communicated to the commissioners. A copy of said convention will be found in the journal of the com- missioners, page 37. Copy of Mr. Hannen's Protest in the Claim of William Cook and OTHERS. To the honorable the Commissioners under the Convention of February 8, 1853, beftoeen her Britannic Majesty and the United States of America, for the settlement of outstanding claims: Gentlemen : A claim has been presented in behalf of William Cook and others, natives of the United States, asserting themselves to be the next of kin of one Frances Mary Shard, widow, who died intes- tate in 1819, and of whose effects administration was afterwards granted to George Maule, esq., as nominee of the crown. The claim is presented to the commissioners, under the convention of February 8, 1853, on the assumption that the proceeds of the effects of the intestate are "now in the custody of her Majesty's govern- ment," and that, therefore, this is a claim "by citizens of the United States, upon the government of her Britannic Majesty," within the meaning of the convention. I have the honor to submit, in behalf of her Majesty's government. 462 APPENDIX. that the claim of William Cook and others is not one of the class for the settlement of which the convention was entered into, and that it is not within the jurisdiction of the honorable commissioners appointed under that convention. It is believed that the following brief statement of the law of this country, on the subject of the administration of the eflfects of intestates, whose next of kin cannot be discovered, will fully establish the fore- going propositions. Upon the death of a person intestate, administration of his personal effects is granted by the ordinary to the next of kin, in whom, upon such appointment, the property in the effects is completely vested. If no next of kin can be discovered, administration is granted to a nominee of the crown as ultimus Tiieres, and in such nominee the pro- perty of the intestate is vested in the same way as in an ordinary ad- ministrator. The crown would, through its nominee, be at liberty to dispose of the intestate's property for its own private purposes, and in some cases does so, but in general the eflfects of the intestate are, with the excep- tion of a small per centage, distributed amongst such persons as show, to the satisfaction of the crown, that they had some claim upoa the deceased person, and would probably have been objects of his bounty had he made a will. Bonds are, however, taken from these persons to restore the amounts received by them, should the letters of admin- istration granted to the nominee of the crown be afterwards revoked, by reason of the discovery of the next of kin. In the event of such a discovery being made, the course pointed out by law for the person claiming to be next of kin to pursue, is by citation in the ecclesias- tical court, to procure the letters of administration already granted to be revoked, and fresh letters to be granted to the person establishing his claim as next of kin. In illustration of this statement, the case of Rutherford vs. Maule, Haggard's Ecclesiastical Reports, may be referred to, in which the administration of this intestate's effects was the subject of litiga- tion — Rutherford asserting himself to be the next of kin of Mrs. Shard, and seeking the revocation of the letters granted to the nominee of the crown. Under these circumstances, I submit that the claim of William Cook and others is not a claim " by citizens of the United States upon the government of her Britannic Majesty," within the meaning of the first article of the convention, since the government has no control over or interest in the subject-matter of dispute. The claim is between the alleged next of kin and the nominee of the crown, representing the sovereign in his personal capacity, and is as much a private litiga- tion as if the letters of administration sought to be revoked had been granted to a private individual. It is also to be observed, that the ecclesiastical courts are the tribu- nals which have jurisdiction in such matters, to the exclusion of all other courts in this country; that they have a system of practice adapted to this subject, and means of obtaining evidence, which the commissioners appointed under the convention do not possess. The object of the convention appears to have been to erect a tribunal tss for Dhat it ointed of this states, e fore- jrsonal , upon ;ed. ed to a )e pro- ftvy ad- ipose of Qc cases ! excep- s show, poa the bounty persons admin- •evoked, of such e person cclesias- anted to Wishing APPENDIX. '163 to determine disputes, for the decision of which no competent court existed. It cannot have been intended to oust the ordinary courts of law of either country of their jurisdiction, and to transfer cases pecu- liarly within their province to a court of exceptional character, and provided with very limited means of investigation. For these reasons I submit, that the claim of William Cook and others is not within the jurisdiction of the honorable commissioners, and should not be entertained by them. I have thought it right at once to present these observations, in order that the parties interested may be informed as soon as possible of the objection which exists to the prosecution of their claim before the commission, that they may be enabled to take such other proceed- ings as they may be advised. In the event of the claim being persisted in, I shall crave leave to address some further observations in support of the view I now have the honor of submitting to your attention. I am, gentlemen, your obedient servant, JAMES HANNEN. Maide, lich the litiga- Shard, lee of the William tes upon ig of the control jbetween lesenting )e litiga- lad been le tribu- ^n of all practice lich the :U .' tribunal 1 i: .♦« ;;, INDEX OF CASES REPORTED. COSTS. 1. A vessel seized on a charge of bein|f in British waters, without having ship's papers on board, and for being engaged in, and equipped for, the slave trade, was, on trial acquitted, the court finding such charges " to be without foundation, and destitute of any probable cause to sustain them." The vessel was, however, assessed in costs, for which she was sold, held, that the judgment imposing costs was without legal ground to sustain it, and should be annulled, and damages in full be allowed for the seizure. — Barque Jones 2. Courts have no discretionary power to tax costs in a case against the respondent, whore no probable cause for seizure existed DEBENTURE BONDS. Ps|e 83 16. 1. Where debenture bonds had been given on importation of cual, and by act of March 3, 1853, the Secretary of the Treasury was authorized to cancel such bonds given prior to July 1, 1850, held that it entitled the owners to a drawback for the duty on coal. — Great Western Steamship Company 338 DOMICIL. 1. Where claimants, who wore originally British sabjects, had become domiciled in Mexico and continued to reside there, engaged in trade, during war between Mexico and the United States, held that tliey had so far changed their national character that they could not be considered " British subjects " witliin the meaning of these terms as used in the convention for the settlement of claims of British subjects upon the government of the United States. — Lavrenls' case 120 2. A domiciled merchant of the United States or Great Britain, resident in the coun- try of the other, has no right to the action of this commission in matters of current business embraced within the ordinary jurisdiction of the courts of the coi'.ntry where he resides. By treaty of July 3, 1815, such persons "are entitled to protec- tion and security, but are to be subject, always to the laws and statutes of the two countries respectively." — Kenworthy^s case 334 .*). British merchants who continued residents in Mexico, engaged in trade, after war had broken out between that country and the United States, held as alien enemies, and not entitled to recovery under this convention, as already holden in Laurents' case. — Uhde's case .• 436 DRAWBACK. 1. Tlie act of March 2, 1799, regulating the collection of duties on imports and ton* nage so as to entitle the owners to a drawback for duties paid by them on exporta- tion, held not to allow drawback on coal imported, and subsequently used on the voyage, by outward bound steamers. — Great JVeslem Steamship Company 338 30 466 INDEX OF CASES REPORTED. Ptge. Q» Tho act of March 3, 185.'), wliicli authorized tha cancelling of debenture bondi, given prior to July 1, 1850, on coal imported, which wai aftorwardi coniunied at ■ea, Mil to entitle partie* to a drawback on the coal fur which the IwndH were given. 398 DURESS. 1. Evidence that foar« were entertained leat other iuitii might bo inititutod, or aoizurea might be made unleiia a auit wai adjuated, or a general prejudice to buainoaa might ariio from controveriy with tho government, does not conatitute such evidence of durcBi ui to avoid a aettlement. — Ktnworthy'i ea$e 334 EXPORTATION. 1. Shipment of coal for conaumption at aea on outward bound ateamera, ia not an tx- porlation within the meaning of the atatute, entitling tho party to drawback under the act of March 2, 1799.— Great Weittm Sttamhip Company 338 FISHERIES. 1. Conatruction of treaty of 1818 relative to fiaheriea — Sci^ootur Washington 170 9. The clauae in aaid treaty in which the United Statea renounced the liberty " to take, dry, and cure fuh, on certain coaats, bays, harbora, and croeka of hia Britan- nic Majeaty'a dominiona of North America," held not to include the Bay of Fundy. 3. The Bay of Fundy held to be an open arm of tho lea, tio aa not to be aubject to the excluaive right of Great Britain aa to iiaheriea • FLORIDA BONDS. See TERRITORIAL GOVERNMENTS, 1, 2, 3, 4. lb. lb- See FiiHERiEi, '2, 3. FUNDY, BAY OF. GOVERNMENT. 1. Aiaumption of the acta of a citizen by hia government aa ita own acts, doea not neceaaarily bar procuedinga against auch person by a foreign government. — AUxandtr McLtod 314 2. Where a citizen of another government was arrested in this country for a criminal offence, and claimed his discharge on the ground that the acts complained of were done under the authority of his government, time must bo had for the action of the proper tribunals on sucli plea, and the ultimate decision of a court in tho last resort, where the same becomes necessary. — Claim for damage against ib. 3. Neither does any claim for damage arise against such foreign government, where the means provided by law for the adjustment of such questions are less speedy than would be desirable, and may require amendment. Or error has arisen, in courts of subordinate jurisdiction, from which appeal might have been taken, or correction had lb. INTEREST. 1. Where duties on goods were paid under protest, on the ground that a higher rate of duty was demanded than was authorized by the treaty of commerce between the United States and Great Britain, the act itself having expressly provided *■ that nothing contained in it should conflict with that treaty," and immediate demand INDEX OF CASES REPORTED. 467 338 170 314 ,.. lb. are lan I of ion . lb. late Itlie Ihat tnd of repayment having l>een made through the minister of Great Britain, at Waih* ington, htld that intoroit ihouid bo allowed on the amount wrongfully collected from the time of payment.— Roif/Vty Pattiton i( Co 301 9. Where it appeared that the duty waa paid without complaint many yean aince, and that the claim wa« not brought tu the notice of the government, and no demand wai made for repayment until* quite recently ; held that, under luch circunutance*, interest should not be allowed. — Duta on Cotton (ioods — C, tVirgman, agent 311 3. Where drawback for duties was allowed, but was refused, under a controversy as to the construction of a statute, interest was allowed from the time of the demand. — Gnat Wtitem Sttanuhip Company 338 INTERNATIONAL CLAIMS. I. Whore a claim was presented by American citizens as next of kin and heir of a deceased intestate in England, whoso property had gone into custody of the crown for want of heirs ; htld that it did not come within the jurisdiction of the convention, it not being within the class of cases designed for the adjudication of the commission. —Cook Sfah 31 3. The fact tliat a case is brought within the letter of the convention, is not conclusive as to the question of jurisdiction. The commissioners may go behind this to inquire whether it is within the class of cases that have been recognized as matters of inter- national controversy lb. 3. Debts due on loans made by citizens to a foreign country are not the subject ordi- narily of international cognizance, but the parties are left to thoir own remedies. — Hoiford's ea»e, Texas bonds 383 4. Where claims for indebtedness against Texas had never been presented or recog- nized by the British government as a subject of national interposition, prior to the convention of February 8, 1853, and provision had been previously made, and acts were then pending, relative to adjustment of the same, between Texas and the United States ; held that such claims were not included in the unsettled claims referred to the commissioners, and that they had no jurisdiction over them /(• 5. Where a ship containing property of an English subject was seized by a piratical vessel on the high seas, and was sultsequently recaptured by a United States cruiser, and the ship and property was sold, and the proceeds, subject to certain claims of the captors, went into the United States troa«nry ; held that remuneration should be made to the owner, deducting reasonable expenses and salvage. — Houghton's case • 16] 6. Prior to the extension of a territorial government over the Oregon country, settlers had gone in and formed themselves into a temporary government. While in this condition, war occurred with the Indians, and various settlers were killed, and si.xty- four persons taken into captivity by them. Application was made to the Hudson's Bay Company for assistance, which was rendered, and through their agency the captives were released. Held that compensation for such assistance was a just claim against the United States, and was allowed by the commission, — Hudson's Bay Company 164 7. Held, also, that a similar claim for expenditures incurred in procuring, by request of American officers on the coast, the release of American mariners, who had been shipwrecked, and were detained as captives by the Indians, should be allowed 76. 468 INDEX OF GASES REPORTED. INTERNATIONAL LAW. Page 1. International law is paramount to local or municipal law. The act of 3 and 4, WiUiam IV, chap. 73, abolishing slavery in Great Britain and her dominions, could not overrule the rights of nations who have not abolished such institution. Such nations retain the riglit to hold slaves in their vessels on the high seas, or any rights necessarily incident to iuu navigation of such seas, the same as within their own jurisdiction. — Brig Enttrpriie 182 INTERNATIONAL SETTLEMENTS. EFFECT, WHEN MADE, ON INDIVIDUAL CLAIMS. 1. Where a citizen of Canada was arrested in the State of New York, for a criminal offence against the laws of the State, arising from his being engaged in the destruc- tion of the steamer Caroline, in New York, with a party from Canada, during an insurrection in that province, and Great Britain demanded his release, on the ground that the acts complained of were done by the orders of that government, and that the nation was responsible and not the individual — and where the difficulties arising from these causes were afterwards adjusted between the two governments — htld that such adjustment barred all claims of citizens of either country against the other for indi- vidual damage sustained ; and that such cases were not within the provisions for the settlement ' ' of outstanding claims, ' ' under tiie convention of February 8, 1853. — ■Mexmier McLeod 314 INTERNATIONAL UNION. EFFECT ON INDEBTEDNESS OF TIIE STATES UNITED. 1. The united government is clearly liable for the separate debts of tiie several crovern- ments combined, as a general rule of international law. — HolfordU ease, Texas Bonds 382 2. A pledge of the revenues of the government is in the nature of a lien to the creditor, and is binding on its transfer to another nation ; but quere, whotiier, in certain cases, such lien can justly extend to an amount clearly beyond the value of any such revenues, so as to operate as a bar to intcrnalional union Ih 3. Qttcre, also, where a nation is not fully merged in union with another, but retains independent powers and jurisdictions, whether an equitable apportionment of its liabilities may not be made between the two governments, as a preliminary tu such union, without a just ground of complaint on the part of creditors ib. JURISDICTION. 1. A removal of a vessel, seized within limits of a court of competent jurisdiction, to a remote district, for trial and adjudication, is a violation of the rights of tlie parties interested, and entitles them to full compensation for all damage incurred. — Bar-ne Jones , 4 84 See INTERNATIONAL CLAIMS, 1, 3. See INTERNATIONAL SETTLEMENTS, I. See DOMiciL, 2. LICENSE TO TRADE IN TIME OF WAR. I. During the war between the United States and Mexico, application was made to proceed with goods across the United States to Mexico, for trade with that country, with a right of drawback on the duties paid. License was granted ; held that it waa S< 1. r a D b( lil St fri I. El thJ ovJ 2. aI 3. strd fori INDEX OF CASES REPORTED. 469 •ge 182 314 krn- .xai • • • tor, tain tuch ains its such to a -rties or 'itf 382 fh lb. 84 adeto luDtry, lit was a mere permiBsion to transmit groods to tho border, with Aill notice of the riski arising from a state of war, and that a subeequent necessary detention of the cara- van conveying goods >;.to tho interior of Mexico, by an armed force invading the country, until after the success of such force was secured, was justifiable. — Ker- ford Sc Jenkin 351 2. Where, after the capture of a Mexican port, it was opened to trade of residents and others, subject to the payment of certain duties; held under such license the character of alien enemies ceased, and where the United States had taken cogni- zance of ti. _ _ Baron Renfrew, the - _ _ Black, W. . . - - Bonds of Florida Bonds of Texas Bottomley, William Bradbury, Samuel British subjects, claims of Broadbent, William Brookline, the brig Butterfield & Brothers - 458 459 25, 66 - 24, 40, 46, 68, 79 - 25, 31, 72 25, 28, 31, 33, 35, 42, 45, 246—300 32, 35, 37, 40, 41, 43, 63, 382—426 - 27, 47, 48, 75, 338 -27,46,48,67 - • - 60, 77 27, 46, 47, 48, 75, 338 - 32,34,40,57 25, 34, 69 474 GENERAL INDEX. 0. Calmont & Company - - - Caroline Knight, the schooner - - - Cartaret, Lord - - - - - Certificate of Secretary - - - - Charlotte, the brig - . - . Cicero, tlie .---.. Clarke, G. Rotchford - - - - Claims, docket of - - - - Commissioners, communication from, relative to the du ration of the commission - _ - . Commissioners, journal of proceedings of Commissioners, declaration subscribed by Commissioners, letter of,, to M. Van Buren Commissioners, letter of, to Joshua Bates Commissioners, order of, relative to exchange - Commissioners, report of - _ _ , Commission of the United States Commissioner Commission of the British Commissioner Commission of the United States Agent Commission of the British Agent Commission of the Umpire - - _ . Commission, amounts awarded by - - • Commission, expenses of - _ _ . Commission, proposal for extending duration of Commission, rules of - Pago 26, 30, 44, 46, 66, 79 - 23, 34, 78 23, 72 81 - 26, 35, 55 - 26, 35, 58 -25,29,30,72 49 460 7 14 455 458 77 5 13 13 17 20 19 78,79 80 460 16 - 24, 32, 33, 39, 42, 48, 67, 79 7—12 Confidence, the brigantine Convention instituting the commission Convention, extending the time of the duration of - 37 Cook, William, et al. 21,22,28, 29, 30, 31, 33, 35, 56, 166—169 Cook, William, protest of British agent in the case of - 461 Cotesworth, Powell and Pryor - - - - 22, 25, 42, 67 Cotton goods, duties on - - 27, 73, 74, 75, 311—313 Creole, the brig - - 31, 32, 33, 38, 40, 47, 52, 78, 241—245 Crosthwaite, the brig - - - - 25, 35, 40, 76 Custom-house cases at New York _ . - 334 — 333 Cyrus, the brig 26, 36, 42, 50 Pago 66,79 34,78 23,72 81 35,55 35,58 , 30, 72 49 460 7 14 455 458 77 5 13 13 17 20 19 78,79 80 460 16 8,67,79 7—12 37 22, 28, 66—169 461 5,42,67 11—313 141—245 , 40, 76 34—338 6, 42, 50 QENERAl . INDEX. 'j 475 Dartmouth, Earl of D. - 24, 42, 44, 04, 79 - 25, 71 334—338 - 34, 48, 69, 79 26, 40, 59 26, 41, 42, 45, 51, 78 41,70 151—375 40 1, 43, 65 20—160 , 47, 58 455 458 ndon 460 456 457 458 ,6, 42, 50 - 23, 61 »2, 45, 63 Pallas, the schooner, Pearl, the harque Patterson, William Phillimore, Kobert Piatt & Duncan Potts, John President, message of Prosperity, the R. 26, 47, 54 - 24, ,30, 40, 7:5 25, 40, 71 442, 443 27,33, 41,44, 02, ,338 23, 71 56 - 25, 35, 40, 76 Recapitulation of amounts awarded by commission Report of commissioners _ _ > Resolutions of the Senate - - _ Rider, Thomas ----- Robb, ubhn A, the barque Robert, the - - - . - Rogers, James H. - 78, 79 6 2,4 23, 24, 60, 79 26,35,40,53 26, 40, 59 27, 72 # 478 GENERAL INDEX. & ' Page. Hchieffelin, Henry H. - - - 32, 37, 39, 55 Science, the - - 25, 35, 40, 76 Shaw, Qeorge and Samuel, - 27, 4C, 48, 47, 75, 338 Shaw, James - - 27, 41, 70 Ship-owners' society - 40, 76 T. Taylor, John, jr., the executors - - - 27,46,70 Texas bonds - - - 32, 36, 37, 40, 41, 43, 382—426 Thomas, John A., commission of - . . i^ Thomas, John A., reply of, to the argument of Dr. Phillimore 444 — 447 U. Uhde, Charles '».« 33, 40, 46, 47, 48, 69, 79, 436—453 Umpire, appointment of Mr. Van Buren Umpire, appointment of Mr. Bates Umpire, commission of - Umpire, declaration subscribed by Umpire, compensation refused by Union, the - . _ _ Upham, Nathaniel G., commission of - Upham, Nathaniel G., letter of - Upham, Nathaniel L., appointed secretary Upham, Nathaniel L., certificate of V. Van Buren, Martin, letter to Van Buren, Martin, letter of Volusia, the brigantine - 16, 455 - 18, 457, 458 - 19 - 20 - 83 - 25, 29, 64 - 13 - 457 - 16 - 81 . 455 - i56 26, 34, 42, 44, 51 w. Washington, the schooner 26, 35, 36, 38, 39, 45, 47, 55, 78, 170—186 Watson, et. al Whyte, T Wils^^Oosepl Wood,t40mil9IY Woolen goo d s, duti ei - 22, 31, 65 - 25, 31, 72 25, 28,vS4, 62 - 27, 28, 63 32, 33, 40, 44, 45, 58, 305—310 39, 65 40, 76 76, 338 41, 70 40,76 , 46, 70 12—426 17 14—447 16-453 16, 455 57, 458 19 20 83 29, 64 13 457 16 81 455 i56 44, 51 70—186 , 31, 65 , 31, 72 „84, 62 , 28, 63 05—310 ^ ■*,